Baltimore Catechism
Baltimore Catechism
Baltimore Catechism
BALTIMORE
CATECHISM #3
INDULGENCES
Granted to those who devote themselves to teaching or learning Christian Doctrine.
I. A PLENARY INDULGENCE to all the Faithful who shall for approximately one-half hour or
not for less than twenty minutes devote themselves at least twice a month to teaching or learning
Christian Doctrine. The Indulgence can be gained twice during the same month on days they may
choose, provided they, being truly penitent, have gone to Confession and Holy Communion and
have visited some church or public oratory and there prayed for the intention of the Roman
Pontiff.
II. A PARTIAL INDULGENCE of 3 years to these same members of the Faithful as often as they
devote themselves for the above mentioned space of time to teaching or learning Christian
Doctrine. (S.P. Ap., May 26, 1949.
It is my earnest hope and prayer that all who study this Catechism will be
enlightened by the Holy Spirit to perceive the truth, the beauty, and the
inspiration of the doctrines taught by the Holy Catholic Church.
Our Father
Our Father who art in Heaven, hallowed be Thy name; Thy kingdom
come; Thy will be done on earth as it is in heaven. Give us this day our
daily bread; and forgive us our trespasses as we forgive those who
trespass against us; and lead us not into temptation, but deliver us from
evil. Amen.
Hail Mary
Hail Mary, full of grace! The Lord is with thee; blessed art thou among
women, and blessed is the fruit of thy womb, Jesus. Holy Mary, Mother
of God, pray for us sinners, now and at the hour of our death. Amen.
Glory Be
Glory be to the Father, and to the Son, and to the Holy Ghost. As it was
in the beginning, is now, and ever shall be, world without end. Amen.
Apostles’ Creed
I believe in God, the Father Almighty, Creator of heaven and earth; and
in Jesus Christ, His only Son, Our Lord; who was conceived by the Holy
Ghost, born of the Virgin Mary, suffered under Pontius Pilate, was
crucified, died, and was buried. He descended into hell; the third day He
arose again from the dead; He ascended into heaven, sitteth at the right
hand of God, the Father Almighty; from thence He shall come to judge
the living and the dead. I believe in the Holy Ghost, the Holy Catholic
Church, the communion of saints, the forgiveness of sin, the resurrection
of the body, and life everlasting. Amen.
Confiteor
I confess to Almighty God, to blessed Mary ever Virgin, to blessed
Michael, the Archangel, to blessed John the Baptist, to the holy Apostles
Peter and Paul, and to all the saints, that I have sinned exceedingly in
thought, word, and deed, through my fault, through my fault, through my
most grievous fault. Therefore, I beseech blessed Mary ever Virgin,
blessed Michael the Archangel, blessed John the Baptist, the holy
Apostles Peter and Paul, and all the saints, to pray to the Lord our God
for me.
May Almighty God have mercy on me, forgive me my sins, and bring me
to everlasting life. Amen.
May the Almighty and merciful Lord grant me pardon , absolution, and
remission of all my sins. Amen.
Act of Faith
O my God, I firmly believe that Thou art one God in three Divine
Persons, Father, Son, and Holy Ghost; I believe that Thy Divine Son
became man, and died for our sins, and that He will come to judge the
living and the dead. I believe these and all the truths which the Holy
Catholic Church teaches, because Thou hast revealed them, who canst
neither deceive nor be deceived. (3 years)
Act of Hope
O my God, relying on Thy almighty power and infinite mercy and
promises, I hope to obtain the pardon of my sins, the help of Thy grace,
and life everlasting, through the merits of Jesus Christ, my Lord and
Redeemer. (3 years)
Act of Charity
O my God, I love Thee above all things, with my whole heart and soul,
because Thou art all good and worthy of all love. I love my neighbor as
myself for the love of Thee. I forgive all who have injured me, and ask
pardon of all whom I have injured. (3 years)
Act of Contrition
O my God, I am heartily sorry for having offended Thee, and I detest all
my sins, because I dread the loss of heaven and the pains of hell, but
most of all because they offend Thee, my God, who art all good and
deserving all of my love. I firmly resolve, with the help of Thy grace, to
confess my sins, to do penance, and to amend my life. Amen. (3 years)
Morning Offering
O my God, I offer Thee all my prayers, works, and sufferings in union
with the Sacred Heart of Jesus, for the intentions for which he pleads and
offers Himself in the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass, in thanksgiving for Thy
favors, in reparation for my offenses, and in humble supplication for my
temporal and eternal welfare, for the wants of our holy Mother the
Church, for the conversion of sinners, and for the relief of the poor souls
in purgatory. I wish to gain all the indulgences attached to the prayers I
shall say and to the good works I shall perform this day.
Angelus
V. The angel of the Lord declared unto Mary
Let us pray.
Pour forth, we beseech Thee, O Lord, Thy grace into our hearts, that we
to whom the Incarnation of Christ, Thy Son, was made known by the
message of an angel, may by His passion and cross to brought to the
Glory of His resurrection, through the same Christ Our Lord. Amen.
(10 years each time, if recited at dawn, at noon and in the evening, or as soon thereafter as
possible.)
Regina Caeli
(Said during Eastertide, instead of the Angelus)
Let us pray.
O God, Who, by the resurrection of Thy Son, Our Lord Jesus Christ, hast
vouchsafed to make glad the whole world; grant, we beseech Thee, that
through the intercession of the Virgin Mary, His Mother, we may attain
the joys of eternal life. Through the same Christ Our Lord. Amen.
(At Eastertide, same indulgences as for the Angelus)
Anima Christi
Soul of Christ, sanctify me.
Amen.
Memorare
Remember, O most gracious Virgin Mary, that never was it known that
anyone who fled to thy protection, implored thy help, or sought thy
intercession was left unaided. Inspired with this confidence, I fly unto
thee, O Virgin of virgins, my Mother. To Thee I come, before thee I
stand, sinful and sorrowful. O Mother of the Word Incarnate, despise not
my petitions, but in thy mercy hear and answer me. Amen. (3 years)
Ejaculations
Most Sacred Heart of Jesus, have mercy on us. (500 days)
Jesus, Mary and Joseph, bless us now and at the hour of our death. (300
days each)
1. Annunciation
2. Visitation
“I baptize thee in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy
Ghost.”
N. B. Any person of either sex who has reached the age of reason can
baptize in case of necessity, but the same person must say the words while
pouring the water.
PART ONE: THE CREED
– LESSON I –
The Purpose of Man’s Existence
(a) Reason unaided by revelation can prove that God exists. It knows that
this vast universe could not have come into being by its own powers. The
movement of creatures and their dependence upon one another, the
various degrees of perfection found in them, the fact that they come into
being and cease to be, and, finally, the marvelous order in the universe,
demand the existence of an almighty power and the wisdom of an eternal
intelligent cause that we call God.1
1 (Atheists who deny the existence of God, can offer no valid or convincing argument in proof of
their denial.)
SCRIPTURE:
“In the beginning God created heaven and earth . . . And God created man
to his own image” (Genesis 1:1, 27).
“God, who made the world and all that is in it . . . from one man he has
created the whole human race” (Acts 17:24-26).
2. Who is God?
God is the Supreme Being, infinitely perfect, who made all things
and keeps them in existence.
(a) This universe did not always exist; it came into existence at the
beginning of time.
(b) All things depend on God; they begin and continue to exist by the
power of God.
SCRIPTURE:
“Great is the Lord and greatly to be praised, and his greatness is
unsearchable” (Psalm 144:3).
“It is he who gives to all men life and breath and all things” (Acts 17:25).
“In him we live and move and have our being” (Acts 17:28).
God made us to show forth His goodness and to share with us His
everlasting happiness in heaven.
(a) By creating the world God did not increase His own happiness, since
He was infinitely happy from all eternity, but He did manifest His glory
externally by sharing His goodness. All creatures by their very existence
show forth the glory of God, for all depend on God for their existence.
(b) God created man to manifest His glory in a special way. He gave man
an intellect and a will that he might know, praise, and love his Creator. In
the service of God man finds his true, though imperfect, happiness in this
life. Perfect happiness has been promised in the next life as a reward for
the merits man acquires here on earth. Thus the happiness of man is also
a purpose of creation.
(c) The happiness of heaven consists in the direct vision, love, and
enjoyment of God. This reward so far exceeds man’s nature that without
the supernatural help of God it could not possibly be attained. In heaven
God gives us the light of glory, which enables us to see Him face to face.
During our life on earth God gives us His grace, which enables us to live
a supernatural life and to perform the actions that can earn this reward.
(d) The happiness of the blessed in heaven varies according to the merits
of their lives on earth. All in heaven are perfectly happy, but one person
may have a greater degree of happiness than another because he has more
capacity for happiness, by reason of a more virtuous life on earth.
SCRIPTURE:
“The heavens declare the glory of God, and the firmament proclaims the
work of his hands” (Psalm 18:2).
“He set his eye upon their hearts to show them the greatness of his works:
That they might praise the name which he hath sanctified, and glory in his
wondrous acts: that they might declare the glorious things of his works”
(Ecclesiasticus 17:7-8).
“And every one that calleth upon my name, I have created him for my
glory: I have formed him and made him” (Isaias 43:7).
“For the Son of Man is to come with his angels in the glory of his Father,
and then he will render to everyone according to his conduct” (Matthew
16:27).
“What does it profit a man, if he gain the whole world, but suffer the loss
of his own soul?” (Mark 8:36).
“Eye has not seen nor ear heard, nor has it entered into the heart of man,
what things God has prepared for those who love him” (1 Corinthians 2:9).
“Now he who plants and he who waters are one, yet each will receive his
own reward according to his labor” (I Corinthians 3:8).
“We see now through a mirror in an obscure manner, but then face to
face”(I Corinthians 13:12).
To gain the happiness of heaven we must know, love, and serve God
in this world.
(a) Man must know, love, and serve God in a supernatural manner in
order to gain the happiness of heaven. Man is raised to the supernatural
order only by grace, a free gift of God.
(b) Man cannot be perfectly happy in this world, for nothing created can
satisfy his desire for complete happiness. History and experience show
that neither riches, nor honors, nor glory, nor reputation, nor power, nor
pleasure, nor knowledge, nor any other worldly goods can fully satisfy
man’s longing for happiness.
(c) Man’s earthly, imperfect happiness is in proportion to his approach to
God–the final goal of his life. The more closely man approaches God by
the practice of virtue under the influence of God’s grace, the greater will
be his happiness. Worldly goods and pleasures may satisfy man for a
time, but of themselves they cannot make him fully happy. Man may
enjoy the innocent pleasures and reasonable comforts of life as long as
they do not lead him away from God.
SCRIPTURE:
“Not everyone who says to me, ‘Lord, Lord,’ shall enter the kingdom of
heaven; but he who does the will of my Father in heaven shall enter the
kingdom of heaven” (Matthew 7:21).
“And thou shalt love the Lord thy God with thy whole heart, and with thy
whole soul, and with thy whole mind, and with thy whole strength” (Mark
12:30).
“Now this is everlasting life, that they may know thee, the only true God,
and him whom thou hast sent, Jesus Christ” (John 17:3).
We learn to know, love, and serve God from Jesus Christ, the Son of
God, who teaches us through the Catholic Church.
(a) In order to be saved, all persons who have attained the use of reason
must believe explicitly that God exists and that He rewards the good and
punishes the wicked; in practice they must also believe explicitly in the
mysteries of the Blessed Trinity and the Incarnation.
(b) The supernatural happiness of heaven and such mysteries as the Holy
Trinity, the Incarnation, and the Redemption are beyond anything man
can know by his unaided powers of reason; they can be learned only
through God’s revelation.
SCRIPTURE:
“All power in heaven and on earth has been given to me. Go, therefore,
and make disciples of all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father,
and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit, teaching them to observe all that I
have commanded you; and behold, I am with you all days, even unto the
consummation of the world” (Matthew 28:18-20).
We find the chief truths taught by Jesus Christ through the Catholic
Church in the Apostles’ Creed.
(b) The twelve articles of the Creed contain the mystery of one God in
three distinct Persons, Father, Son, and Holy Ghost, and the operations
that are, for a particular reason, attributed to each Person.
(c) In the three main parts of the Apostles’ Creed the doctrine of the
mystery of the Trinity is so set forth that the first part tells of the first
Person and the work of creation; the next, of the second Person and the
work of redemption; and the third, of the third Person and the work of
our sanctification, begun on earth by grace and completed in heaven by
glory.
The Sacred Scriptures, God’s own word, frequently refer to the happiness
prepared for us in heaven, and urge us to strive to attain it. God has called
all men to this happiness, but some do not attain it because they commit
mortal sin and die without repenting of it. These souls are cast into hell,
and will never possess God. Hence, it is the most important duty of our
lives to fulfill the conditions necessary to merit eternal happiness. These
conditions are to know, to love, and to serve God in a supernatural
manner.
Catholic boys and girls should strive to learn their lessons in Catechism
faithfully and thoroughly. They should always remember that in studying
their religion they are preparing themselves to gain the happiness of
heaven, for they are fulfilling the first condition of meriting that
happiness – to know God. They must remember, however, that the
knowledge of God does not consist in merely reciting the answers of the
Catechism by memory. They must try to grasp the meaning of these
answers, and apply to their own lives the truths they contain.
RESOLUTION: Resolve that during your entire life you will continue to
study the truths of your Catholic religion, and thus by ever knowing God
better and better, constantly prepare yourself for the happiness of heaven,
which is the great goal of your life.
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the following statements as either true or false. The
correct answers can be found in the previous portions of this lesson.)
TRUE FALSE
(1) We can prove by reason without the help of revelation that there is a
God.
(2) We can learn by our own reason the doctrine of the Holy Trinity.
(10) A Catholic knows God sufficiently if he can recite the answers in the
Catechism from memory.
PROBLEMS AND EXERCISES
B. PROBLEMS AND EXERCISES. (Answer the questions orally or write them as your teacher
may direct):
(1) Fabian, a Catholic Boy Scout, has a keen interest in wild flowers.
Why did God create wild flowers?
(2) Name two other creeds besides the Apostles’ Creed that are recited in
the Catholic Church. From which century do these creeds date?
(3) Atlee, a Communist, wants his heaven here upon earth. He claims
there is no future life. Is it possible for Atlee to be perfectly happy here
on earth? Explain your answer in a paragraph of less than 100 words.
(4) Edna is asked the following question: “Why are we placed here on
this planet?” She is confused by the wording of the question, and does
not answer because she cannot remember a question in the Catechism
being worded that way. What is your answer to this question?
(6) Ruth would like to know what price must be paid for this happiness.
Tell her.
(8) In the Apostles’ Creed there are 109 words. Increase the number of
words about 50% to 75% and express the same doctrines.
(10) Arthur, the youngest pupil in the seventh grade of St. Mary’s school,
has a perfect knowledge of this lesson in the Catechism. Why is it true
that the young lad is really wiser than a world-famed, proud university
professor who denies the existence of God?
(11) Orville made a beautiful crib for Christmas, and it gave him great
happiness to realize that his skill had produced so fine a work. He
remarks to his mother: “God must have been much happier after He
made the world than He was before”. Is Orville correct in his statement?
(12) Count the number of Catholic programs that you can get on your
radio every week. To how many of these programs do you listen?
(a) God is above all created things – the mineral, vegetable, and animal
kingdoms, men, and angels. Some likeness of God is in every creature,
from the highest to the lowest. The highest angel, however, is but a weak
reflection of the infinite perfection of God, who is the infinite Creator
and Governor of the universe.
SCRIPTURE:
“I am the First, and I am the Last, and besides me there is no God” (Isaias
44:6).
9. What is a spirit?
A spirit is a being that has understanding and free will, but no body,
and will never die.
(a) The soul of man is a spirit which does not die because it is simple,
having no integral parts, and because it is spiritual, that is, entirely
independent of matter in its being and in its own proper acts; it does not
depend on creatures for existence and cannot be destroyed by them.
When we say that God is self-existing we mean that He does not owe
His existence to any other being.
(a) God is the first and completely independent source of all being. Every
other being is given existence, God is His own existence; God is His own
life, or He who is.
When we say that God is infinitely perfect we mean that He has all
perfections without limit.
(a) God has in Himself, in an eminent degree, the perfections of all things
that ever existed or will or can exist. He is the cause of all perfection in
creatures. The perfections of created things are in God in an infinitely
superior manner.
(b) Every creature, even the highest angel, is finite for it has the
limitation of dependence on the Creator for its existence.
SCRIPTURE:
When we say that God is eternal we mean that He always was and
always will be, and that He always remains the same.
(b) Spirits such as angels and the souls of men are eternal in the sense
that they will live forever, but both angels and the souls of men, unlike
God, had a beginning and are subject to change.
SCRIPTURE:
“Before the mountains were brought forth and the earth and the world
were born, and from everlasting to everlasting thou art, O God” (Psalm
89:2).
“Every good gift and every perfect gift is from above, coming down from
the Father of Lights, with whom there is no change, nor shadow of
alteration” (James 1:17).
“ ‘I am the Alpha and the Omega, the beginning and the end,’ says the
Lord God, ‘who is and who was and who is coming, the Almighty’ ”
(Apocalypse 1:8).
(a) Things are good and lovable in the degree that they are perfect. Since
God is infinitely perfect, He is all-good and infinitely lovable in Himself,
and all goodness of creatures must come from Him.
SCRIPTURE:
“With whose beauty, if they being delighted, took them to be gods: let
them know how much the Lord of them is more beautiful than they. For
the first author of beauty made all those things” (Wisdom 13:3).
(b) God’s knowledge of the future does not take away our freedom, but
leaves our wills free to act or not to act.
(c) We are responsible for our free actions, which will be rewarded by
God if they are good and punished by Him if they are evil.
SCRIPTURE:
“Before man is life and death, good and evil: that which he shall choose
shall be given him” (Ecclesiasticus 15:18).
“Who hath been tried thereby, and made perfect, he shall have glory
everlasting. He that could have transgressed, and hath not transgressed:
and could do evil things and hath not done them” (Ecclesiasticus 31: 10).
“The Lord knoweth all knowledge and hath beheld the signs of the world.
He declareth the things that are past and the things that are to come, and
revealeth the traces of hidden things” (Ecclesiasticus 42:19).
“For I am God, and there is no god beside: neither is there the like to me”
(Isaias 46:9).
“And there is no creature hidden from his sight; but all things are naked
and open to the eyes of him to whom we have to give account” (Hebrews
4:13).
(a) God is everywhere: first, by His power, inasmuch as all things are
under His dominion; second, by His Presence. inasmuch as nothing is
hidden from Him; third, by His essence, inasmuch as He is in all things as
the cause of their being.
SCRIPTURE:
“Whither may I go from thy spirit, or whither may I flee from thy face? If I
ascend into heaven, thou art there; if I lie down with the dead, thou art
present. If I lay hold of the wings of the dawn, if I dwell in the farthest part
of the sea: Even there shall thy hand lead me, and thy right hand shall hold
me” (Psalm 138:7-10).
(a) Although we cannot see God, the splendid order and beauty of
creation should constantly remind us of His wisdom, His power, His
goodness, and His nearness to us.
SCRIPTURE:
“God is spirit, and they who worship him must worship in spirit and in
truth. (John 4:24).
“The eyes of the Lord in every place behold the good and the evil”
(Proverbs 15:3).
“And as for clothing, why are you anxious? Consider how the lilies of the
field grow; they neither toil nor spin, yet I say to you that not even
Solomon in all his glory was arrayed like one of these. But if God so
clothes the grass of the field, which flourishes today but tomorrow is
thrown into the oven, how much more you, O you of little faith! Therefore
do not be anxious, saying, ‘What shall we eat?’ or, ‘What shall we drink?’
or, ‘What are we to put on?’ (for after all these things the Gentiles seek);
for your Father knows that you need all these things” (Matthew 6:28-32).
(a) Divine Providence is God’s plan for guiding every creature to its
proper end.
SCRIPTURE:
“All expect of thee, that thou give them food in season. What thou givest
to them they gather up; when thou openest thy hand, they are filled with
good. If thou hidest thy face, they are troubled; if thou takest away their
breath, they die and return to their dust. If thou sendest forth thy spirit,
they are created, and thou renewest the face of the earth” (Psalm 103:27-
30).
“For God will not except any man’s person, neither will he stand in awe of
any man’s greatness: for he made the little and the great, and he hath
equally care of all” (Wisdom 6:8).
“Cast all your anxiety upon him, because he cares for you” (I Peter 5:7).
(a) God can do anything that is not opposed to His perfection, or that is
not self-contradictory. The impossibility of God’s doing anything wrong
or acting falsely does not limit His divine power, since wrongdoing and
falsity in themselves are evil and are manifest defects they cannot be
associated with an infinitely perfect Being.
(b) Although God, the first cause of all things, actually does all things,
He does not thereby deprive the creature of its power of causality nor of
its freedom of action. A creature is never more than a secondary cause,
that is, always dependent on God, always a finite being. When this
secondary cause is intellectual, it is constituted by Almighty God as a
free agent.
SCRIPTURE:
“Whatsoever the Lord pleases, he does in heaven and on earth, in the sea,
and in all the deeps” (Psalm 134:6).
“How often would I have gathered thy children together, as a hen gathers
her young under her wings, but thou wouldst not!” (Matthew 23:37).
(a) God, the first cause of all things, in His wisdom knows these things
perfectly and disposes them to their ends according to appropriate means.
(c) Because God is all-holy, He is entirely free from all sin and
imperfection and is infinitely good and lovable.
(e) Because God is all-just, He gives to each creature what is due to it.
God rewards the good and punishes the wicked partially in this life and
more fully in eternity.
SCRIPTURE:
“Be ye holy, because I the Lord your God am holy” (Leviticus 19:2).
“Thou art just, O Lord, and all thy judgments are just; and all thy ways
mercy, and truth, and judgment” (Tobias 3:2).
“The Lord is merciful and kind; slow to anger and plenteous in mercy”
(Psalm 102:8).
“The Lord is just in all his ways, and holy in all his works” (Psalm
144:17).
“And they cried one to another, and said: Holy, Holy, Holy, the Lord God
of hosts, all the earth is full of his glory” (Isaias 6:3).
“Oh, the depth of the riches of the wisdom and of the knowledge of God!
How incomprehensible are his judgments and how unsearchable his
ways!” (Romans 11:33).
We can know by our natural reason that there is a God, for natural
reason tells us that the world we see about us could have been made
only by a self-existing Being, all-wise and almighty. 2
2 (See question 1 (a); also Appendix I, question II.)
23. Can we know God in any other way than by our natural reason?
Besides knowing God by our natural reason, we can also know Him
from supernatural revelation, that is, from the truths found in
Sacred Scripture and in Tradition, which God Himself has revealed
to us.
(b) God’s public revelation of truths to men began with Adam and Eve
and ended at the death of Saint John the Apostle.
(e) The Church does not oblige the faithful to believe private revelations
given, at certain times, to individuals. For our edification, however, the
Church permits the publication of some private revelations. Those to
whom private revelations are given are obliged to believe them when
they are certain that the revelations are from God.
(f) Sacred Scripture, or the Bible, is the word of God written by men
under the inspiration of the Holy Ghost and contained in the books of the
Old and the New Testament.
(g) Inspiration is the act by which God moves and directs the sacred
writers faithfully to commit to writing all those things and only those
things that He wishes them to write. The sacred writers act as free
instruments of God, who is the principal author of Sacred Scripture.
(h) Tradition is the unwritten word of God – that body of truths revealed
by God to the apostles, and not committed by them to writing but handed
down by word of mouth. These truths, which were later committed to
writing, particularly by the Fathers of the Church, have been preserved
and handed down to the present day.
SCRIPTURE:
“But I have called you friends, because all things that I have heard from
my Father I have made known to you” (John 15:15).
“There are, however, many other things that Jesus did; but if every one of
these should be written, not even the world itself, I think; could hold the
books that would have to be written” (John 21:25).
“So then, brethren, stand firm, and hold the teachings that you have
learned, whether by word or by letter of ours” (II Thessalonians 2:15).
“God, who at sundry times and in diverse manners spoke in times past to
the fathers by the prophets, last of all in these days has spoken to us by his
Son” (Hebrews 1:1).
In order that men may know Him and His perfections more surely and
more profoundly, God has given us divine revelations, which furnish us
with clearer knowledge about His nature than reason could provide, and
also manifest some truths about Him which natural reason could never
learn by its own efforts. The first of God’s revelations for the human race
were given to Adam and Eve, and God continued to make such
revelations until the death of the last apostle, St. John. Since that time
there have been no new revelations for all mankind, although there have
been private revelations for certain individuals. Moreover, there has been
a growth of public revelation in the sense that, as time went on, men have
gradually come to a deeper and clearer knowledge of the truths which
God revealed of old. Thus it was only after hundreds of years that
Catholics clearly perceived that the doctrine of Mary’s Immaculate
Conception is contained in revelation. The revelations given by God for
the human race are contained in Sacred Scripture, or the Bible which is
the written word of God, and in divine Tradition, which is the unwritten
word of God, since it was handed down, without being written, by those
who received it from God, namely the apostles.
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTION. (Select the word or phrase in the parentheses which most exactly and
most completely fills out the sentence).
(1) When we say that God is self-existing we mean that (He is the cause
of His own existence . . . He does not owe His existence to any other
being . . . He loves Himself more than He loves any other being).
(2) Spirits are eternal (in the sense that they will live forever . . . in the
same sense that God is eternal . . . in the sense that they never change).
(3) When we say that God is in all things as the cause of their being, we
are referring to His presence by (presence . . . power . . . essence).
(5) The first public revelation was given to (Adam and Eve . . . Christ . . .
Moses).
(6) Public revelation ended with (Christ . . . St. Peter . . . St. John).
(7) God rewards the good (as much as they deserve . . . more than they
deserve . . . less than they deserve).
(8) Public revelation (is still going on . . . is all contained in the Bible . . .
is contained in the Bible and in Tradition).
(9) Private revelations (must be believed only by those for whom they are
made . . . must be believed by everyone . . . must be believed by no one).
(10) The principal author of a book in the Bible is (the man who wrote it
. . . the Church . . . God).
PROBLEMS AND EXERCISES
B. PROBLEMS AND EXERCISES. (Answer the questions orally or write them as your teacher
may direct):
(2) Julius, an irreligious High School boy, claims we are forced to do all
the things we do; he says that we are not free. Is this true? What is the
reason for your answer?
(3) At this very moment, God knows what we shall do tomorrow. Does
this mean we shall be forced to do those things tomorrow? Explain.
(5) In three or four sentences tell why the remembrance of the Presence
of God is a great aid in practising virtue and in avoiding sin.
(6) Remembering that God’s eye ever rests upon us, should we be
frightened or encouraged? Tell us the reason for your answer.
(7) Occasionally atheists and scoffers at religion put such silly questions
as these: “Can God make a square circle?–or a stick with only one end?”
How do you answer such nonsense?
(9) The timepieces of earth are regulated from the movements of the
heavenly bodies. These timepieces – our watches and clocks – are made
by intelligent beings outside of the timepieces themselves. Who then,
made the Master Timepiece, – the heavenly bodies?
(11) Brigid is fond of spiritual books, especially the life of her patroness,
recounting the wonderful revelations made to her. Other saintly men and
women of God also have been favored with such revelations. How are
these revelations classified? Are they the same as the supernatural
revelations spoken of in this lesson?
(12) Explain in what sense there has been, for many centuries, (a) no
growth or public revelation, and (b) such a growth.
(13) Leander wonders how it was possible for the prophets to describe
the details of Our Lord’s passion and death many centuries before they
took place. Can you explain this to Leander?
– LESSON 3 –
The Unity and Trinity of God
(a) Reason can prove that there is only one God. The assumption that
there could be two infinitely perfect gods or two infinitely supreme
beings independent of each other, is an absurdity.
(b) Revelation confirms our reasoning that there is only one God.
SCRIPTURE:
“That thou mightest know that the Lord he is God: and there is no other
besides him” (Deuteronomy 4:35).
“Thus saith the Lord, the king of Israel and his redeemer the Lord of hosts:
I am the First, and I am the Last: and besides me there is no God” (Isaias
44:6).
“1 am the Lord, and there is none else: there is no God besides me”
(Isaias45:5).
“The first commandment of all is, ‘Hear, O Israeli The Lord our God is
one God’ ” (Mark 12:29).
In God there are three divine Persons-the Father, the Son, and the
Holy Ghost.
(a) Unaided by divine revelation, the human mind could not know the
existence of the Blessed Trinity because it is a supernatural mystery. 3
Even after God has revealed the existence of the Blessed Trinity, we
cannot understand it fully. When we believe, on the word of God, that
there are three Persons in one God, we do not believe that three Persons
are one Person, or that three gods are one God; this would be a
contradiction.
“Go, therefore, and make disciples of all nations, baptizing them in the
name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit” (Matthew
28:19).
“And I will ask the Father and he will give you another Advocate to dwell
with you forever, the Spirit of truth whom the world cannot receive,
because it neither sees him nor knows him” (John 14:16-17).
“But the Advocate, the Holy Spirit, whom the Father will send in my
name, he will teach you all things, and bring to your mind whatever I have
said to you” (John 14:26).
The Father is God and the first Person of the Blessed Trinity.
(a) The first Person of the Blessed Trinity is called the Father because
from all eternity He begets the second Person, His only-begotten Son.
(b) God the Father is called the first Person not because He is greater or
older than the other two Persons, but because He is unbegotten.
SCRIPTURE:
“This, then, is why the Jews were the more anxious to put him to death;
because he not only broke the Sabbath, but also called God his own Father,
making himself equal to God” (John 5:18).
‘’Blessed be the God and Father of our Lord Jesus Christ, the Father of
mercies and the God of all comfort” (II Corinthians 1:3).
The Son is God and the second Person of the Blessed Trinity.
(a) The second Person of the Blessed Trinity is called the Son because,
from all eternity, He is the only begotten of the Father. Proceeding from
the Father, the Son is called the Divine Word or the Wisdom of the
Father.
SCRIPTURE:
“All things have been delivered to me by my Father; and no one knows the
Son except the Father; nor does anyone know the Father except the Son,
and him to whom the Son chooses to reveal him” (Matthew 11:27).
“In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God; and the
Word was God” (John 1:1).
“And we know that the Son of God has come and has given us
understanding, that we may know the true God and may be in his true Son.
He is the true God and eternal life” (I John 5:20)
The Holy Ghost is God and the third Person of the Blessed Trinity.
(a) The third Person of the Blessed Trinity is called the Holy Ghost
because from all eternity He is breathed forth, as it were, by the Father
and the Son. Proceeding from the Father and the Son, He is called the
Gift or Love of the Father and the Son.
(b) The word “Ghost” applied to the third Person means “Spirit.”
SCRIPTURE:
“But Peter said, ‘Ananias, why has Satan tempted thy heart, that thou
shouldst lie to the Holy Spirit and by fraud keep back part of the price of
the land? While it yet remained, did it not remain thine; and after it was
sold, was not the money at thy disposal? Why hast thou conceived this
thing in thy heart? Thou hast not lied to men, but to God’ ” (Acts 5:3-4).
“Do you not know that you are the temple of God and that the Spirit of
God dwells in you?” (I Corinthians 3:16).
29. What do we mean by the Blessed Trinity?
By the Blessed Trinity we mean one and the same God in three divine
Persons.
30. Are the three divine Persons really distinct from one another?
The three divine Persons are really distinct from one another.
(a) Although the Father, the Son, and the Holy Ghost are distinct Persons,
they are not distinct in nature. The nature of the Father is entirely the
nature of the Son; and the nature of the Father and the Son is entirely the
nature of the Holy Ghost.
31. Are the three divine Persons perfectly equal to one another?
The three divine Persons are perfectly equal to one another, because
all are one and the same God.
(a) No one of the three Persons precedes the others in time or in power,
but all are equally eternal and all-powerful because they have the same
divine nature.
32. How are the three divine Persons, though really distinct from one
another, one and the same God?
The three divine Persons, though really distinct from one another,
are one and the same God because all have one and the same divine
nature.
(a) Because the three divine persons have one and the same perfections
and the same external works are produced by them. But in order that we
may better know the three divine Persons, certain perfections and works
are attributed to each Person; for example, omnipotence and the works of
omnipotence, such as creation, to the Father; wisdom and the works of
wisdom, such as enlightenment, to the Son; love and the works of love,
such as sanctification, to the Holy Ghost.
33. Can we fully understand how the three divine Persons, though
really distinct from one another, are one and the same God?
In his discourse at the last supper Our Blessed Lord mentioned the three
Persons by name, and He clearly spoke of the doctrine of the Holy
Trinity to the apostles just before He ascended into heaven. The texts of
Sacred Scripture containing these words of Christ have been given in this
lesson. There was also an external manifestation of the Holy Trinity at
the time of Our Lord’s baptism by St. John in the river Jordan. On that
occasion it was God the Son in His human nature who was baptized,
while God the Holy Ghost descended on Him in the form of a dove and
God the Father announced from heaven: “This is my beloved Son, in
whom I am well pleased.” (Matthew 3:17).
Hence, according to Catholic belief, there are three divine Persons but
only one divine nature. All three Persons are perfectly equal to each
other, because all possess the same divine nature with all its infinite
perfections. From all eternity the Son proceeds from the Father as the
Word, the product of the intellectual act whereby the Father understands
the divine nature; and the Holy Ghost proceeds from the Father and the
Son as the product of the act of love of these two Persons for the divine
goodness. All the actions of God outside of those whereby the second
and third Persons proceed are acts of the three Persons operating together
through the one divine nature. However, certain works performed by all
three Persons are appropriated or attributed to particular Persons as if
they individually performed them–for example, the work of creation to
the Father, the work of producing the human nature of Christ to the Holy
Ghost (Luke 1:35); but only the Second Person became incarnate.
Although the doctrine of the Blessed Trinity is a supernatural mystery–a
truth which we cannot discover by reason nor understand in the present
life–we believe it because it has been made known to us by God who can
neither deceive nor be deceived. Even in natural things there are many
mysteries which we accept on the testimony of our fellowmen. We
believe what the astronomers tell us about the stars and the planets,
although we cannot prove these truths ourselves. Not even the most
learned scientist understands fully the nature of the force we call
electricity; yet we all know that there is such a force and we
unhesitatingly accept the information that scientists give us about it. How
much more willing should we be to believe the marvelous truth which
God Himself has made known to us–that He is one in nature and three in
Persons–even though we cannot perceive this truth by our own reason
nor understand how each divine Person can be identical with the divine
nature, yet really distinct from the other two Persons!
On the first Sunday after Pentecost the Church celebrates a feast in honor
of the Most Blessed Trinity. Moreover, on Sundays outside of the
Christmas, Lenten and Easter seasons the Preface of the Holy Trinity is
recited or chanted in the Mass. One of the favored devotions of the
Catholic Church is the Doxology–the prayer: “Glory be to the Father and
to the Son, and to the Holy Ghost. As it was in the beginning, is now, and
ever shall be, world without end. Amen.” This Doxology is frequently
repeated in the official prayers of the Church, particularly in the Divine
Office which priests and the members of many religious orders recite
every day. And whenever we make the Sign of the Cross we profess our
faith in the mystery of the Most Blessed Trinity.
TRUE FALSE
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the following statements as either true or false. The
correct answers can be found in the preceding portions of the lesson)
(1) Although we say that God the Father is the creator of heaven and
earth, all three divine Persons created the universe equally.
(2) The second Person of the Blessed Trinity is called the Word.
(3) The Father existed before the Son and the Holy Ghost.
(5) The third Person is called the Gift or Love of the Father and the Son.
(7) The names Father, Son and Holy Ghost are names for one divine
Person considered under three different aspects.
B. PROBLEMS AND EXERCISES. (Answer the questions orally or write them as your teacher
may direct):
(1) Does Lazarus, your Jewish neighbor, believe in the doctrine of the
Most Holy Trinity? Did his Jewish ancestors, before the coming of
Christ, have this doctrine expressly revealed to them?
(2) When did Our Lord clearly reveal the sublime truth of the Most
Blessed Trinity?
(4) What saying of Our Lord, at the Last Supper, revealed the names of
the two other Persons of the Blessed Trinity?
(5) At the beginning of Our Lord’s public ministry, John the Baptist
baptized Jesus in the waters of the river Jordan. Show how the three
Persons of the Blessed Trinity externally manifested themselves then.
(8) In what ways does the Church pay honor to the Most Blessed Trinity?
(9) Name three instances in which you have accepted on faith from
human beings something you could not perceive yourself.
(14) It is related in the life of St. Patrick, the apostle of Ireland, that when
he was preaching on the doctrine of the Holy Trinity to the pagan people
of that land he plucked a shamrock and held it up to their gaze to
illustrate the mystery of one God in three distinct divine Persons. A
shamrock has three leaves on one stem. How would you illustrate the
mystery by a three-leaf clover? Can you think of any other object to
illustrate this wonderful mystery of the Holy Trinity?
(15) In Catholic art when the three Persons of the Holy Trinity are
portrayed, the Father is represented as a venerable man with a long beard,
the Son is represented by the picture of Jesus Christ, and the Holy Ghost
is represented as a dove. Does this mean that God the Father, as well as
the Son, took human nature? Does the fact that the Father is represented
as a very old man indicate that the Father existed before the Son and the
Holy Ghost?
(16) In the pictures just mentioned why is the Holy Ghost portrayed as a
dove? Describe the incident on which this method of portraying the third
Person is based. Did the third Person on that occasion take to Himself the
nature of a dove in the same way that the second Person took to Himself
human nature at the Incarnation?
(17) In the present lesson you have learned that the second Person of the
Holy Trinity is called the Word. Do you know which of the four
Evangelists uses this term for the Son of God in his Gospel? Do you
know at what part of the Mass we use this term in the expression “The
Word was made flesh?”
(18) When Our Lord worked miracles, such as the healing of the sick, in
the course of His mortal life, He used His divine power. Now, was this
divine power exercised by the second Person only, or was it exercised by
the three Divine Persons?
– LESSON 4 –
Creation and the Angels
35. What do we mean when we say that God is the Creator of heaven
and earth?
When we say that God is the Creator of heaven and earth we mean
that He made all things from nothing by His almighty power.
(a) Only God can create, that is, make something from nothing, because
creation requires infinite power, which God alone possesses.
(b) All things except God depend on a cause for their existence and
hence must have been created by God.4
4 (Read the first book of the Bible, Genesis, which describes the creation of the universe.)
(c) God did not have to create the world; He did so freely.
(d) God preserves all creatures; otherwise, they would at once return to
nothingness. He also governs all things, and in the divine government of
the world nothing does or can happen unless God wills or permits it.
(e) Evil is the lack of some perfection. God does not will physical evil in
itself but only insofar as it is connected with some good.
(f) God wills or permits the physical evils of life in order to punish sin, to
make sinners repent, to try the just and make them worthy of everlasting
reward, or to be the occasion of some other greater good.
“Thus saith the Lord, thy redeemer, and thy maker from the womb: I am
the Lord, that make all things, that alone stretch out the heavens, that
establish the earth. And there is none with me” (Isaias 44:24).
“For in him were created all things in the heavens and on the earth, things
visible and things invisible, whether Thrones, or Dominations, or
Principalities, or Powers. All things have been created through and unto
him, and he is before all creatures, and in him all things hold together”
(Colossians 1:16-17).
(a) It is a matter of faith that God the Creator produced out of nothing
creatures both spiritual and corporal, angelic and earthly. 5
5 (Fourth Lateran and Vatican Councils.)
SCRIPTURE:
See Daniel 3:57ff. See also Scripture, question 35, Colossians 1:16-17.
(a) Reason alone cannot prove that the angels exist. Reason indicates
that, just as there are purely material creatures and creatures composed of
both matter and spirit, so also it is fitting that there should be purely
spiritual creatures.
(b) Angels are spiritual beings inferior to God and superior to man.
(c) Sacred Scripture frequently speaks of the angels and mentions three
by name: the Archangels Michael, Gabriel, and Raphael.6
6 (Michael–Daniel 10:13-21: Jude 1:9; Apocalypse 12:7; Gabriel–Daniel 8:16; 9:21; Luke 1:19-26; Raphael–Tobias 3:25;
5:17; 6:16; 8:3; 9:6; 11:7; and 12:15)
(d) The nine “choirs” of angels are the Seraphim, Cherubim, Thrones,
Dominations, Virtues, Powers, Principalities, Archangels, and Angels. 7
7 (Seraphim–Isaias 6:2; Cherubim–Genesis 3:24; Ezechiel 10:1-22; Ecclesiasticus 49:10; Thrones, Dominations,
Principalities, Powers–Colossians 1:16; Virtures–Ephesians 1:21; Archangel–I Thessalonians 4:16; Angel–Matthew 18:10)
“Or dost thou suppose that I cannot entreat my Father, and he will even
now furnish me with more than twelve legions of angels?” (Matthew
26:53).
“Are they not all ministering spirits, sent for service, for the sake of those
who shall inherit salvation?” (Hebrews 1:14).
“Rash and self-willed, such men in their deriding do not regard majesty;
whereas angels, though greater in strength and power, do not bring against
themselves an abusive charge” (II Peter 2:11).
38. What gifts did God bestow on the angels when He created them?
(a) God bestowed upon the angels supernatural grace by which they
could gain eternal happiness.
(b) The angels were given the opportunity to merit the reward of heaven
by remaining faithful to God.
Not all the angels remained faithful to God; some of them sinned.
(a) We do not know the exact nature of the test to which God put the
angels that they might prove themselves worthy of eternal happiness.
(b) The angels who were unfaithful committed a serious sin, for which
they were punished.
SCRIPTURE:
“For God did not spare the angels when they sinned but dragged them
down by infernal ropes to Tartarus, and delivered them to be tortured and
kept in custody for judgment” (II Peter 2:4).
“And the angels also who did not preserve their original state, but forsook
their abode, he has kept in everlasting chains under darkness for the
judgment of the great day” (Jude 6).
The angels who remained faithful to God entered into the eternal
happiness of heaven, and these are called good angels.
SCRIPTURE:
“See that you do not despise one of these little ones for I tell you, their
angels in heaven always behold the face of my Father in heaven”
(Matthew 18:10).
(a) The Old and the New Testament refer frequently to the work of the
good angels among men. A good angel was the guide of God’s chosen
people (Exodus 23:20); the protector of Tobias was a good angel (Tobias
5 ff). The Archangel Gabriel announced the glad tidings of the
Incarnation to Our Blessed Mother (Luke 1:28).
(b) Although angels are pure spirits, they can be seen by man when on
special occasions God permits them to take on bodies or the appearance
of bodies, which are visible to the human eye.
SCRIPTURE:
“For to his angels he has given thee in trust, to keep thee in all thy ways. In
their hands they shall bear thee up, lest thou dash thy foot against a stone”
(Psalm 90:11-12).
“Now in the sixth month the angel Gabriel was sent from God to a town of
Galilee called Nazareth, to a virgin betrothed to a man named Joseph, of
the house of David, and the virgin’s name was Mary. And when the angel
had come to her, he said, ‘Hail, full of grace, the Lord is with thee. Blessed
art thou among women” (Luke 1:26-28).
(a) It is a matter of faith that angels are deputed as the guardians of men.
(b) It is commonly held that each individual has a special guardian angel.
SCRIPTURE:
“When thou didst pray with tears, and didst bury the dead, and didst leave
thy dinner, and hide the dead by day in thy house, and bury them by night,
I offered thy prayer to the Lord .... For I am the angel Raphael, one of the
seven, who stand before the Lord” (Tobias 12:12,15).
44. What happened to the angels who did not remain faithful to God?
The angels who did not remain faithful to God were cast into hell,
and these are called bad angels, or devils.
(a) The devils, or the evil spirits, were created by God, not as bad beings
but as good beings. By their own free acts, they chose evil and thereby
became bad angels.
SCRIPTURE:
“Depart from me, accursed ones, into the everlasting fire which was
prepared for the devil and his angels” (Matthew 25:41).
45. What is the chief way in which the bad angels try to harm us?
The chief way in which the bad angels try to harm us is by tempting
us to sin.
(a) Devils are sometimes permitted to enter the body of a man and to
exercise power over his faculties–a state known as diabolical possession;
or they are permitted to torment a person from without-a state known as
diabolical obsession.
(c) When the devil uses the body of a possessed person to say or do evil
things, the person is not guilty of sin, provided he does not freely
consent.
(d) Exorcism is the act of driving out or warding off evil spirits from
persons, places, or things possessed or infested by them. The Church
received from Christ the power of exorcism.
“Then having summoned his twelve disciples, he gave them power over
unclean spirits, to cast them out” (Matthew 10:1).
“Put on the armor of God, that you may be able to stand against the wiles
of the devil” (Ephesians 6:11).
“Be sober, be watchful! For your adversary the devil, as a roaring lion,
goes about seeking someone to devour. Resist him, steadfast in the faith,
knowing that the same suffering befalls your brethren all over the world”
(I Peter 5:8-9).
(a) The bad angels, the persons and things about us, and we ourselves can
excite the senses and be an inducement to sin.
SCRIPTURE:
“For I am delighted with the law of God according to the inner man, but I
see another law in my members, warring against the law of my mind and
making me prisoner to the law of sin that is in my members” (Romans
7:22-23).
“Let no man say when he is tempted, that he is tempted by God; for God is
no tempter to evil, and he himself tempts no one. But everyone is tempted
by being drawn away and enticed by his own passion” (James 1:13-14).
“Do not love the world, or the things that are in the world” (I John 2:15).
(a) God does not demand the impossible; however He warns us that in
our efforts to overcome temptation we must not rely entirely on ourselves
but must seek His help.
“Therefore let him who thinks he stands take heed lest he fall. May no
temptation take hold of you but such as man is equal to. God is faithful and
will not permit you to be tempted beyond your strength, but with the
temptation will also give you a way out that you may be able to bear it” ( I
Corinthians 10:12-13).
“And he has said to me, ‘My grace is sufficient for thee’ “ (II Corinthians
12:9).
In the first chapter of the Bible we read that in the beginning God created
heaven and earth; and then the Sacred Scripture tells us that in the course
of six days God made the various elements of the universe–the sun and
moon and stars, the plants and the animals, and finally man. These six
“days” need not be understood as days of twenty-four hours each–they
may each have been periods of many thousands of years in duration.
Column I
(9) When the devils enter the body of a person, it is called (. .).
(10) When the devils torment a person from without, it is called (. .).
Column 11
(I) Michael.
(J) Lucifer.
(1) Dora’s friends are praising her oil painting “The Good Shepherd.”
One of them calls it “a superb creation.” Is it a “creation” in the sense of
the word as it is used in this lesson? If not, why not?
(3) Heinrich wants to know how the shepherds watching their flock on
Christmas night on Bethlehem’s hillside were able to see the angels,
since angels are pure spirits without bodies. What reply is to be given to
him?
(4) Mention two occasions in Our Lord’s adult life when one, or several,
of the angels appeared to Him.
(5) Did Lucifer ever enjoy the Beatific Vision? Add a reason to your
answer.
(6) How did St. Michael win his present happiness in heaven?
(7) Geraldine, in the seventh grade of the school of St. Felicitas, was
asked in religion class: “Have you any regular devotion to the Archangel,
St. Michael?” She answered “No”; but she has – and so have you, for at
least once every week we pray to this great saint. When and where is this
devotion practiced?
(8) Of all the myriads of angels now with God, we know the names of
how many? Who are they? Have we any knowledge of how the angels
are classified or grouped? Explain your answer.
(9) Name the chief of the rebel angels. By what other scriptural names is
he known? To what does St. Peter liken him?
(11) Learn the following prayer to your guardian angel, which is richly
indulgenced by the Church: Angel of God, my guardian dear, To whom His love commits
me here; Ever this day be at my side, To light and guard, to rule and guide. Amen.
(12) Do you think that your guardian angel knows what you are going to
do tomorrow? Do you think the devil knows?
(13) St. John Baptist Vianney, a holy parish priest who lived in France
about the middle of the nineteenth century, was frequently and violently
assailed by the devil. Sometimes the evil spirit made loud noises in his
room at night, thus depriving the good priest of his rest. What do we call
this kind of activity by the devil? Do you think that God allowed it for
some sins that St. John may have committed in his earlier days? What
other reason can you suggest for this permission on the part of God?
What would it be called if the devil had been allowed to take up his
abode in the holy man’s body and speak through his lips?
– LESSON 5 –
The Creation and the Fall of Man
Man is a creature composed of body and soul, and made to the image
and likeness of God.
(a) The soul and the body are not loosely connected parts of man; they
are united in a substantial union to form one complete human nature. The
soul is not located in any particular member of the body but is whole and
entire in each part.
SCRIPTURE:
“And the Lord God formed man of the slime of the earth, and breathed
into his face the breath of life; and man became a living soul” (Genesis
2:7).
“And God created man to his own image; to the image of God he created
him. Male and female he created them” (Genesis 1:27).
(a) All creatures bear some resemblance to God inasmuch as they exist.
Plants and animals resemble Him insofar as they have life, but none of
these creatures is made to the image and likeness of God. Plants and
animals do not have a rational soul, such as man has, by which they
might know and love God.
(a) Men are especially like God when they know and love Him: first, in a
merely natural way without the aid of grace; second, in a supernatural way
here on earth, with the aid of grace; third, in a perfect way in heaven, with
the aid of the special light God gives to the souls of the blessed.
(c) Conscience is that judgment by which we decide here and now what
we should do as good or avoid as evil.
(d) Free will is that power of the soul to choose either to act or not to act.
“And the dust return into its earth, from whence it was, and the spirit
return to God, who gave it” (Ecclesiastes 12:7).
“Do not be afraid of those who kill the body but cannot kill the soul”
(Matthew 10:28).
“These will go into everlasting punishment, but the just into everlasting
life” (Matthew 25:46).
The first man and woman were Adam and Eve, the first parents of
the whole human race.
(a) The theory of evolution which teaches that higher forms of life
develop from lower forms has offered no convincing, scientific proof that
the human body developed gradually from that of a lower animal.
(c) The human soul, being spiritual, could not possibly have developed
from a lower, material form of life.
(d) Sacred Scripture teaches that Adam’s soul, like every human soul,
was created directly by God.
52. What was the chief gift bestowed on Adam and Eve by God?
The chief gift bestowed on Adam and Eve by God was sanctifying
grace, which made them children of God and gave them the right to
heaven.
(b) Together with sanctifying grace God gave Adam and Eve the
supernatural virtues and the gifts of the Holy Ghost.
SCRIPTURE:
“For just as by the disobedience of the one man the many were constituted
sinners, so also by the obedience of the one the many will be constituted
just” (Romans 5:19).
53. What other gifts were bestowed on Adam and Eve by God?
The other gifts bestowed on Adam and Eve by God were happiness
in the Garden of Paradise, great knowledge, control of the passions
by reason, and freedom from suffering and death.
(a) These gifts are not supernatural or above all created natures, but they
are preternatural, that is, beyond the powers of human nature, though not
above all created natures.
(b) If Adam had not sinned, these gifts would have been transmitted to all
men as the possession of human nature.
SCRIPTURE:
“He created of him a helpmate like to himself: he gave them counsel, and a
tongue and eyes, and ears, and a heart to devise: and he filled them with
the knowledge of understanding. He created in them the science of the
spirit: he filled their heart with wisdom, and shewed them both good and
evil” (Eccesiasticus 17:5-6)
“Therefore as through one man sin entered into the world and through sin
death, and thus death has passed unto all men because all have sinned–for
until the Law sin was in the world, but sin is not imputed when there is no
law” (Romans 5:12-13).
God gave Adam and Eve the commandment not to eat of the fruit of
a certain tree that grew in the Garden of Paradise. 9
9 (Read the third chapter of the Book of Genesis)
(a) God wished to test the obedience of our first parents in order that they
might have the privilege of proving themselves faithful to Him and of
meriting, in a special way, everlasting happiness in heaven.
SCRIPTURE:
“And he commanded him, saying: Of every tree of paradise thou shalt eat:
But of the tree of knowledge of good and evil, thou shalt not eat. For in
what day soever thou shalt eat of it, thou shalt die the death” (Genesis
2:16-17).
Adam and Eve did not obey the commandment of God, but ate of the
forbidden fruit.
(a) In eating the forbidden fruit Adam and Eve committed sins of pride
and disobedience. Our first parents sinned grievously because they
deliberately disobeyed a grave command of God.
SCRIPTURE:
“And the woman saw that the tree was good to eat, and fair to the eyes,
and delightful to behold: and she took of the fruit thereof, and did eat, and
gave to her husband who did eat” (Genesis 3:6).
On account of their sin Adam and Eve lost sanctifying grace, the
right to heaven, and their special gifts; they became subject to death,
to suffering, and to a strong inclination to evil, and they were driven
from the Garden of Paradise.
(a) The loss of sanctifying grace and the special gifts marked the
beginning of that conflict between man’s lower powers and his reason, of
which Saint Paul says, “The flesh lusts against the spirit, and the spirit
against the flesh …” (Galatians 5:17).
(b) Sacred Scripture teaches us that Adam, by the grace of God, later
obtained the remission of his sin.
SCRIPTURE:
“In the sweat of thy face shalt thou eat bread till thou return to the earth,
out of which thou wast taken: for dust thou art, and into dust thou shalt
return” (Genesis 3:19)
“And the Lord God made for Adam and his wife garments of skins, and
clothed them” (Genesis 3:21).
“And the Lord God sent him out of the paradise of pleasure, to till the
earth from which he was taken” (Genesis 3:23).
“She preserved him, that was first formed by God, the father of the world,
when he was created alone, and she brought him out of his sin and gave
him power to govern all things” (Wisdom 10:1-2).
On account of the sin of Adam, we, his descendants, come into the
world deprived of sanctifying grace and inherit his punishment, as
we would have inherited his gifts had he been obedient to God.
SCRIPTURE:
“But, by the envy of the devil, death came into the world” (Wisdom 2:24).
“For just as by the disobedience of the one man the many were constituted
sinners, so also by the obedience of the one the many will be constituted
just” (Romans 5:19).
60. What are the chief punishments of Adam which we inherit through
original sin?
(a) The fact of original sin explains why man is so often tempted to evil
and why he so easily turns from God.
(b) Because of the ignorance resulting from original sin, the mind of man
has difficulty in knowing many necessary truths, easily falls into error,
and is more inclined to consider temporal than eternal things.
“For the imagination and thought of man’s heart are prone to evil from his
youth” (Genesis 8:21).
Adam and Eve, having lost the grace of God by their sin, became subject
to ignorance, uncontrolled passions, pain, and death, and they were
banished from the earthly paradise.
At the bottom, the Angel of the Lord, armed with a flaming sword, is
driving Adam and Eve from the earthly paradise. Subject to the miseries
of life, they will fall under the blow of Death, who waits for them with a
scythe in his hand.
The Cross of Jesus Christ, which is seen at the top left, signifies that Our
Lord delivered us from original sin by His death. God had promised this
deliverance to our first parents by announcing to them that one day a son
of the woman would crush the head of the infernal serpent.
62. Was any human person ever preserved from original sin?
The Blessed Virgin Mary was preserved from original sin in view of
the merits of her Divine Son; and this privilege is called her
Immaculate Conception.
(a) In the first instant of her conception the Blessed Virgin Mary
possessed the fullness of sanctifying grace, the infused virtues, and the
gifts of the Holy Ghost. She was, however, subject to pain and suffering,
as was her Divine Son.
(b) By a special privilege of Almighty God, Our Blessed Mother was free
throughout her life from all actual sin, both mortal and venial.
SCRIPTURE:
“I will put enmities between you and the woman, between your seed and
her seed: he shall crush your head, and you shall lie in wait for his heel”
(Genesis 3:15).
“And when the angel had come to her, he said, ‘Hail, full of grace, the
Lord is with thee. Blessed art thou among women’ ” (Luke 1:28).
The Bible describes in great detail the beginning of the human race. God
created a man, named Adam, forming his body from the dust of earth and
creating his soul. Shortly afterward God made Eve from a rib of Adam,
whose wife she was to be. Then the Almighty blessed the pair as husband
and wife, bidding them: “Increase and multiply” (Genesis 1:28). God
bestowed on Adam and Eve wonderful privileges. They dwelt in a
beautiful garden; they were free from inordinate inclinations to sin; they
were preserved from suffering; they were destined never to die, but after
a space of time on earth, to be taken, body and soul, into heaven. Above
all, they were endowed with the precious gift of sanctifying grace, that
made them the beloved children of God.
It was God’s plan that these privileges should be transferred from Adam
to all his descendants. However, He made this dependent on the
faithfulness of Adam in obeying His command not to eat the fruit of a
particular tree. Adam disobeyed; and hence lost these precious gifts for
himself and for all his descendants. Eve also sinned and lost the
privileges for herself. There was no injustice on God’s part in depriving
Adam’s descendants of these privileges because of his sin. The favors He
gave our first parents were purely gratuitous; our first parents had no
right to them. Hence, there was no injustice on the part of God in
withholding them from Adam’s descendants. It was as if a wealthy man
told a poor man he could live in a splendid house on his property and
pass it on to his descendants, if he would obey a certain command; if the
poor man disobeyed, and accordingly lost the fine residence for himself
and for his children, the rich man would be doing them no wrong by
depriving them of the house.
The entire human race is descended from Adam and Eve; hence, we all
enter the world deprived of the gifts we should have had if Adam had not
sinned. The deprivation of sanctifying grace, called original sin, brings
with it the necessity of submitting to suffering and to death. This is the
significance of the words spoken by God to Adam after his sin, and
repeated to each of the faithful on Ash Wednesday when the priest places
ashes on his brow: “Remember, man, that thou art dust, and into dust
thou shalt return” (Genesis 3:19). Yet, through the goodness of God we
can recover sanctifying grace, and even though we are not restored
entirely to the original state of our first parents, who were free from
suffering and death and inordinate inclinations to sin, we can make these
penalties of Adam’s transgression the occasions of practicing virtue.
TRUE OR FALSE
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the following statements as either true or false. The
correct answers can be found in the preceding portion of the lesson.)
(2) There are some races of men who are not descended from Adam and
Eve.
(3) If Adam had been obedient to God we should have come into the
world in sanctifying grace.
(5) God does not deprive us, on account of original sin, of anything to
which we have a strict right as human beings.
(6) The freedom from suffering and death granted to Adam and Eve was
not a supernatural gift.
(7) A human being even in the state of original sin can perform some
good deeds.
(8) Adam did not obtain the pardon of his sin.
(10) The Immaculate Conception means that the Blessed Virgin Mary
became the mother of Christ without losing her virginity.
(1) Alice and Zita are in an ice cream parlor and are about to order some
refreshments. Show how they may exercise their free wills in the
enjoyment of the treat.
(2) Bartholomew and his brother Yves are amused by the stunts of the
trained animals at the circus. The animals can perform many wonderful
tricks at the orders of their masters and mistresses. Are such animals
intelligent? Have they understanding and free will? If not, how do you
explain their actions?
(3) Amelia’s pet kitten, Tabby, was run over and killed by an automobile.
Amelia is greatly saddened over the mishap. Did Tabby have a soul? Will
Tabby’s soul ever come back to make Tabby live again? Explain your
answers.
(5) Theresa tells Ursula there must necessarily be perfect and complete
harmony between genuine scientific discoveries and the revelations of
God in the Bible and in Tradition. Ursula asks why. Theresa’s reply is:
“God is the Author of the Bible and Tradition, and the same God is the
Author of the Book of Nature. God cannot contradict Himself.” Write
two or three sentences containing your approval of Theresa’s answer.
(6) Edith has a bad attack of the mumps. Do you think we should have
had the mumps if Adam had not sinned?
(7) Caroline wonders if original sin has anything to do with her poor
report card of last month. Has it? Explain your answer.
(8) If, up to the present day, the human race were sinless would there be
any hospitals, funerals, cemeteries, prisons, insane asylums, or wars?
What is the reason for your answer?
(9) With the preceding question and answer in mind, write a paragraph of
four or five sentences telling what you think about the effects of original
sin. Compare original sin with other evils.
(10) Annually, how are we reminded by the Church of the penalty the
human race must pay for original sin?
Original sin is not the only kind of sin; there is another kind, called
actual sin, which we ourselves commit.
There are two kinds of actual sin: mortal sin and venial sin.
“Flee from sins as from the face of a serpent: for if thou comest near them,
they will take hold of thee. The teeth thereof are the teeth of a lion, killing
the souls of men” (Ecclesiasticus 21:2-3).
68. Besides depriving the sinner of sanctifying grace, what else does
mortal sin do to the soul?
“But, if the just man turn himself away from his justice and do iniquity
according to all the abominations which the wicked man useth to work,
shall he live? All his justices which he hath done shall not be remembered:
in the prevarication by which he hath prevaricated and in his sin which he
hath committed, in them he shall die” (Ezechiel 18:24).
“Then when passion has conceived, it brings forth sin; but when sin has
matured, it begets death” (James 1:15).
To make a sin mortal these three things are necessary: first, the thought,
desire, word, action, or omission must be seriously wrong or considered
seriously wrong; second, the sinner must be mindful of the serious wrong;
third, the sinner must fully consent to it.
(a) Things seriously evil are known to be such from Sacred Scripture,
Tradition, the teachings of the Church, or from the nature of the acts
themselves.
(b) The sinner is mindful of the serious wrong if at the time he commits
the sin or places a cause from which he foresees the sin will follow, he
either is clearly aware or at least thinks that the action is grievously
sinful.
(e) When a person does wrong but is in no way mindful of it, he is said to
commit a material sin; for example, a person who misses Mass,
unmindful that it is Sunday, commits a material sin. God does not hold us
accountable for material sins and they do not deprive us of sanctifying
grace.
SCRIPTURE:
“Before man is life and death, good and evil: that which he shall choose
shall be given him” (Ecclesiasticus 15:18).
Venial sin is a less serious offense against the law of God, which does
not deprive the soul of sanctifying grace, and which can be pardoned
even without sacramental Confession.
(a) Venial sin, under certain conditions, can become mortal: first, when an
action which is not seriously wrong is performed by a person who thinks
it is seriously wrong; second, by reason of circumstances affecting the act;
for example, if a person under oath to tell the truth were to lie about a
light matter; third, when the matter of several sins, in themselves not
serious, adds up to a serious amount; for example, if someone were to
steal small sums of money which would accumulate to a serious amount.
A sin can be venial in two ways: first, when the evil done is not
seriously wrong; second, when the evil done is seriously wrong, but the
sinner sincerely believes it is only slightly wrong, or does not give full
consent to it.
“But I tell you, that of every idle word men speak, they shall give account
on the day of judgment” (Matthew 12:36).
The chief sources of actual sin are: pride, covetousness, lust, anger,
gluttony, envy, and sloth, and these are commonly called capital sins.
(e) Gluttony is the inordinate desire for food and drink. It is opposed to
the virtue of temperance.
(g) Sloth is the distaste for spiritual things because their attainment
requires much labor. It is opposed to the virtue of charity.
They are called capital sins not because they, in themselves, are the
greatest sins, but because they are the chief reasons why men commit
sin.
(g) Sloth is the source of the neglect to perform good works that are of
grave obligation.
The near occasions of sin are all persons, places, or things that may
easily lead us into sin.
(a) There is a grave obligation to avoid the near occasion of mortal sin.
(b) If circumstances force us into the near occasion of sin, we are obliged
to make use of the necessary safeguards, such as prayer and the frequent
reception of the sacraments of Penance and Holy Eucharist.
We must all be on our guard against the capital sins, which are the
sources of all the other sins. It is not sufficient to resolve not to give in to
the capital sins–we must strive to practice the opposite virtues. Everyone
should honestly examine his own character and find out his predominant
passion-–that is, the type of sin to which he is most inclined–and try
earnestly to overcome it. With God’s grace, he shall eventually succeed.
We must particularly avoid the near occasions of sin. Nowadays there are
many occasions of sin in the world, such as bad books, heretical or
improper radio programs, indecent motion pictures, vile theatrical
exhibitions, and persons who try to lead others into sin by their bad
speech or wicked conduct. Those who frequent unnecessarily the
occasions of sin are running a great risk. “He that loveth danger shall
perish in it” (Ecclus. 3:27).
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTION. (Select the word or phrase in the parentheses which most exactly and
most completely fills out the sentence):
(1) When a person eats meat on Friday without realizing that it is Friday
he commits a (formal . . . material . . . venial) sin.
(3) Pride is called a capital sin because it is (one of the chief reasons why
men commit sin . . . a sin that will not be forgiven . . . a mortal sin).
(5) If a man goes into a saloon, knowing that for him it is a near occasion
of grave sins of intemperance, but on one particular occasion does not
drink to excess, he commits (no sin . . . a mortal sin . . .a venial sin) .
(7) A person who eats too much commits a sin of (sloth . . . gluttony . . .
covetousness).
(9) When a person commits several venial sins of envy, (they remain
venial sins . . . unite to form one greater venial sin . . . unite to form one
mortal sin).
(4) What bad effects does venial sin work in our spiritual life?
(5) Percival wants to know how many venial sins it takes to make a
mortal sin? How do you answer his question?
(7) Isabella asks if God ever allows anyone to be tempted beyond his
strength to resist. Answer her, and in your answer tell her what St. Paul
says about the matter.
(8) What are the virtues opposed to the capital sins, and which capital
sins do they oppose?
(9) Evangeline is making her first school retreat. The retreat master
makes frequent reference to “our predominant passion.” What does he
mean? Write your explanation in three or four sentences.
(10) What does the Bible say about taking unnecessary moral risks?
(12) Hortense goes to the movies frequently, but she never tries
beforehand to find out whether the picture is good or bad, and
consequently sometimes she goes to a picture that is a near occasion of
sin for her. Does Hortense commit a sin? Explain.
– LESSON 7 –
The Incarnation
77. Did God abandon man after Adam fell into sin?
God did not abandon man after Adam fell into sin, but promised to
send into the world a Saviour to free man from his sins and to reopen
to him the gates of heaven.
(a) God could have abandoned man and allowed the human race to suffer
the just penalty of never seeing Him face to face in heaven. In His
infinite love and mercy, God took pity on Adam and his descendants and
gave them the chance of salvation through the promised Redeemer.
SCRIPTURE:
“For God so loved the world that he gave his only-begotten Son, that those
who believe in him may not perish, but may have life everlasting” (John
3:16).
“And we have seen; and do testify, that the Father has sent his Son to be
Saviour of the world” ( I John 4:14).
(b) That Jesus Christ is the promised Saviour can be proved from the
prophecies of the Old Testament which are fulfilled in Him; from His
own testimony, which is worthy of belief; and from the miracles He
worked in proof of His divine mission, especially His Resurrection.
“For there is one God, and one Mediator between God and men, himself
man, Christ Jesus, who gave himself a ransom for all, bearing witness in
his own time” (I Timothy 2:5-6).
79. What is the chief teaching of the Catholic Church about Jesus
Christ?
The chief teaching of the Catholic Church about Jesus Christ is that
He is God made man.
SCRIPTURE:
“And the angel said to her, ‘Do not be afraid, Mary, for thou hast found
grace with God. Behold, thou shalt conceive in thy womb and shalt bring
forth a son; and thou shalt call his name Jesus. He shall be great, and shall
be called the Son of the Most High; and the Lord God will give him the
throne of David his father, and he shall be king over the house of Jacob
forever; and of his kingdom there shall be no end.’ But Mary said to the
angel, ‘How shall this happen, since I do not know man?’ And the angel
answered and said to her, ‘The Holy Spirit shall come upon thee and the
power of the Most High shall overshadow thee; and therefore the Holy
One to be born shall be called the Son of God’ ” (Luke 1:30-35).
“In the beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God; and the
Word was God...And the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us. And
we saw his glory glory as of the only-begotten of the Father full of grace
and of truth” (John1:1, 14).
Jesus Christ is God because He is the only Son of God, having the
same divine nature as His Father.
(a) Jesus Christ is the second Person of the Blessed Trinity, who from
eternity proceeds by true spiritual generation from the Father.
(b) We believe Jesus Christ is God because God Himself revealed this
truth: first, through the Prophets of the Old Testament who foretold that
the promised Redeemer would be God; second, through Christ Himself,
who claimed to be God and confirmed His own testimony by the holiness
of His life, by the fulfillment of His prophecies, and by the miracles He
worked in His own name and by His own power, especially His
Resurrection.
(d) The senses must be able to observe a miracle if it is to have the value
of a proof for us.
(e) Only God can be the principal cause of a miracle because a miracle
surpasses the power of all creatures. God sometimes uses creatures as
instruments in performing miracles.
(g) The following are some of Christ’s miracles: He restored sight to the
blind, cured lepers in an instant, walked on the waters of the sea,
multiplied the loaves and fishes, raised the dead to life, and finally, rose
from the dead Himself by His own divine power.
“The Lord has said to me: ‘Thou art my son, this day have I begotten thee.
Ask of me and I will give thee the gentiles for thine inheritance, and the
ends of the earth as thy possession’ ” (Psalm 2:7-8).
“And the high priest said to him, ‘I adjure thee by the living God that thou
tell us whether thou art the Christ, the Son of God.’ Jesus said to him,
‘Thou hast said it. Nevertheless, I say to you, hereafter you shall see the
Son of Man sitting at the right hand of the Power and coming upon the
clouds of heaven’ ” (Matthew 26:63-64).
“But he answered and said to them, ‘An evil and adulterous generation
demands a sign, and no sign shall be given it but the sign of Jonas the
prophet. For even as Jonas was in the belly of the fish three days and three
nights, so will the Son of Man be three days and three nights in the heart of
the earth’ ” (Matthew 12:39-40).
“They let down the pallet on which the paralytic was lying. And Jesus,
seeing their faith, said to the paralytic, ‘Son, thy sins are forgiven thee.’
Now some of the Scribes were sitting there and reasoning in their hearts,
‘Why does this man speak thus? He blasphemes. Who can forgive sins, but
only God?’ And at once Jesus, knowing in his spirit that they so reasoned
within themselves, said to them, ‘Why are you arguing these things in your
hearts? Which is easier, to say to the paralytic, “Thy sins are forgiven
thee,” or to say, “Arise, and take up thy pallet, and walk?” But that you
may know that the Son of Man has power on earth to forgive sins’ – he
said to the paralytic – ’I say to thee, arise, take up thy pallet, and go to thy
house.’ And immediately he arose and, taking up his pallet, went forth in
the sight of all, so that they were all amazed, and glorified God, saying,
‘Never did we see the like’ ” (Mark 2:4-12).
“Thomas answered and said to him, ‘My Lord and my God!’ Jesus said to
him, ‘Because thou hast seen me, thou hast believed. Blessed are they who
have not seen, and yet have believed’ ” (John 20:28-29).
Jesus Christ is man because He is the Son of the Blessed Virgin Mary
and has a body and soul like ours.
(a) Although Christ’s conception and birth were miraculous, He, like
other men, came into the world as an infant, having Mary for His Mother.
Since His origin from the Blessed Virgin is true generation, Mary is the
Mother of Jesus Christ, who is God, and she is therefore truly the Mother
of God.
(b) Christ, like other men, ate, drank, became tired, slept, and walked
through Judea, Galilee, and Samaria.
(c) Christ, as man, was the most perfect of all men. He was endowed
with human intelligence and free will; but He was free from all ignorance
and error, from all sin and imperfection.
(d) The human soul of Christ could suffer as well as His body. For
example, Christ was sorrowful unto death. In the garden of Gethsemani
He said to His disciples: “My soul is sad, even unto death. Wait here and
watch with me” (Matthew 26:38).
No, Jesus Christ is only one Person; and that Person is the second
Person of the Blessed Trinity.
“For a child is born to us, and a son is given to us, and the government is
upon his shoulder: and his name shall be called, Wonderful, Counsellor,
God the Mighty, the Father of the world to come, the Prince of Peace”
(Isaias 9:6).
“For God so loved the world that he gave his only-begotten Son, that those
who believe in him may not perish, but may have life everlasting” (John
3:16).
Jesus Christ has two natures: the nature of God and the nature of
man.
(b) Christ proved He had both the nature of God and the nature of man
by doing some things that only God could do, and other things that men
do.
(c) It is heresy to deny the divine nature of Jesus Christ by accepting Him
as merely a perfect man; it is also heresy to deny His human nature.
(d) The following is the defined teaching of the Church: “I also believe in
the Son of God, the Word, begotten of the Father in eternity, before all
time ... born in time of the Holy Ghost from Mary, ever virgin; born with
a rational soul; having two nativities, one eternal of the Father, the other
in time, of His Mother.” 10
10 (Leo IX, April, 1053)
SCRIPTURE:
“For I could wish to be anathema myself from Christ for the sake of my
brethren, who are my kinsmen according to the flesh; who are Israelites,
who have the adoption as sons, and the glory and the covenants and the
legislation and the worship and the promises; who have the fathers, and
from whom is the Christ according to the flesh, who is, over all things,
God blessed forever, amen” (Romans 9:3-5).
“Have this mind in you which was also in Christ Jesus, who though he was
by nature God, did not consider being equal to God a thing to be clung to,
but emptied himself, taking the nature of a slave and being made like unto
men. And appearing in the form of man, he humbled himself, becoming
obedient to death, even to death on a cross” (Philippians 2:5-8).
The Son of God was not always man, but became man at the time of
the Incarnation.
SCRIPTURE:
“But when the fullness of time came, God sent his Son, born of a woman,
born under the Law, that he might redeem those who were under the Law,
that we might receive the adoption of sons” (Galatians 4:4-5).
By the Incarnation is meant that the Son of God, retaining His divine
nature, took to Himself a human nature, that is, a body and soul like
ours.
(a) The union of the second Person of the Blessed Trinity with human
nature is called the hypostatic union.
The Son of God was conceived and made man by the power of the
Holy Ghost in the womb of the Blessed Virgin Mary.
(a) The conception of the son of God in the womb is attributed to the
power of the third Person of the Blessed Trinity because the Holy Ghost
proceeds from the love of the Father and the Son, and the Incarnation is a
work of God’s great love for mankind.
(b) All three Persons of the Holy Trinity performed the act of divine
power whereby the Incarnation took place. But Catholic faith teaches that
only the second Person took to Himself a human nature.
SCRIPTURE:
“And the angel answered and said to her, ‘The Holy Spirit shall come upon
thee and the power of the Most High shall overshadow thee; and therefore
the Holy One to be born shall be called the Son of God’ ” (Luke 1:35).
87. When was the Son of God conceived and made man?
The Son of God was conceived and made man on Annunciation Day,
the day on which the Angel Gabriel announced to the Blessed Virgin
Mary that she was to be the Mother of God.
(c) Mary, the Mother of God, remained a virgin not only in the
conception of Christ but also in His birth and during the rest of her life.
(e) After her death, the body of the Blessed Virgin, reunited with her
soul, was miraculously taken up into heaven. The Church observes this
event in the Feast of the Assumption.
Jesus Christ had no human father, but Saint Joseph was the spouse
of the Blessed Virgin Mary and the guardian, or foster father, of
Christ.
(a) God the Father is the only true Father of Jesus Christ.
(b) Christ was the only child of Mary. The brothers and sisters of Christ
mentioned in the Bible were cousins.
(c) Saint Joseph’s high dignity, grace, holiness, and glory have their
source in the fact that he was the husband of the Blessed Virgin Mary and
the foster father of the Son of God. Saint Joseph is the patron of the
Universal Church.
SCRIPTURE:
“And Jesus himself, when he began his work, was about thirty years of
age, being–as was supposed–the son of Joseph” (Luke 3:23).
The Annunciation of the Blessed Virgin Mary (picture)
This picture shows the angel Gabriel greeting the Most Holy Virgin in
prayer in her house at Nazareth. He announces to Her that God has
chosen Her to be the Mother of the Savior. At the same instant, the Holy
Spirit, through a great miracle, works in Her the mystery of the
Incarnation.
“Now in the sixth month the angel Gabriel was sent from God to a town
of Galilee called Nazareth, to a virgin betrothed to a man named Joseph,
of the house of David, and the virgin’s name was Mary. And when the
angel had come to her, he said, ‘Hail, full of grace, the Lord is with thee.
Blessed art thou among women.’ When she had heard him she was
troubled at his word, and kept pondering what manner of greeting this
might be.
“And the angel said to her, ‘Do not be afraid, Mary, for thou hast found
grace with God. Behold, thou shalt conceive in thy womb and shalt bring
forth a son; and thou shalt call his Name Jesus. He shall be great, and
shall be called the Son of the Most High, and the Lord God will give him
the throne of David his father, and he shall be king over the house of
Jacob forever, and of his kingdom there shall be no end.’
“But Mary said to the angel, ‘How shall this happen, since I do not know
man?’
“And the angel answered and said to her, ‘The Holy Spirit shall come
upon thee and the power of the Most High shall overshadow thee; and
therefore the Holy One to be born shall be called the Son of God. And
behold, Elizabeth thy kinswoman also has conceived a son in her old age,
and she who was called barren is now in her sixth month; for nothing
shall be impossible with God.’
The shepherds come to adore Him and, from Heaven, the angels sing the
joyful song, “Glory to God in the highest, and peace on earth to men of
good will.” (St. Luke 2:14)
God promised this favor to Adam and Eve shortly after their fall,
speaking of one that was to come into the world to crush the devil. The
devil had led our first parents into sin, and God said to him: “I will put
enmities between thee and the woman, and thy seed and her seed” (Gen.
3, 15). The woman is the Blessed Virgin Mary; the seed of the woman is
our Saviour, Jesus Christ.
And when the time for the coming of the Saviour arrived, God
announced it through an angel to a humble virgin of Nazareth named
Mary, the daughter of Joachim and Ann. The angel told Mary that she
was to be the mother of the world’s Saviour, yet by a wonderful miracle
she was to remain a virgin. We celebrate this great event on March 25,
the Feast of the Annunciation. And nine months later in the stable of
Bethlehem, where she and her spouse St. Joseph were obliged to pass the
night because there was no room for them in the inn, the Blessed Virgin
gave birth to the Child who was to save the world from Sin. The name
given Him was Jesus; and He was the Christ, the one destined to be the
world’s Redeemer.
STUDY HELPS
A. COLUMN SELECTION. (Join correctly the parts of the sentences in Columns I and II, by
placing the right key letter in the proper parenthesis):
Column I
Column II
(F) performed the act of divine power whereby the Incarnation took
place.
(2) Amid the general corruption and decay of the human race in the
centuries following the fall of our first parents, through what race, and by
means of what class of men, did God keep alive the hope of a Saviour?
(3) Name three human imperfections to which we are subject that were
excluded from Our Lord’s human nature by His divine personality.
(5) Explain why it was necessary that a divine Person should take to
Himself a human nature in the supposition that God required full
satisfaction for the sins of men.
(6) In what section of the Bible is outlined the earthly life of Jesus? Are
the gospels you hear read on Sundays at Mass taken from the Bible?
From what part of the Bible?
(7) What dignitaries of ancient times were anointed with sacred oil?
(8) Rebecca, a little Jewess, lives near a Catholic church. She is curious
to know why the bell in the church steeple rings every morning at 6:00
o’clock, every noontime, and every evening at 6:00 o’clock. Please
explain to the little lady why the bell rings at those hours.
(9) Faith, a Baptist, says that she learned in her Bible class that Our Lord
had some brothers and sisters. She claims that even our Catholic Bible
mentions them. What comment have you to make in reply?
(10) Who was the first member of the human race to die in the state of
grace? Explain how his soul was restored to the friendship of God, and
how he managed to save his soul so many centuries before Our Lord was
born. His name occurs in the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass shortly after the
Consecration.
(11) Is it correct to say that God was born of the Blessed Virgin, God was
hungry and thirsty, God suffered, God died? Explain your answer.
– LESSON 8 –
The Redemption
(b) A redeemer is one who pays a price to regain something that has been
lost or given up.
(d) Although God wished all to be saved, and although Christ died for
all, yet only those to whom the merits of His Passion are applied will
benefit by His death.
(e) The death of Christ was a sacrifice of infinite merit and satisfaction,
by which man was redeemed.
(f) Christ was both priest and victim in the sacrifice whereby He
redeemed us. As priest He offered His Passion and death to God for us,
and as victim He suffered and died.
SCRIPTURE:
“He has rescued us from the power of darkness and transferred us into the
kingdom of his beloved Son, in whom we have our redemption, the
remission of our sins” (Colossians 1:13-14).
“…looking for the blessed hope and glorious coming of our great God and
Savior, Jesus Christ, who gave himself for us that he might redeem us from
all iniquity and cleanse for himself an acceptable people, pursuing good
works” (Titus 2:13-14).
The chief sufferings of Christ were His bitter agony of soul, His
bloody sweat, His cruel scourging, His crowning with thorns, His
crucifixion, and His death on the cross.
(a) The Stations of the Cross and the Sorrowful Mysteries of the Rosary
call to mind the chief sufferings of Christ.
(b) Christ suffered and died in His human nature; in His divine nature He
could neither suffer nor die. All of His sufferings, even the least, were of
infinite value because His human and divine natures were united in the
divine Person of the Son of God.
(a) The site of Christ’s death is also called the Place of the Skull, and
Mount Calvary.
SCRIPTURE:
“And they came to the place called Golgotha, that is, the Place of the
Skull” (Matthew 27:33).
From the sufferings and death of Christ we learn God’s love for man
and the evil of sin, for which God, who is all-just, demands such
great satisfaction.
(a) We also learn that we should return God’s great love and willingly
take up our cross and follow Him.
95. What do we mean when we say in the Apostles’ Creed that Christ
descended into hell?
When we say that Christ descended into hell we mean that, after He
died, the soul of Christ descended into a place or state of rest, called
limbo, where the souls of the just were waiting for Him.
(a) Heaven had been closed by the sin of Adam. The just among the dead
could not enter heaven until Christ satisfied for man’s sin and repaired its
injuries. They awaited their redemption in limbo.
SCRIPTURE:
“Put to death indeed in the flesh, he was brought to life in the spirit, in
which also he went and preached to those spirits that were in prison” (I
Peter 3:18-19).
“And Jesus said to him, ‘Amen I say to thee, this day thou shalt be with me
in paradise’ ” (Luke 23:43).
Christ went to limbo to announce to the souls waiting there the joyful
news that He had reopened heaven to mankind.
97. Where was Christ’s body while His soul was in limbo?
While His soul was in limbo, Christ’s body was in the holy sepulchre.
(a) Man dies when soul is separated from body. When Jesus died, His
soul and His body were separated from each other but His divine Person
remained united both to His body in the tomb and to His separated soul
in limbo.
SCRIPTURE:
“And Joseph taking the body, wrapped it in a clean linen cloth, and laid it
in his new tomb, which he had hewn out in the rock. Then he rolled a large
stone to the entrance of the tomb, and departed” (Matthew 27:59-60).
Christ rose from the dead, glorious and immortal, on Easter Sunday,
the third day after His death.
(a) In the Resurrection the soul of Jesus was reunited to His body by His
own divine power.
(c) Christ’s glorified body after its Resurrection was not subject to
suffering or death; it possessed a certain radiance flowing from the
supreme blessedness of His soul, it could move rapidly from place to
place, it did not need food or sleep, and it could pass through other
bodies.
SCRIPTURE:
“He said to them, ‘Do not be terrified. You are looking for Jesus of
Nazareth, who was crucified. He has risen, he is not here. Behold the place
where they laid him’ ” (Mark 16:6).
“But he strictly charged them, and commanded them not to tell this to
anyone, saying, ‘The Son of Man must suffer many things, and be rejected
by the elders and chief priests and Scribes, and be put to death, and on the
third day rise again’ ” (Luke 9:21-22).
Christ rose from the dead to show that He is true God and to teach
us that we, too, shall rise from the dead.
SCRIPTURE:
“Now if Christ is preached as risen from the dead, how do some among
you say that there is no resurrection of the dead? But if there is no
resurrection of the dead, neither has Christ risen; and if Christ has not
risen, vain then is our preaching, vain too is your faith. Yes, and we are
found false witnesses as to God, in that we have borne witness against God
that he raised Christ whom he did not raise, if the dead do not rise. For if
the dead do not rise, neither has Christ risen; and if Christ has not risen,
vain is your faith, for you are still in your sins” (I Corinthians 15:12-17).
All men will rise from the dead, but only those who have been
faithful to Christ will share in His glory.
SCRIPTURE:
“Do not wonder at this, for the hour is coming in which all who are in the
tombs shall hear the voice of the Son of God. And they who have done
good shall come forth unto resurrection of life; but they who have done
evil unto resurrection of judgment” (John 5:28-29).
“Now this is the will of him who sent me, the Father, that I should lose
nothing of what He has given me, but that I should raise it up on the last
day” (John 6:39)
“Behold, I tell you a mystery: we shall all indeed rise, but we shall not all
be changed–in a moment, in the twinkling of an eye, at the last trumpet.
For the trumpet shall sound, and the dead shall rise incorruptible and we
shall be changed. For this corruptible body must put on incorruption, and
this mortal body must put on immortality” (I Corinthians 15:51-53).
Our Lord’s Descent into Limbo (picture)
This picture shows the soul of Jesus Christ appearing to the captive souls
in limbo. In the foreground are Adam and Eve on their knees.
Immediately to the left, Abraham is raising a knife above Isaac, Jacob
with a staff in his hand, David with his lyre, etc. On the right is Moses
with rays of light coming from his head, Aaron with his rod, St. Joseph
holding a lily, etc.
At the bottom of the plate is the hell of the damned, where the demons
and the condemned are punished. Jesus Christ did not descend to this
place of eternal suffering nor to purgatory, but He did have an effect on
the damned by making them recognize His divinity and on the souls of
purgatory by giving them the hope of glory.
The holy women who are at left came, according to the Gospel, to
embalm the body of Jesus, when suddenly there was a great earthquake.
The angel of the Lord came from heaven, rolled back the stone, and sat
upon it. The frightened soldiers fell to the ground as if dead. When the
holy women entered the sepulcher, they were frightened by the sight of
the angel. But he said to them, “Do not be terrified. You are looking for
Jesus of Nazareth, who was crucified. He has risen, He is not here.
Behold the place where they laid Him.” (St. Mark 16:6)
At the moment when Jesus Christ disappeared from the sight of His
disciples in a luminous cloud, two angels appeared to them and said,
“Men of Galilee, why do you stand looking up to heaven? This Jesus
who has been taken up from you into heaven, shall come in the same way
as you have seen Him going up to heaven.”
Christ ascended, body and soul, into heaven on Ascension Day, forty
days after His Resurrection.
SCRIPTURE:
“Now he led them out towards Bethany, and he lifted up his hands and
blessed them. And it came to pass as he blessed them, that he parted from
them and was carried up into heaven” (Luke 24:50-51).
102. Why did Christ remain on earth forty days after His
Resurrection?
(a) Saint Paul tells us that Christ, after His Resurrection, appeared
frequently to the apostles and to many others.
(b) Christ ascended into heaven from Mount Olivet, a hill outside
Jerusalem.
SCRIPTURE:
“To them also he showed himself alive after his passion by many proofs,
during forty days appearing to them and speaking of the kingdom of God”
(Acts 1:3).
“Christ…rose again the third day,… he appeared to Cephas, and after that
to the Eleven. Then he was seen by more than five hundred brethren at one
time…After that he was seen by James, then by all the apostles. And last
of all,…he was seen also by me” (I Corinthians 15:3-8).
103. What do we mean when we say that Christ sits at the right hand
of God, the Father Almighty?
When we say that Christ sits at the right hand of God, the Father
Almighty, we mean that Our Lord as God is equal to the Father, and
that as man He shares above all the saints in the glory of His Father
and exercises for all eternity the supreme authority of a king over all
creatures.
(a) Even as man, Christ of Himself has dominion over all creation. His
Kingship rests on the fact that His human nature is immediately united to
the divine Person of the Son of God, and on the fact that He redeemed all
men with His precious blood.
“All power in heaven and on earth has been given to me” (Matthew
28:18).
“For as the Father has life in himself, even so he has given to the Son also
to have life in himself; and he has granted him power to render judgment,
because he is Son of Man” (John 5:26-27).
“Pilate therefore said to him, ‘Thou art then a king?’ Jesus answered,
‘Thou sayest it; I am a king. This is why I was born, and why I have come
into the world, to bear witness to the truth’ ” (John 18:37).
“Therefore, if you have risen with Christ, seek the things that are above,
where Christ is seated at the right hand of God” (Colossians 3:1).
“Jesus, who for the joy set before him, endured a cross, despising shame,
and sits at the right hand of the throne of God” (Hebrews 12:2).
“And from his mouth goes forth a sharp sword with which to smite the
nations. And he will rule them with a rod of iron, and he treads the wine
press of the fierce wrath of God almighty. And he has on his garment and
on his thigh a name written, ‘King of kings and Lord of lords’ ”
(Apocalypse 19:15-16).
104. What do we mean when we say that Christ will come from thence
to judge the living and the dead?
When we say that Christ will come from thence to judge the living
and the dead, we mean that on the last day Our Lord will come to
pronounce a sentence of eternal reward or of eternal punishment on
everyone who has ever lived in tills world.
(a) Jesus Christ, both as God and as man, will judge all men because He
is “King of kings and Lord of lords” (Apocalypse 17:14; 19:16), and it is
His prerogative to pass judgment, to reward or punish according to
merits.
SCRIPTURE:
“For the Son of Man is to come with his angels in the glory of his Father,
and then he will render to everyone according to his conduct” (Matthew
16:27).
“For neither does the Father judge any man, but all judgment he has given
to the Son” (John 5:22).
Because His death means so much for the human race, the Catholic
Church cherishes a great devotion to the representation of His death, the
crucifix. The crucifix is the chief reminder of Jesus Christ. In every
church and school the crucifix occupies a prominent place; and it should
be found also in every Catholic home. Nothing is better calculated to
teach us the greatness of God’s love for men, and the malice of sin. It is
because of the many lessons contained in Christ’s Passion that the
Church celebrates so solemnly Holy Week and recommends the devotion
of the Way of the Cross.
In heaven Our Lord, even as man, is King of the entire universe. At the
end of the world He will come to judge all mankind, as He Himself
describes it in the twenty-fifth chapter of the Gospel of St. Matthew.
There He says that at this last judgment He will place the just on His
right and the wicked on His left. To the latter He will say: “Depart from
me, accursed ones, into the everlasting fire which was prepared for the
devil and his angels,” while to the former He will give the consoling
invitation: “Come, blessed of my Father, take possession of the kingdom
prepared for you from the foundation of the world” (Matthew, 25:34-41).
The thought of Christ’s sufferings and of His glorification should remind
us that if we patiently accept the sufferings God allows to befall us, we
shall merit one day to share in the glory and happiness of our divine
Redeemer.
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the following statements as either true or false. The
correct answer can be found in the previous portions of this lesson.)
(1) The souls of those who had died in mortal sin before the time of
Christ were in limbo.
(2) Even the least suffering of Christ would have sufficed to make
satisfaction for all the sins of men.
(3) Our Lord proposed His Resurrection as the most conclusive proof of
His divine mission.
(4) The divine Person was not united by hypostatic union to the dead
body of Christ in the tomb.
(8) Christ died even for those who are now in hell.
(2) How did Our Lord prove after His Resurrection that His body could
pass through other bodies?
(3) Give three names for the place where Christ was crucified?
(4) Griselda, reading an extract from St. Alphonsus’ “The Passion and
Death of Our Lord” is surprised to learn that a single tear shed by the
Infant Jesus, or a baby cry from His lips, would have been sufficient to
ransom a thousand worlds as sinful as ours. Can you tell her why? Then
add to your explanation a reason why Our Lord suffered so much.
(5) On Good Friday afternoon, what remark did Our Saviour make to the
Good Thief, Dismas? When did the Good Thief enter heaven? On his
way thither did he pass through either purgatory or limbo, or did he go
directly to heaven? State the reason for your answer.
(6) What is meant by limbo? Are any souls that were once in limbo now
in the hell of the damned? Explain your answer.
(8) In heaven, how is Our Lord exalted over the entire universe? What
October feast commemorates this exaltation? What phrase of the
Apostles’ Creed expresses this exaltation?
(11) Albert asks what Our Lord chiefly proved by His return from the
dead? Give him your answer.
(12) About how many people, at the very least, saw Our Lord after He
had returned from the dead? During the almost six weeks Our Lord
remained on earth after Easter, on at least how many different occasions
did He appear to His followers, and deal with them?
(14) Marius always carries with him a small pocket crucifix. Do you
approve this practice? Why?
(15) Our Lord’s dead body was in the tomb from Good Friday until
Easter Sunday. During that time was His body worthy of the highest form
of adoration, the same type of adoration that is due to His living human
nature today? Give the reason for your answer, remembering that the
reason why Christ’s human nature is given divine adoration is the fact
that it is united to the Divine Person of the Word.
The Holy Ghost is God and the third Person of the Blessed Trinity.
(a) The Holy Ghost is also called the Holy Spirit, the Paraclete, the
Advocate, the Spirit of Truth, the Spirit of God, and the Spirit of Love.
SCRIPTURE:
“But Peter said, ‘Ananias, why has Satan tempted thy heart, that thou
shouldst lie to the Holy Spirit and by fraud keep back part of the price of
the land?...Thou hast not lied to men, but to God’ ” (Acts 5:3-4).
See Scripture, question 25, Matthew 28:19.
The Holy Ghost proceeds from the Father and the Son.
(a) The Holy Ghost does not proceed from the Father and the Son by
spiritual generation. Only the Son proceeds from the Father by
generation. This is one of the mysterious truths that we know only from
revelation.
SCRIPTURE:
“But when the Advocate has come, whom I will send you from the Father,
the Spirit of truth who proceeds from the Father, he will bear witness
concerning me” (John 15:26).
“But when he, the Spirit of truth, has come, he will teach you all the truth.
For he will not speak on his own authority, but whatever he will hear he
will speak, and the things that are to come he will declare to you. He will
glorify me, because he will receive of what is mine and declare it to you.
All things that the Father has are mine. That is why I have said that he will
receive of what is mine, and will declare it to you” (John 16:13-15).
107. Is the Holy Ghost equal to the Father and the Son?
The Holy Ghost is equal to the Father and the Son, because He is
God.
(a) Because of the oneness of nature in the Blessed Trinity, the Father is
entirely in the Son and in the Holy Ghost; the Son is entirely in the
Father and in the Holy Ghost; and the Holy Ghost is entirely in the Father
and in the Son. No one of the three divine Persons is outside the other,
for none precedes the other in eternity, nor surpasses the other in power,
nor exceeds the other in any way. This indwelling of one divine Person in
the others is called circumincession.
SCRIPTURE:
“Jesus answered, ‘Amen, amen, I say to thee, unless; a man be born again
of water and the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God’ ” (John
3:5).
108. What does the Holy Ghost do for the salvation of mankind?
The Holy Ghost dwells in the Church as the source of its life and
sanctifies souls through the gift of grace.
(a) Although the sanctification of mankind, like all other outward works
of God, is performed by all three Persons of the Blessed Trinity, it is
attributed to the Holy Ghost, the third Person. The sanctification of
mankind is attributed to the Holy Ghost because He is the love of the
Father and the Son and because the sanctification of man by grace shows
forth God’s boundless love.
SCRIPTURE:
“And I will ask the Father and he will give you another Advocate to dwell
with you forever, the Spirit of truth whom the world cannot receive,
because it neither sees him nor knows him. But you shall know him,
because he will dwell with you, and be in you” (John 14:16-17).
“Do you not know that you are the temple of God and that the Spirit of
God dwells in you?”(I Corinthians 3:16)
“Guard the good trust through the Holy Spirit, who dwells in us” (II
Timothy 1:14).
“But when the goodness and kindness of God our Savior appeared, then,
not by reason of good works that we did ourselves, but according to his
mercy, he saved us through the bath of regeneration and renewal by the
Holy Spirit; whom he has abundantly poured out upon us through Jesus
Christ our Savior, in order that, justified by his grace, we may be heirs in
the hope of life everlasting” (Titus 3:4-7).
(a) Grace is something real, just as the soul itself is real. It is not merely
the absence of sin but rather a spiritual quality infused by God into the
soul.
(b) The supernatural is that which surpasses the power of all created
nature. It is of two kinds: first, that manifested when the supernatural fact
happens in a manner that is beyond the power of nature; for example,
when a person is instantly cured of leprosy; second, that manifested when
the supernatural fact, in its essential character, completely surpasses the
power of the whole natural order; for example, when, in some degree,
God intimately shares His life with man through sanctifying grace.
(c) Because no man has a strict right to share in the life of God Himself,
grace is a free gift, distributed by God according to His good pleasure.
(d) Jesus Christ, the Redeemer promised by God to Adam and Eve after
their fall, merited all the graces since bestowed upon men. The graces
bestowed by God on those who lived before the time of Christ were
granted through anticipation of the merits of Our Lord.
(e) Man cannot attain eternal life by powers that are merely natural. He
must be elevated to a supernatural plane through grace; and he constantly
needs the impulse of God to merit eternal life.
SCRIPTURE:
“And of his fullness we have all received, grace for grace. For the Law
was given through Moses; grace and truth came through Jesus Christ”
(John 1:16-17).
“And he said, ‘This is why I have said to you, ‘No one can come to me
unless he is enabled to do so by my Father’ ” (John 6:66).
“But by the grace of God I am what I am, and his grace in me has not been
fruitless–in fact I have labored more than any of them, yet not I, but the
grace of God with me” (I Corinthians 15:10).
The Descent of the Holy Spirit on Pentecost (picture)
This picture shows the Cenacle where the apostles and disciples, waiting
for the coming of the Holy Spirit, were praying with the Holy Virgin and
several holy women. As St. Luke says in the Acts of the Apostles:
“And when the days of Pentecost were drawing to a close, they were all
together in one place. And suddenly there came a sound from heaven, as
of a violent wind blowing, and it filled the whole house where they were
sitting. And there appeared to them parted tongues as of fire, which
settled upon each of them. And they were all filled with the Holy Spirit
and began to speak in foreign tongues, even as the Holy Spirit prompted
them to speak.” (Acts 2:1-4)
110. How many kinds of grace are there?
There are two kinds of grace: sanctifying grace and actual grace.
Sanctifying grace is that grace which confers on our souls a new life,
that is, a sharing in the life of God Himself.
(a) Sanctifying grace is also called habitual grace because we possess this
divine gift as a habit of the soul, that is, as something permanent.
“…through which he has granted us the very great and precious promises.
so that through them you may become partakers of the divine nature,
having escaped from the corruption of that lust which is in the world” (II
Peter 1:4).
The chief effects of sanctifying grace are: first, it makes us holy and
pleasing to God; second, it makes us adopted children of God; third, it
makes us temples of the Holy Ghost; fourth, it gives us the right to
heaven.
SCRIPTURE:
“Jesus answered and said to him, ‘If anyone love me, he will keep my
word, and my Father will love him, and we will come to him and make our
abode with him’ ” (John 14:23).
“For whoever are led by the Spirit of God, they are the sons of God. Now
you have not received a spirit of bondage so as to be again in fear, but you
have received a spirit of adoption as sons, by virtue of which we cry,
‘Abba! Father!’ ”
“The Spirit himself gives testimony to our spirit that we are sons of God.
But if we are sons, we are heirs also: heirs indeed of God and joint heirs
with Christ, provided, however, we suffer with him that we may also be
glorified with him” (Romans 8:16-17).
“Or do you not know that your members are the temple of the Holy Spirit,
who is in you, whom you have from God, and that you are not your own?
For you have been bought at a great price. Glorify God and bear him in
your body” (I Corinthians 6:19-20).
“Behold what manner of love the Father has bestowed upon us, that we
should be called children of God; and such we are” (I John 3:1).
(a.) Unlike sanctifying grace, actual grace is not a habit dwelling in the
soul but a divine impulse moving a person to perform acts above his
natural powers.
(b) A true Christian should view all his life in the light of grace. Under
the general term of grace fall all the gifts that God freely bestows on man
for his eternal salvation. For example, such external graces as a good
mother and father, a Christian home, and even sickness and trials, must
be accepted as ordained or permitted by Divine Providence for man’s
salvation.
(c) Persons in mortal sin cannot gain sanctifying grace without the help
of actual grace.
(d) Christ, by His death, merited sufficient grace for all men to be saved.
SCRIPTURE:
“I am the vine, you are the branches. He who abides in me, and I in him,
he bears much fruit; for without me you can do nothing” (John 15:5).
“ ... that the God of our Lord Jesus Christ, the Father of glory, may grant
you the spirit of wisdom and revelation in deep knowledge of him: the
eyes of your mind being enlightened, so that you may know what is the
hope of his calling, what the riches of the glory of his inheritance in the
saints” (Ephesians 1:17-18).
“For it is God who of his good pleasure works in you both the will and the
performance” (Philippians 2:13).
We can resist the grace of God, for our will is free, and God does not
force us to accept His grace.
(a) Although God wishes the salvation of all men, those who have
attained the use of reason can be saved only by cooperating freely with
the grace of God.
(b) Those who do not have the use of reason cannot choose to cooperate
with God’s grace. They can, however, be saved through Baptism.
SCRIPTURE:
“He that could have transgressed and hath not transgressed: and could do
evil things and hath not done them” (Ecclesiasticus 31:10).
“Jerusalem, Jerusalem! thou who killest the prophets, and stonest those
who are sent to thee! How often would I have gathered thy children as a
hen gathers her young under her wings, but thou wouldst not!” (Matthew
23:37).
“Yes, working together with him we entreat you not to receive the grace of
God in vain” (II Corinthians 6:1).
115. Why is sanctifying grace necessary for salvation?
(a) Without sanctifying grace, the soul is unworthy to see God face to
face. If the soul is in the state of mortal sin, it deserves eternal
punishment.
116. Is actual grace necessary for all who have attained the use of
reason?
Actual grace is necessary for all who have attained the use of reason,
because without it we cannot long resist the power of temptation or
perform other actions which merit a reward in heaven.
“As the branch cannot bear fruit of itself unless it remain on the vine, so
neither can you unless you abide in me. I am the vine, you are the
branches. He who abides in me, and I in him, he bears much fruit; for
without me you can do nothing” (John 15:4-5).
“God is faithful and will not permit you to be tempted beyond your
strength, but with the temptation will also give you a way out that you may
be able to bear it” (I Corinthians 10:13).
“For we were buried with him by means of Baptism into death, in order
that, just as Christ has arisen from the dead through the glory of the Father,
so we also may walk in newness of life” (Romans 6:4).
118. How can we make our most ordinary actions merit a heavenly
award?
(b) We can merit in this life only when we are in the state of sanctifying
grace and perform good works freely.
(d) By mortal sin a person loses the merit of his good actions.
SCRIPTURE:
“Therefore, whether you eat or drink, or do anything else, do all for the
glory of God” (I Corinthians 10:31).
God sanctifies the human soul by the supernatural gift of grace. The most
exalted type of grace is sanctifying grace, which is a spiritual quality,
dwelling in the soul, making it like God Himself. The New Testament is
filled with allusions to this grace, which is referred to as a new life, a
sharing in God’s life. Our Lord spoke of the reception of this life as a
spiritual birth, when He said: “Unless a man be born again of water and
the Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God” (John 3:5). Once it
has been received, sanctifying grace remains in the soul unless it is
driven out by mortal sin. And when one has received sanctifying grace,
he can grow in it constantly, for it increases with every worthy reception
of a sacrament, and with every supernaturally meritorious work.
God does not distribute actual graces equally to all; some persons receive
much more than others. There is no injustice in this on the part of God,
for grace is a free gift from Him, and He can distribute it according to
His good pleasure. But all receive sufficient grace to be saved.
A person in mortal sin cannot merit any heavenly reward, even though he
may perform very good deeds; but by performing good deeds from a
supernatural motive he can prepare himself for repentance and for a
return to the state of sanctifying grace.
RESOLUTION: Resolve out of love for God to offer Him frequently all
the actions of the entire day, even the slightest.
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTION. (Select the word or phrase in the parentheses which most exactly and
most completely fills out the sentence):
(I) A person in mortal sin cannot gain sanctifying grace without the help
of (actual grace . . . the sacrament of Penance . . . the Church).
(2) Sanctifying grace is also called (the Holy Ghost . . . divine impulse . .
. habitual grace).
(6) The Holy Ghost proceeds from (the Father and the Son . . . the Father
alone . . . the Son alone).
(8) Without actual grace we cannot perform (any action . . . any naturally
good action . . . any supernatural action).
(9) The most exalted type of grace is (actual grace . . . sanctifying grace .
. . external grace).
(I) What is the only thing that can expel sanctifying grace from the soul?
(2) How does an actual grace coming from God affect our mind? Our
will?
(3) Laura is eating a bunch of grapes. An hour ago she completed her
homework and her studies for tomorrow. Suddenly it occurs to her that
there is something in this lesson’s commentary about a vine and its
branches. She cannot recall the saying of Our Lord nor the point it
illustrates. Write out that text from memory, and explain how it illustrates
this lesson.
(4) Albert is in mortal sin, but he went to Mass on Sunday, said his
morning and night prayers and obeyed his mother when she told him to
go to bed. Did Albert gain any merit for heaven by these good deeds? If
not, what spiritual profit could he acquire from them?
(5) Camilla, 13 years old, and Rosabella 31, die as saints, with an equal
amount of merit to their spiritual credit. In heaven, will one be happier
than the other? Will one have greater glory than the other? Explain both
answers.
(6) Austin is having a glorious time at the altar boys’ picnic. While he
served Mass he said a short morning prayer, in which was the Morning
Offering. The rest of the day is spent playing games, swimming, and
eating. Tired out and happy, he tumbles into bed that night after saying an
Our Father, a Hail Mary, a Glory be to the Father, and an Act of
Contrition. The only other prayers he said all day were the meal prayers,
and a couple of aspirations in the afternoon before the race that he won.
He is in the state of grace. Have his games of the day, his meals, his
swimming added to his merit with God? Explain your answer.
(8) Scholastica has the habit of repeating frequently during the day: “All
for Thee, O Lord!” Once, Chloe, a non-Catholic playmate, overheard her
whisper this aspiration before a game of tennis. Explain to Chloe what
the prayer means, and why Scholastica says it frequently.
(9) Boniface, in the last religion test, explained that sanctifying grace
stays in the soul as long as we enjoy God’s friendship, doing good and
avoiding serious sin. He further added that once sanctifying grace enters
the soul it remains the same, neither decreasing nor increasing in degree.
Are his answers correct? Explain your decisions.
(11) Joachim, a pious lad of 8, observes that the pastor in his sermons to
the children frequently refers to sanctifying grace, merit, and the good
intention. He would like to know what is meant by “merit” and “the good
intention.” Can you tell him?
(14) Justin wonders if many venial sins will add up to constitute a mortal
sin– in other words, if a person will lose the state of grace by committing
many venial sins, even though he does not commit any mortal sin. Can
you answer Justin’s question from the information given in the
commentary on this lesson?
– LESSON 10 –
The Virtues and the Gifts of the Holy Ghost
119. What are the chief supernatural powers that are bestowed on our
souls with sanctifying grace?
The chief supernatural powers that are bestowed on our souls with
sanctifying grace are the three theological virtues and the seven gifts
of the Holy Ghost.
(c) Like sanctifying grace, the three theological virtues and the seven
gifts of the Holy Ghost are supernatural habits. They are called “powers”
because they enable us to perform supernatural acts that lead to God.
(d) Whoever is in the state of grace has the theological virtues and the
gifts of the Holy Ghost, which are infused into the intellect and will by
God.
SCRIPTURE:
“For this reason I bend my knees to the Father of our Lord Jesus Christ,
from whom all fatherhood in heaven and on earth receives its name, that
he may grant you from his glorious riches to be strengthened with power
through his Spirit unto the progress of the inner man; and to have Christ
dwelling through faith in your hearts: so that, being rooted and grounded
in love, you may be able to comprehend with all the saints what is the
breadth and length and height and depth, and to know Christ’s love which
surpasses knowledge, in order that you may be filled unto all the fullness
of God” (Ephesians 3:14-19). See Scripture, question 108, Titus 3:4-7).
(a) All virtue has God for its last end, but not every virtue refers directly
to Him. Some virtues deal directly with human things; for example,
justice is concerned with human rights, such as the right to life and
property. The virtues referring immediately to God are called theological,
a term derived from the Greek word for God, theos.
“So there abide faith, hope and charity, these three; but the greatest of
these is charity” (I Corinthians 13:13).
Faith is the virtue by which we firmly believe all the truths God has
revealed, on the word of God revealing them, who can neither
deceive nor be deceived.
(b) To believe a mystery that can be known to us only because God has
revealed it is to assent to it on divine faith. We believe men in human
affairs; we should not find it difficult to believe God, even in matters we
cannot understand, since God can neither deceive nor be deceived.
(c) To make a supernatural act of faith, one must have the help of grace.
Grace enables one to have sufficient enlightenment and good will to
accept God’s word for what He has revealed.
(d) Our faith must have these qualities: first, it must be firm; to be
doubtful deliberately on matters of faith is equivalent to denying outright
God’s authority. Faith should not be confused with opinion, which
considers an opposing statement as probably true. Saint Paul tells us,
“Faith is the substance of things to be hoped for, the evidence of things
that are not seen” (Hebrews 11:1). When he speaks of evidence he means
that faith must be firm and certain. When he speaks of the things that are
not seen, he means that faith is obscure; second, it must be complete; our
faith must include all the truths God has revealed. To accept one truth
and deny another is equivalent to denying all the truths He has revealed.
(e) Without faith it is impossible to be saved. Adults must have the virtue
and the act of faith; infants must have the virtue of faith, received in
Baptism, although they are incapable of making an act of faith. When
children are baptized in infancy they receive, along with sanctifying
grace, the infused virtue of faith. This virtue supplies them with the
supernatural power they will need to make an act of faith when they have
reached the age of reason.
SCRIPTURE:
“He said to them, ‘But who do you say that I am?’ Simon Peter answered
and said, ‘Thou art the Christ the Son of the living God.’ Then Jesus
answered and said, ‘Blessed art thou, Simon Bar-Jona, for flesh and blood
has not revealed this to thee, but my Father in heaven’ ” (Matthew 16:15-
17).
“He who comes from above is over all. He who is from the earth belongs
to earth, and of the earth he speaks. He who comes from heaven is over all.
And he bears witness to that which he has seen and heard, and his witness
no one receives. He who receives his witness has set his seal on this, that
God is true” (John 3:31-33).
“Blessed are they who have not seen, and yet have believed” (John 20:29).
“If we receive the testimony of men, the testimony of God is greater; for
this is the testimony of God which is greater, that he has borne witness
concerning his Son” (I John 5:9).
Hope is the virtue by which we firmly trust that God, who is all-
powerful and faithful to His promises, will in His mercy give us
eternal happiness and the means to obtain it.
(a) With the help of God man can gain heaven, a goal he could never
attain of himself. In Sacred Scripture God promised to give man eternal
life and the means to obtain it: “ ... he that putteth his trust in me shall
inherit the land and shall possess my holy mount” (Isaias 57:13).
(b) Hope is absolutely necessary for salvation; adults must have the
virtue and make the act of hope; infants must have the virtue. For the
infused virtue of hope, like the infused virtue of faith, is given to the
infant when he receives sanctifying grace.
(c) Our hope must be firm, since the motive for hope is God’s almighty
power, and since it is certain that God will give us sufficient means to
obtain salvation. The firmness of hope founded in God does not exclude
a reasonable fear of losing our souls because, ordinarily, we cannot be
certain that we shall properly use the means of salvation.
SCRIPTURE:
“But hope that is seen is not hope. For how can a man hope for what he
sees? But if we hope for what we do not see, we wait for it with patience”
(Romans 8:24-25).
“Now may the God of hope fill you with all joy and peace in believing,
that you may abound in hope and in the power of the Holy Spirit”
(Romans 15:13).
“Christ is faithful as the Son over his own house. We are that house, if we
hold fast our confidence and the hope in which we glory unto the end”
(Hebrews 3:6).
“This hope we have, as a sure and firm anchor of the soul, reaching even
behind the veil where our forerunner Jesus has entered for us, having
become a high priest forever according to the order of Melchisedech”
(Hebrews 6:19-20).
Charity is the virtue by which we love God above all things for His
own sake, and our neighbor as ourselves for the love of God.
(a) Charity is called the queen of the virtues because it unites man to God
most perfectly and most permanently in the bonds of love.
(b) Charity is the divine friendship uniting man to God and man to
fellow-man in the bonds of mutual affection. As we love those who are
truly our friends, for their own sake and not because of any advantage to
us, so through charity, we love God for His own sake and our neighbor
because of God.
(c) Our neighbor includes all living human beings, even our enemies, the
souls in purgatory, the blessed in heaven, and the angels.
(e) We should frequently make acts of perfect love and open our hearts to
God as friend to friend in intimate conversation.
(f) To love God above all things we must be willing to renounce all
created things rather than offend God by mortal sin. It is not necessary
that we have more feeling in our love of God than in our love of men,
since love is essentially a matter of the will, not of the feelings.
(h) Faith and hope will cease once we have attained heaven, for we
cannot believe what we see, and we cannot desire and hope for what we
already have; but charity remains even in heaven, where we will love
God whom we possess.
SCRIPTURE:
“If I should speak with the tongues of men and of angels, but do not have
charity, I have become as sounding brass or a tinkling cymbal. And if I
have prophecy and know all mysteries and all knowledge, and if I have all
faith so as to remove mountains, yet do not have charity, I am nothing.
And if I distribute all my goods to feed the poor, and if I deliver my body
to be burned, yet do not have charity, it profits me nothing. Charity is
patient, is kind; charity does not envy, is not pretentious, is not puffed up,
is not ambitious, is not self-seeking, is not provoked; thinks no evil, does
not rejoice over wickedness, but rejoices with the truth; bears with all
things, believes all things, hopes all things, endures all things” (I
Corinthians 13:1-7).
(a) The gifts are infused with sanctifying grace. The Holy Ghost dwells
in the souls of the just and He is never present without His gifts.
SCRIPTURE:
“And the spirit of the Lord shall rest upon him: the spirit of wisdom and of
understanding, the spirit of counsel and of fortitude, the spirit of
knowledge and of godliness. And he shall be filled with the spirit of the
fear of the Lord” (Isaias 11:2-3).
(a) The difference between the virtues and the gifts of the Holy Ghost
consists in this, that the virtues help us to follow the guidance of our
reason and faith, and the gifts help us to follow readily the inspirations of
the Holy Spirit.
127. Which are some of the effects in us of the gifts of the Holy Ghost?
Some of the effects in us of the gifts of the Holy Ghost are the fruits
of the Holy Ghost and the beatitudes.
The twelve fruits of the Holy Ghost are: charity, joy, peace, patience,
benignity, goodness, long-suffering, mildness, faith, modesty,
continency, and chastity.
(a) The fruits of the Holy Ghost are good works performed under the
inspiration of the Holy Ghost and with a certain delight.
SCRIPTURE:
“But the fruit of the Spirit is: charity, joy, peace, patience, kindness,
goodness, faith, modesty, continency” (Galatians 5:22-23).
1. Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom of heaven.
2. Blessed are the meek, for they shall possess the earth.
4. Blessed are they who hunger and thirst for justice, for they shall be
satisfied.
8. Blessed are they who suffer persecution for justice’ sake, for theirs
is the kingdom of heaven.
(a) The eight beatitudes were announced by Our Saviour at the beginning
of the Sermon on the Mount (Matthew 5:3-10).
(b) They are called beatitudes because the practicing of them will bring
us happiness both on earth and in heaven.
130. Are there any other virtues besides the theological virtues of faith,
hope, and charity?
Besides the theological virtues of faith, hope, and charity there are
other virtues, called moral virtues.
These virtues are called moral virtues because they dispose us to lead
moral, or good, lives by aiding us to treat persons and things in the
right way, that is, according to the will of God.
(a) The word moral generally signifies a way of acting, whether good or
bad. It is sometimes used to mean good actions or things as opposed to
immoral or evil actions and things.
“And if a man love justice, her labours have great virtues. For she teacheth
temperance and prudence and justice and fortitude, which are such things
as men can have nothing more profitable in life” (Wisdom 8:7).
133. Why are these virtues called cardinal virtues?
These virtues are called cardinal virtues because they are like hinges
on which hang all the other moral virtues and our whole moral life.
The word “cardinal” is derived from the Latin word “cardo”
meaning hinge.
(a) They are called cardinal or chief virtues not because they are the
highest or even the most important virtues, but because all the other
moral virtues depend upon them.
(b) Justice perfects the will and safeguards the chief rights of man: his
right to life and freedom, to the sanctity of the home, to his good name
and honor, and to his external possessions.
“Get wisdom, because it is better than gold: and purchase prudence, for it
is more precious than silver” (Proverbs 16:16).
“He that followeth justice and mercy shall find life, justice, and glory”
(Proverbs 21:21).
“Use as a frugal man the things that are set before thee: lest if thou eatest
much, thou be hated” (Ecclesiasticus 31:19).
“Wine was created from the beginning to make men joyful, and not to
make them drunk” (Ecclesiasticus 31:35).
“Or do you not know that the unjust will not possess the kingdom of God?
Do not err; neither fornicators...nor thieves, nor the covetous, nor
drunkards, nor the evil-tongued, nor the greedy will possess the kingdom
of God” (I Corinthians 6:9-10).
“Rather are we to practice the truth in love, and so grow up in all things in
him who is the head, Christ... Wherefore, put away lying and speak: truth
each one with his neighbor, because we are members of one another”
(Ephesians 4:15, 25).
“For this is the will of God, your sanctification; that you abstain from
immorality; that every one of you learn how to possess his vessel in
holiness and honor, not in the passion of lust like the Gentiles who do not
know God... For God has not called us unto uncleanness, but unto
holiness” (I Thessalonians 4:3-5, 7).
“And all of you practice humility towards one another; for, ‘God resists the
proud, but gives grace to the humble.’ Humble yourselves, therefore, under
the mighty hand of God, that he may exalt you in the time of visitation” (I
Peter 5:5-6).
The noblest of the supernatural virtues are the three theological virtues,
faith, hope and charity, by which the soul believes in God’s revelations,
hopes to possess Him for all eternity, and loves Him because of His
infinite goodness. The infused moral virtues help one to use created
things properly, employing them so as to gain eternal life from their use.
These virtues, like the corresponding natural virtues, are grouped under
the four chief or cardinal virtues of prudence, justice, fortitude and
temperance. Finally, the gifts of the Holy Ghost make one docile to the
movements of the Holy Spirit. Every good Christian knows that at times
he chooses a certain course of action or performs a good deed so
suddenly that it would seem that he is impelled by a power outside of
himself; and afterwards he realizes that it was the proper thing to do. This
is a manifestation of the activity of the Holy Ghost, working on the soul
through His gifts. Often we find Catholics who believe that the gifts of
the Holy Ghost are given only in Confirmation; but this is incorrect.
They are always given with sanctifying grace, though the sacrament of
Confirmation, since it makes us soldiers of Christ, urges us to use the
gifts in a special degree.
The greatest of the theological virtues is charity, which is love for God
because of His infinite goodness and love for our neighbor because he
shares, or can share, in the goodness of God through the possession of
sanctifying grace. Our Lord told us that we must love God with our
whole heart and soul, which means that we must be willing to renounce
every created good rather than offend God by mortal sin. We can have
true love for God even though we are not sorry for our venial sins,
though it is surely more perfect to repent of our venial as well as our
mortal sins when we make an act of love for God. The goodness of God
which is the motive of charity is His supernatural goodness, which is
made known through revelation.
Similarly, love for our neighbor, to be charity, must be based on a
supernatural motive–namely, the fact that every one of our fellow men
either possesses sanctifying grace or is capable of possessing it. If we
love a person merely because of his natural qualities, we are not making
an act of charity. When Our Lord told us to love our neighbor as
ourselves, He meant that we must love all our fellow men in the same
manner as we love ourselves – that is, supernaturally – but not
necessarily in the same measure. Moreover, we are not obliged to love all
our fellow men in the same degree. We can and should have greater love
for those who are united to us by the bonds of relationship, faith and
nationality.
As long as we retain sanctifying grace, the infused virtues and the gifts
remain in our soul. Mortal sin drives out all these supernatural habits,
except faith and hope, which remain even in the soul of the sinner unless
he commits a sin directly against hope–in which case only faith remains–
or a sin directly opposed to faith, in which case all the supernatural
qualities are driven out.
St. Paul in the Epistle to the Galatians (5:22-23) speaks of the fruits of
the Holy Ghost–acts of virtue which bring sweetness and joy to the soul,
like delicious fruit. Our Lord has given us the beatitudes (Matthew 5:3-
10), eight principles concerning the practice of virtue in an exalted
manner, which will bring us happiness and peace. The Church is
constantly urging her members to the practice of virtue. The first
condition required in the process of canonization, or declaring one a
saint, is to prove that this person practiced the theological and moral
virtues in an heroic or extraordinary degree.
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the following statements as either true or false. The
correct answers can be found in the previous portions of the lesson. )
(1 ) We shall retain faith and hope in heaven.
(2) It is not necessary that we have more feeling in our love for God than
in our love for men.
(6) To make an act of charity toward God we must repent of all our
venial sins.
(7) The gifts of the Holy Ghost are given only in Confirmation.
(4) Virginia’s catechism paper would have come back marked 100%
instead of 95% had she known St. Paul’s text to the Corinthians, wherein
charity is called the greatest of the virtues. What is that text?
(7) Leo frequently makes acts of love for God, but he wonders if they are
genuine acts of charity, because he does not feel any great fervor. Explain
to him how these acts can be true acts of charity.
(8) Herman says he would never do his neighbor any harm but he would
not put himself to any inconvenience to help anyone in need. Do you
think he has the kind of love for his neighbor that Our Lord expects him
to have?
(9) Yearly you hear read a parable that illustrates the love of our
neighbor. What parable is it?
(10) Edith and Mabel, playmates, have a falling-out because Edith falsely
accused Mabel of stealing a valuable wrist-watch from a classmate. Must
Mabel continue to love Edith as her neighbor? Does that love imply an
approval of Edith’s injustice? Must Edith right the wrong she has done
Mabel? With each answer, add a short explanation.
(11) Clement, Gerard and Alphonsus, 3 pals, are given ten apples by a
friendly farmer. Clement keeps five for himself because he is the oldest
and biggest of the three; three he gives to Gerard, and the remaining two
he hands to Alphonsus, the smallest and the youngest of the trio. In his
night prayers that night, Clement pauses when he reaches “ ... and I love
my neighbor as myself for the love of Thee …” He wonders if he can
truly say these words after what he did earlier in the day when sharing
the apples. Tell him what to do, and why.
(12) Celine finds it hard to love her Protestant, Jewish and pagan
neighbors in the same measure as she loves her own family and cousins.
Her grandparents were all born in France. On that account she loves the
French people more than those of any other nation except our own. Do
any of her ideas on charity need correcting? State the reason for your
solution.
(13) Lambert, the brightest boy in the sixth grade, claims he is not
smarter than most of the boys in his class because he has any better
brains but because perhaps he studies a little longer than most of them,
and prays a bit more earnestly to the Holy Ghost and to Our Lady, Seat of
Wisdom. In from 50 to 75 words let us know what you think of his
theory.
(14) Regina wants to know if devotion to the Holy Ghost will help her
become a saint? Answer her question, and add the reason why you think
so.
(15) Enumerate any six of the moral virtues and give short definitions of
them.
(17) In this lesson you have learned that faith and hope will cease when
the soul enters heaven, because it then sees and possesses God, and we
cannot believe what we see nor hope for what we have. Do you think that
the souls in purgatory have faith and hope? Do you think that faith and
hope are present in the souls of any of those who are being punished in
hell? Did the angels have faith and hope before they were submitted to
the test whereby God tried their loyalty?
– LESSON 11 –
The Catholic Church
(a) Since Baptism, according to the ruling of Christ, is the gateway to the
Church, a person becomes a member of the Church on receiving this
sacrament. To remain a real member of the Church after Baptism a
person must profess the one true faith and must not withdraw from the
unity of the body of the Church in schism or heresy or be
excommunicated by legitimate authority because of serious sins. Even
schismatics, heretics, and those excommunicated are subjects of the
Church and are obliged by its laws unless exempted by the Church.
“The kingdom of heaven is like a man who sowed good seed in his field
…” (Matthew 13:24).
“But if I cast out devils by the finger of God, then the kingdom of God has
come upon you” (Luke 11:20).
“I am the good shepherd, and I know mine and mine know me, even as the
Father knows me and I know the Father; and I lay down my life for my
sheep. And other sheep I have that are not of this fold. Them also I must
bring, and they shall hear my voice, and there shall be one fold and one
shepherd” (John 10:14-16).
“For as the body is one and has many members, and all the members of the
body, many as they are, form one body, so also is it with Christ …Now
you are the body of Christ, member for member” (I Corinthians 12:12, 27).
“… one body and one Spirit, even as you were called in one hope of your
calling; one Lord, one faith, one Baptism; one God and Father of all”
(Ephesians 4:4-6).
(a) Christ completed the founding of His Church just before His
Ascension, when He commissioned the apostles to make disciples of all
nations. Earlier in His public ministry He had instituted the sacraments,
chosen the twelve apostles, instructed them by word and example, and
conferred on them the power of teaching, ruling, and sanctifying.
(b) The Gospels show that Christ founded the Church in the form of a
visible, hierarchical society, that is, one made up of subjects and
superiors who rightfully rule subjects. The Roman Pontiff and the
bishops under him are the ruling hierarchy of the Church. The Church is
also a monarchical society in which the Pope rules with full power, that
is, with jurisdiction over the entire Church. Peter was the first head of the
Church founded by Christ.
(c) After Pentecost Sunday the apostles began to carry out their mission,
which through them and their successors continues and will continue
until the end of time.
SCRIPTURE:
“And I say to thee, thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will build my
Church, and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it” (Matthew 16:18).
“And Jesus drew near and spoke to them saying, ‘All power in heaven and
on earth has been given to me. Go, therefore, and make disciples of all
nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of
the Holy Spirit, teaching them to observe all that I have commanded you;
and behold, I am with you all days, even unto the consummation of the
world’ ” (Matthew 28:18-20).
“…Christ also loved the Church, and delivered himself up for her, that he
might sanctify her, cleansing her in the bath of water by means of the
word; in order that he might present to himself the Church in all her glory,
not having spot or wrinkle or any such thing, but that she might be holy
and without blemish” (Ephesians 5:25-27).
(a) The Church instituted by Christ is the only way to eternal salvation.
Christ gave the Church the means whereby man can be sanctified and
saved.
SCRIPTURE:
“My sheep hear my voice, and I know them and they follow me. And I
give them everlasting life; and they shall never perish, neither shall anyone
snatch them out of my hand” (John 10:27-28).
“As the Father has sent me, I also send you” (John 20:21).
“For the grace of God our Savior has appeared to all men, instructing us, in
order that, rejecting ungodliness and worldly lusts, we may live
temperately and justly and piously in this world; looking for the blessed
hope and glorious coming of our great God and Savior, Jesus Christ, who
gave himself for us that he might redeem us from all iniquity and cleanse
for himself an acceptable people, pursuing good works” (Titus 2:11-14).
(a) Although the work of salvation is the result of the operation of all
three Persons of the Blessed Trinity, it is especially the result of the
Redemption by Christ, and because this work is one of divine love it is
attributed to the Holy Ghost, who is the soul of the Church, of which
Christ is the Head.
SCRIPTURE:
“But you shall receive power when the Holy Spirit comes upon you, and
you shall be witnesses for me in Jerusalem and in all Judea and Samaria
and even to the very ends of the earth” (Acts 1:8).
140. When was the dwelling of the Holy Ghost in the Church first
visibly manifested?
The dwelling of the Holy Ghost in the Church was first visibly
manifested on Pentecost Sunday, when He came down upon the
apostles in the form of tongues of fire.
(a) The word “Pentecost” means fiftieth and is applied to the fiftieth day
after Our Lord’s Resurrection.
(b) The apostles were sent by Christ to preach His doctrines to all men.
SCRIPTURE:
“And when the days of Pentecost were drawing to a close, they were all
together in one place. And suddenly there came a sound from heaven, as of
a violent wind blowing, and it filled the whole house where they were
sitting. And there appeared to them parted tongues as of fire, which settled
upon each of them. And they were all filled with the Holy Spirit and began
to speak in foreign tongues, even as the Holy Spirit prompted them to
speak” (Acts 2:1-4).
141. How long will the Holy Ghost dwell in the Church?
The Holy Ghost will dwell in the Church until the end of time.
(a) Christ foretold that the Holy Ghost would dwell in the Church until
the end of time.
SCRIPTURE:
“And I will ask the Father and he will give you another Advocate to dwell
with you forever, the Spirit of truth whom the world cannot receive,
because it neither sees him nor knows him. But you shall know him,
because he will dwell with you, and be in you” (John 14:16-17).
God the Father and God the Son sent the Holy Ghost to dwell in the
Church.
(a) It is a matter of faith that the Holy Ghost proceeds from the Father
and the Son and is sent by Both to dwell in the Church.
SCRIPTURE:
“But the Advocate, the Holy Spirit, whom the Father will send in my
name, he will teach you all things, and bring to your mind whatever I have
said to you” (John 14:26).
“But when the Advocate has come, whom I will send you from the Father,
the Spirit of truth who proceeds from the Father, he will bear witness
concerning me” (John 15:26).
“It is expedient for you that I depart. For if I do not go, the Advocate will
not come to you; but if I go, I will send him to you” (John 16:7).
143. What does the indwelling of the Holy Ghost enable the Church to
do?
(a) The Church must teach because otherwise men would not know the
truths of divine revelation taught by Christ.
(b) The Church must sanctify, that is, bring grace to the world through
the sacraments, because otherwise men could not be saved.
(c) The Church must rule because it was established by Our Saviour as a
society, which is inconceivable without authority.
SCRIPTURE:
“But when he, the Spirit of truth, has come, he will teach you all the truth.
For he will not speak on his own authority, but whatever he will hear he
will speak, and the things that are to come he will declare to you. He will
glorify me, because he will receive of what is mine and declare it to you”
(John 16:13-14).
“Guard the good trust through the Holy Spirit, who dwells in us” (II
Timothy 1:14).
(a) The will of the Founder of the Church is expressed in the commission
He gave to His apostles to teach all nations, to baptize them, and to have
them observe all the things He had commanded. This commission, as
well as the guarantee that Christ would be with His Church until the end
of time, is related in the Gospel. 12
12 (See question 137.)
145. To whom did Christ give the power to teach, to sanctify, and to
rule the members of His Church?
Christ gave the power to teach, to sanctify, and to rule the members
of His Church to the apostles, the first bishops of the Church.
(a) That Christ gave His apostles the power to teach, to rule, and to
sanctify is evident from the Gospels, the inspired account of Our Lord’s
life written by Saints Matthew, Mark, Luke, and John. Christ gave the
apostles the power to bind and loose, to baptize, to forgive sin, and to
offer the sacrifice of the Mass.
(b) The power to teach and to rule is the power of jurisdiction; the power
to sanctify is the power of orders. The power to sanctify sometimes
requires jurisdiction, as in the sacrament of Penance.
SCRIPTURE:
“Go into the whole world and preach the gospel to every creature” (Mark
16:15).
“He who hears you, hears me; and he who rejects you, rejects me; and he
who rejects me, rejects him who sent me” (Luke 10:16).
“He therefore said to them again. ‘Peace be to you! As the Father has sent
me, I also send you.’ When he had said this, he breathed upon them, and
said to them, ‘Receive the Holy Spirit; whose sins you shall forgive, they
are forgiven them; and whose sins you shall retain, they are retained’ ”
(John 20:21-23).
“You shall receive power when the Holy Spirit comes upon you, and you
shall be witnesses for me in Jerusalem and in all Judea and Samaria and
even to the very ends of the earth” (Acts 1:8).
146. Did Christ intend that this power should be exercised by the
apostles alone?
No, Christ intended that this power should be exercised also by their
successors, the bishops of the Church.
(a) Christ founded the Church to last until the end of time. The apostles
lived for a short time only. Christ must, then, have intended that the
apostles provide duly authorized successors to carry on the work of
teaching, sanctifying, and ruling.
(b) The Acts of the Apostles and the Epistles of Saint Paul contain
references to the work done by the successors of the apostles.
SCRIPTURE:
“And they prayed and said, ‘Thou, Lord, who knowest the hearts of all,
show which of these two thou hast chosen to take the place in this ministry
and apostleship from which Judas fell away to go to his own place.’ And
they drew lots between them, and the lot fell upon Matthias; and he was
numbered with the eleven apostles” (Acts 1:24-26).
“This saying is true: If anyone is eager for the office of bishop, he desires a
good work” (I Timothy 3:1).
“For this reason I left thee in Crete, that thou shouldst set right anything
that is defective and shouldst appoint presbyters in every city, as I myself
directed thee to do” (Titus 1:5).
147. Did Christ give special power in His Church to any one of the
apostles?
(a) The power of the keys was promised to Saint Peter and was actually
conferred on him.
(b) Saint Peter was recognized by the early Christians from the beginning
as the head of the Church.
SCRIPTURE:
“Then Jesus answered and said, ‘Blessed art thou, Simon Bar-Jona, for
flesh and blood has not revealed this to thee, but my Father in heaven. And
I say to thee, thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will build my Church, and
the gates of hell shall not prevail against it. And I will give thee the keys of
the kingdom of heaven; and whatever thou shalt bind on earth shall be
bound in heaven, and whatever thou shalt loose on earth shall be loosed in
heaven’ ”(Matthew 16:17-19).
“And the Lord said, ‘Simon, Simon, behold, Satan has desired to have you,
that he may sift you as wheat. But I have prayed for thee, that thy faith
may not fail; and do thou, when once thou hast turned again, strengthen
thy brethren’ ” (Luke 22:31-32).
“When, therefore, they had breakfasted, Jesus said to Simon Peter, ‘Simon,
son of John, dost thou love me more than these do?’ He said to him, ‘Yes,
Lord, thou knowest that I love thee.’ He said to him, ‘Feed my lambs.’ He
said to him a second time, ‘Simon, son of John, dost thou love me?’ He
said to him, ‘Yes, Lord, thou knowest that I love thee.’ He said to him,
‘Feed my lambs.’ A third time he said to him, ‘Simon, son of John, dost
thou love me?’ Peter was grieved because he said to him for the third time,
‘Dost thou love me?’ And he said to him, ‘Lord, thou knowest all things,
thou knowest that I love thee.’ He said to him, ‘Feed my sheep’ ” (John
21:15-17).
“In those days Peter stood up in the midst of the brethren” (Acts 1:15).
“But Peter, standing up with the Eleven, lifted up his voice and spoke out
to them” (Acts 2:14).
148. Did Christ intend that the special power of chief teacher and
ruler of the entire Church should be exercised by Saint Peter alone?
Christ did not intend that the special power of chief teacher and
ruler of the entire Church should be exercised by Saint Peter alone,
but intended that this power should be passed down to his successor,
the Pope, the Bishop of Rome, who is the Vicar of Christ on earth
and the visible head of the Church.
(a) A successor to Saint Peter, the first Bishop of Rome, was required as
chief teacher and ruler for the same reason that successors were required
for the other apostles. From the very beginning it was acknowledged by
the Church that the successor of Saint Peter as Bishop of Rome was at
the same time the head of the entire Church. This successor of Saint Peter
is called the Pope.
(b) The bishops of the Church are the successors of the apostles because
they have received their power of orders by valid consecration through
an unbroken line of successors of the apostles, and have received their
power of jurisdiction through their union with the Pope, the successor of
Saint Peter.
The priests, especially parish priests, assist the bishops in the care of
souls.
(a) Although all priests assist the bishop of a diocese in the care of souls,
parish priests especially are given the definite care of a section of a
diocese, which is called a parish and is of ecclesiastical institution.
SCRIPTURE:
“And when they had appointed presbyters for them in each church, with
prayer and fasting, they commended them to the Lord in whom they had
believed” (Acts 14:22).
The laity of the Church are all its members who do not belong to the
clerical or to the religious state.
(a) The clerical state includes all priests and all aspirants to the
priesthood who have received tonsure, which is the initiation into the
ecclesiastical state. Students of minor and major seminaries are aspirants
to the Priesthood.
(b) The religious state includes men and women who embrace a
community life and make the vows of poverty, chastity, and obedience.
Those who are preparing to embrace the religious state are called
aspirants, postulants, or novices.
(c) Religious and clerics enjoy special canonical privileges and have
many more obligations than lay people have.
(d) Among the laity are secular persons who have embraced the state of
celibacy or virginity, or the matrimonial state.
The Confession of St. Peter (picture)
This picture shows Our Lord Jesus handing over the keys to St. Peter, as
a sign of the power which He was giving him to forgive sins or to retain
them, as shown in the account of St. Matthew:
“Now Jesus, having come into the district of Caesarea Philippi, began to
ask His disciples, saying, ‘Who do men say the Son of Man is?’ But they
said, ‘Some say, John the Baptist; and others, Elias; and others, Jeremias,
or one of the prophets.’ He said to them, ‘But who do you say that I am?’
Simon Peter answered and said, ‘Thou art the Christ, the Son of the
living God.’ Then Jesus answered and said, ‘Blessed art thou, Simon Bar-
Jona, for flesh and blood has not revealed this to thee, but My Father in
heaven. And I say to thee, thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will build
my Church, and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it. And I will
give thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven; and whatever thou shalt
bind on earth shall be bound in heaven, and whatever thou shalt loose on
earth shall be loosed in heaven.’ Then He strictly charged His disciples to
tell no one that He was Jesus the Christ.” (St. Matthew16:13-20)
151. How can the laity help the Church in her care of souls?
The laity can help the Church in her care of souls by leading lives
that will reflect credit on the Church, and by co-operating with their
bishops and priests, especially through Catholic Action.
(b) Catholic Action is the participation of the laity in the apostolate of the
hierarchy of the Church. There can be no Catholic Action without an
episcopal commission.
SCRIPTURE:
“Even so let your light shine before men, in order that they may see your
good works and give glory to your Father in heaven” (Matthew 5:16).
“I entreat Evodia and I exhort Syntyche to be of one mind in the Lord. And
I beseech thee also, my loyal comrade, help them, for they have toiled with
me in the gospel, as have Clement and the rest of my fellow-workers
whose names are in the book of life” (Philippians 4:2-3).
Such was the Church as Christ founded it; and such it continues to be
today. The Catholic Church has remained the Church of Christ for more
than nineteen centuries. It is ruled by the Pope, the successor of St. Peter
and by the bishops, the successors of the other apostles. They exercise
their authority in the name of Christ. To them He says, as He said to the
apostles: “He who hears you hears me” (Luke 10:16). Whatever may be
their personal abilities or disabilities, their perfections or imperfections,
they teach and rule the faithful with power that comes to them from Our
Lord Himself. And the members of the Church, clerical, religious and
lay, are obliged to show them respect and obedience and to co-operate
with their efforts toward the spread of the kingdom of Christ.
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTION. (Select the word or phrase which most exactly and most completely
fills out the sentence):
(1) The Holy Ghost began to dwell in the Church on (Good Friday . . .
Easter Sunday . . . Pentecost).
(2) The Pope is elected by (the bishops . . . the cardinals . . . the people of
Vatican City).
(3) The Pope uses his power of (teaching . . . sanctifying . . . ruling) when
he appoints a priest to be a bishop.
(4) St. Peter was the first bishop of (Rome . . . Corinth . . . Jerusalem).
(5) Christ completed the founding of His Church (at His death . . . when
He rose from the dead . . . just before His Ascension into heaven).
(8) Our Lord promised to give the power of the keys to (St. Peter . . . St.
John . . . all the apostles).
(10) Initiation into the clerical state takes place through (entrance into a
seminary . . . ordination . . . reception of the tonsure).
(3) Out in the lonely farming district where Miriam lives, each Summer a
traveling minister erects a gospel tent which he calls the “Pentecost
Tabernacle.” Miriam is the only Catholic pupil in the seventh grade of the
district school. When the teacher asked the class if anyone knew the
meaning of ‘Pentecost’ not one child, including Miriam, knew the
answer. Should Miriam have been able to answer correctly? Why?
(4) Lucius asks if any of the books of the Bible speak about bishops who
were the successors of the apostles. Can you name any such books?
(5) Christopher is an ardent baseball fan. From memory, he can name the
lineups of the sixteen clubs in the National and the American Leagues.
The other day in a religion test he could give the names of only nine of
the apostles. How many apostles did Our Lord choose, and what are their
names? Do their names appear in the Mass? Where?
(6) What power did Our Lord give the apostles when He said to them:
“Go ye into the whole world and preach the Gospel to every creature.”?
(7) Does the Holy Ghost dwell in the Church today? Can you name any
facts that indicate His indwelling in the Church?
(8) How many inspired accounts have we of Our Lord’s life and works
and sayings? Were all of them penned directly by apostles? Explain your
answer.
(9) When did the apostles receive the command to say Holy Mass and to
hear confessions? In carrying out these commands of Our Lord what
power were the apostles exercising toward the first Christians?
(10) What is the difference between the power of orders and the power of
jurisdiction? In which of the sacraments must both be employed? Which
of these two powers does a bishop exercise when he ordains a man to the
priesthood? When he sends a letter to be read to the people of the
diocese? When he dispenses a person from the law of fasting?
(11) Name the present bishop of your diocese. When was he consecrated
bishop? Do you know the name of the bishop who consecrated him?
Does his power come to him from one of the apostles?
(12) Can you explain to a person who is not a Catholic the meaning of
these terms: diocese; see; seminary; postulant; parish; Catholic Action?
– LESSON 12 –
The Marks and Attributes of the Church
(a) Many churches which claim to be Christian have broken away from
the one true Church established by Jesus Christ. These churches were
founded by men who had no authority from God to found a church.
(b) Christ intended that there should be only one true Christian Church,
for He always spoke of His Church as one.
SCRIPTURE:
“And other sheep I have that are not of this fold. Them also I must bring,
and they shall hear my voice, and there shall be one fold and one
shepherd” (John 10:16).
153. How do we know that the Catholic Church is the one true Church
established by Christ?
“Holy Father, keep in thy name those whom thou hast given me, that they
may be one even as we are” (John 17:11).
“Sanctify them in the truth. Thy word is truth. Even as thou hast sent me
into the world, so I also have sent them into the world. And for them I
sanctify myself, that they also may be sanctified in truth.
“Yet not for these only do I pray, but for those also who through their word
are to believe in me, that all may be one, even as thou, Father, in me and I
in thee; that they also may be one in us, that the world may believe that
thou hast sent me” (John 17:17-21).
See Scripture, question 137, Matthew 16:18; 28:18-20.
By the marks of the Church we mean certain clear signs by which all
men can recognize it as the true Church founded by Jesus Christ.
(a) Jesus Christ willed that the true Church should have these marks,
which would distinguish it from all false religions.
The chief marks of the Church are four: It is one, holy, catholic or
universal, and apostolic.
(a) Sacred Scripture teaches that the one true Church of Christ must have
these marks.
(b)The marks of the Church are themselves an indication that God guides
the Church.
The Catholic Church is one because all its members, according to the
will of Christ, profess the same faith, have the same sacrifice and
sacraments, and are united under one and the same visible head, the
Pope.
(a) Our Divine Saviour prayed explicitly that His Church might be one,
and He made it one; thus men can recognize it as the true Church.
(b) Only the Catholic Church possesses this mark of unity. Various sects,
having only fragments of Christianity, are divided in doctrine and
practice and recognize no authority but their own judgment, which can
easily lead them into error.
(c)There are many religious sects which claim to be Christian, but are
separated from the unity of Christ by their rejection of the authority
invested by Him in the Roman Pontiff, the successor to Saint Peter.
(d) Catholics accept all the doctrines of faith and morals which were
taught by Our Lord and the apostles and are proposed by the Church for
belief and practice. A person who deliberately denies even one of the
doctrines of the Church cannot be a Catholic. The Church is one in faith.
(e) Catholics take part in the same sacrifice of the Mass and accept the
same sacraments, although the same language and the same ceremonies
are not used by all in the offering of Mass and in the administration of the
sacraments. Everywhere the essential parts of the ceremonies are the
same and substantially the same words are used in offering Mass. Hence
the Church is one in worship. What Christ determined, the Church cannot
change. Since Christ, however, did not determine many points of worship
in non-essential matters, the Church has the authority to do so.
(f) Catholics are subject to their respective bishops who rule them. They
must recognize the supreme authority of the Pope in matters of religion.
A person who deliberately refuses to accept the legitimate and supreme
authority of the Pope and the bishops in matters of religion cannot be a
Catholic.
SCRIPTURE:
“For from the rising of the sun even to the going down, my name is great
among the Gentiles: and in every place there is sacrifice and there is
offered to my name a clean oblation” (Malachias 1:11).
“For just as in one body we have many members, yet all the members have
not the same function, so we, the many, are one body in Christ, but
severally members one of another” (Romans 12:4-5).
“Because the bread is one, we though many, are one body, all of us who
partake of the one bread” (I Corinthians 10:17).
“...one body and one Spirit, even as you were called in one hope of your
calling one Lord, one faith, one Baptism, one God and Father of all, who is
above all, and throughout all, and in us all” (Ephesians 4:4-6).
See Scripture, question 152.
157. Why is the Catholic Church holy?
(b) Even some of the enemies of the Church recognize the holiness of the
doctrines which the Church teaches. The efforts of others to prove that
the Church is not holy show that they acknowledge holiness as a mark of
truth.
(c) The lives of the saints, of the martyrs, and of good Catholics prove
how effective are the means of grace with which the Church is endowed.
Moreover, God has always favored the Catholic Church with miracles.
(d) Bad Catholics do not disprove the holiness of the Church since they
do not use the means of grace at their disposal. Christ foretold that there
would be good and bad members of His Church as we read in the
parables of the fishes in the net and the cockle among the wheat.
SCRIPTURE:
“. . .looking for the blessed hope and glorious coming of our great God and
Savior, Jesus Christ, who gave himself for us that be might redeem us from
all iniquity and cleanse for himself an acceptable people, pursuing good
works” (Titus 2:13-14).
“And you know that he appeared to take our sins away, and sin is not in
him” (I John 3:5).
See Scripture, question 153, John 17:17-21.
(b) The Church today teaches the same doctrine it received from Christ.
It has existed uninterruptedly since the day it was established down to the
present time. The Church exists in a more flourishing condition in some
nations than in others. It is always trying to preach the gospel to all races
and in all places and sends its missioners to the most remote places on
earth.
(c) Christian sects began later and for the most part exist in only some
sections of the world. In trying to accommodate themselves to the
changing conditions of the time, they have made changes in the doctrines
of Christ without any divine authorization.
SCRIPTURE:
“And this gospel of the kingdom shall be preached in the whole world, for
a witness to all nations; and then will come the end” (Matthew 24:14).
“And he said to them, ‘Go into the whole world and preach the gospel to
every creature. He who believes and is baptized shall be saved, but he who
does not believe shall be condemned’ “ (Mark 16:15-16).
“But you shall receive power when the Holy Spirit comes upon you, and
you shall be witnesses for me in Jerusalem and in all Judea and Samaria
and even to the very ends of the earth” (Acts 1:8).
“Faith then depends on hearing, and hearing on the word of Christ. But I
say: Have they not heard? Yes, indeed, ‘Their voice has gone forth into all
the earth, and their words unto the ends of the world’ ” (Romans 10:17-
18).
See Scripture, question, 137, Matthew 28:19-20.
(a) The true Church is apostolic because it is the Church Christ founded
upon the apostles, and especially upon Peter whom He called the Rock
on which the Church would be built. The supreme power of Saint Peter
in the Church has been passed down through the unbroken line of his
successors in the see of Rome.
SCRIPTURE:
“And I say to thee, thou art Peter, and upon this rock I will build my
Church, and the gates of hell shall not prevail against it” (Matthew 16:18).
“Therefore, you are now no longer strangers and foreigners, but you are
citizens with the saints and members of God’s household: you are built
upon the foundation of the apostles and prophets with Christ Jesus himself
as the chief cornerstone” (Ephesians 2:19-20).
160. How do we know that no other church but the Catholic Church is
the true Church of Christ?
We know that no other church but the Catholic Church is the true
Church of Christ because no other church has these four marks.
(a) All other churches lack essential unity. They recognize no authority in
religious matters vested in an individual who is the vicar of Christ. In the
worship of God many Christian sects are guided more by sentiment and
personal conviction than by the objective truths given to the world by
Our Lord.
(b) The founders of Christian sects were not saints and generally were
not holy or edifying men. The sects have not given saints to the world.
Their truths are but fragments of the doctrines of the Catholic Church.
The holiness of their members is due to the means that the sects have
salvaged from Catholic worship. Moreover, these sects cannot point to
miracles wrought in their favor.
(c) Not one of the Christian sects is universal or catholic; that is, not one
has universality such as that of the Catholic Church.
(d) Not one of the Christian sects can trace its origin to the apostles.
(e) The Greek Orthodox or Schismatic Church began in the ninth century
with its rejection of the authority of the Pope. From it have come various
national churches, subject in some degree to civil authority. The
Protestant churches began in the sixteenth century when their founders,
rejecting certain doctrines of faith, broke away from Catholic unity.
Many Protestant denominations are offshoots of the earliest sects. The
Lutherans were founded by Martin Luther, the Presbyterians by John
Knox, and the Methodists by John Wesley.
By the authority of the Catholic Church is meant that the Pope and
the bishops, as the lawful successors of the apostles, have power from
Christ Himself to teach, to sanctify, and to govern the faithful in
spiritual matters.
(a) Christ Himself gave this authority to Saint Peter and the other
apostles when He bestowed the power of binding and loosing, of
teaching and baptizing. He implicitly guaranteed the same power to the
successors of the apostles when He promised to be with them all days,
even to the consummation of the world.
(b) Outside the Church there generally is no real recognition of authority
in spiritual matters and this disregard for spiritual authority has lessened
the respect for civil and domestic authority.
(c) The Church has authority over temporal matters which are closely
connected with spiritual matters, as the administration of Church
property.
(d) The Pope, as the supreme head of the Church, cannot rightly be made
a subject of any temporal power on earth. The present position of the
Pope, as head of the Vatican City, shows to the world that he and his
household are not the subjects of other temporal powers. When we speak
of the temporal power of the Pope, we do not mean thereby merely to
classify him with earthly rulers. The Pope’s temporal power is a means to
an end, guaranteeing that freedom of word and action which he must
rightfully enjoy as the supreme spiritual ruler of the Church.
SCRIPTURE:
“Take heed to yourselves and to the whole flock in which the Holy Spirit
has placed you as bishops, to rule the Church of God, which he has
purchased with his own blood” (Acts 20:28).
(d) The Church cannot change its defined teachings on faith and morals,
though it may restate them more clearly and more completely.
“And I will ask the Father and he will give you another Advocate to dwell
with you forever, the Spirit of truth” (John 14:16).
“But the Advocate, the Holy Spirit, whom the Father will send in my
name, he will teach you all things, and bring to your mind whatever I have
said to you” (John 14:26).
See Scripture, question 143, John 16:13-14; question 147, Luke 22:31-32.
(a) The Holy Father must intend to use his supreme, apostolic authority
when he teaches infallibly.
(b) The Pope can teach without speaking infallibly; for example, he does
this in his encyclical letters. Catholics must accept such teachings, not on
faith, but in obedience to the authority of the Pope and in respect for his
wisdom.
“For as often as you shall eat this bread and drink the cup, you proclaim
the death of the Lord, until he comes” (I Corinthians 11:26).
“And as Moses lifted up the serpent in the desert, even so must the Son of
Man be lifted up, that those who believe in him may not perish, but may
have life everlasting” (John 3:14-15).
“Jesus said to him, ‘I am the way, and the truth, and the life. No one comes
to the Father but through me’ ” (John 14:6).
“In the name of Jesus Christ of Nazareth, whom you crucified, whom God
has raised from the dead, even in this name does he stand here before you,
sound. This is ‘The stone that was rejected by you, the builders, which has
become the comer stone.’ Neither is there salvation in any other. For there
is no other name under heaven given to men by which we must be saved”
(Acts 4:10-12).
(a) “Outside the Church there is no salvation” does not mean that
everyone who is not a Catholic will be condemned. It does mean that no
one can be saved unless he belongs in some manner to the Catholic
Church, either actually or in desire, for the means of grace are not given
without some relation to the divine institution established by Christ.
168. Can they be saved who remain outside the Catholic Church
because they do not know it is the true Church?
(a) Those who are outside the Church through no fault of their own are
not culpable in the sight of God because of their invincible ignorance.
(b) Persons who make use of the graces God gives them, even though
they are not members of the true Church, actually have the desire to
become members inasmuch as they wish to use all the means ordained by
God for their salvation.
(c) We should pray and try to persuade others to investigate the teachings
of the Catholic Church because charity obliges us to do all we can to lead
others to salvation. We should also pray for Catholic missioners and help
them in their work of bringing the faith to those outside the Catholic
Church.
169. Why is the Catholic Church called the Mystical Body of Christ?
“Abide in me, and I in you. As the branch cannot bear fruit of itself unless
it remain on the vine, so neither can you unless you abide in me. I am the
vine, you are the branches. He who abides in me, and I in him, he bears
much fruit; for without me you can do nothing. If anyone does not abide in
me, he shall be cast outside as the branch and wither; and they shall gather
them up and cast them into the fire, and they shall burn. If you abide in
me, and if my words abide in you, ask whatever you will and it shall be
done to you” (John 15:4-7).
“Yet not for these only do I pray, but for those also who through their word
are to believe in me, that all may be one, even as thou, Father, in me and I
in thee; that they also may be one in us, that the world may believe that
thou hast sent me. And the glory that thou hast given me, I have given to
them, that they may be one, even as we are one: I in them, and thou in me;
that they may be perfected in unity” (John 17:20-23).
“And all things he made subject under his feet, and him he gave as head
over all the Church, which indeed is his body, the completion of him who
fills all with all” (Ephesians 1:22-23).
These marks are not the only proofs we have that the Catholic Church is
the one true Church of Jesus Christ. We have another convincing
argument in the many miracles that have always been wrought in the
Catholic Church, in support of the Church’s doctrines or at the
intercession of a saint or a holy person. For example, in recent times
many sick persons have been cured at the shrine of the Blessed Virgin
Mary at Lourdes in France, in a manner that could not have been
produced naturally. These must be wrought by God as a special favor to
His Mother and to the Church which venerates her. Now, the God of truth
would not work miracles for a false religion, and so the Catholic religion
in whose favor these miracles take place must be true. Again, the fact
that the Church has survived all kinds of obstacles and persecutions for
almost twenty centuries is a proof that the Catholic Church is the Church
of God; since any merely human organization would have perished long
ago.
Catholics, however, are tolerant toward persons who hold false doctrines.
In other words, we believe that we are obliged to show Christian charity
to all such persons, to love them as our brothers and sisters, to aid them
in their necessities. We should presume that they are honest and sincere
in holding their religious beliefs, and we should pray that God may bless
and enlighten them. Even if some of them are unkind to us and persecute
us because we are Catholics, we should not manifest a like spirit of
bigotry toward them.
RESOLUTION: Thank God every day for giving you the grace of being
a member of the one true Church, the Catholic Church.
STUDY HELPS
A. COLUMN SELECTION. (Join correctly the parts of the sentences in Columns I and II, by
placing the right key letter in the proper parenthesis):
Column I
(4) A person who deliberately denies one doctrine of the Catholic Church
(. .) .
Column II
(1) Prove to Sydney, a non-Catholic boy interested in the subject, that our
Blessed Saviour established only one Church.
(2) Wenceslaus, 10 years old, lives in a mining town. There are three
Catholic churches close to one another on Main Street. He wonders how
the Church is One when the Ukrainians and the Syrian Catholics are
using different churches, different languages and different ceremonies in
their services. Explain matters to him.
(3) Nelson, a very fine Protestant boy, tells Sylvester, his Catholic chum,
that once his whole family were on the point of joining the Catholic
Church, but changed their minds because some of their Catholic
neighbors were disreputable characters. In the face of Nelson’s testimony,
how can Sylvester uphold the claim of the Church that she is holy?
(4) How many Popes have governed the Church during the present
century? Name them.
(5) What is the name of the territory that now is under the temporal
power of the Pope?
(6) Theresa, who is not a Catholic, admits that sometimes she wonders if
the Catholic Church is the true Church, but she does not make further
inquiries because some of the duties of Catholics are hard, and she does
not wish to be convinced that she must join the Catholic Church. Will
Theresa be saved if she dies in this state of mind? Explain your answer.
(7) Grace, a non-Catholic high school girl, wants to know if the Pope’s
infallibility prevents him from mistakes in arithmetic, spelling,
geography and history? Enlighten her on the point.
(9) Does infallibility make the Pope impeccable, that is, does it mean that
the Holy Father cannot commit sin?
(13) Besides the four marks of the Church, what other convincing proof
have we that the Catholic Church is the one true Church of Jesus Christ?
(a) The blessed in heaven comprise the Church triumphant; the souls in
purgatory, the Church suffering; and the faithful on earth, the Church
militant.
SCRIPTURE:
“It is therefore a holy and wholesome thought to pray for the dead, that
they may be loosed from sins” (II Machabees 12:46).
“In him (Christ Jesus) the whole structure is closely fitted together and
grows into a temple holy in the Lord; in him you too are being built
together into a dwelling place for God in the Spirit” (Ephesians 2:21-22).
“ ... rendering thanks to the Father, who has made us worthy to share the
lot of the saints in light” (Colossians 1:12).
“But you have come to Mount Sion, and to the city of the living God, the
heavenly Jerusalem, and to the company of many thousands of angels, and
to the Church of the firstborn who are enrolled in the heavens, and to God,
the judge of all, and to the spirits of the just made perfect, and to Jesus,
mediator of a new covenant” (Hebrews 12:22-24).
171. Through the communion of saints, what can the blessed in heaven
do for the souls in purgatory and the faithful on earth?
Through the communion of saints, the blessed in heaven can help the
souls in purgatory and the faithful on earth by praying for them.
(a) The prayers of the blessed in heaven are always efficacious because
they are always in accord with God’s will.
SCRIPTURE:
“When thou didst pray with tears, and didst bury the dead, and didst leave
thy dinner, and hide the dead by day in thy house, and bury them by night,
I offered thy prayer to the Lord” (Tobias 12:12).
“And there was given to him much incense, that he might offer it with the
prayers of all the saints upon the golden altar which is before the throne”
(Apocalypse 8:3).
(a) Many saints have special feastdays. All the saints are honored on the
Feast of All Saints, November 1.
SCRIPTURE:
“Let us now praise men of renown, and our fathers in their generation”
(Ecclesiasticus 44:1).
(a) Mass can be frequently offered for the repose of a soul. There are
special Requiem Masses for the day of the funeral, the thirtieth day after
death or burial, and the anniversary of the death or burial. On All Souls’
Day, November 2, Masses are offered for all the souls in purgatory.
(b) Most indulgences granted by the Church are applicable to the poor
souls in purgatory.
(d) Bishops and other prelates designated in the Code of Canon Law can
determine and declare one altar, in churches specified by law, as
privileged daily and perpetually, under the conditions prescribed by the
Sacred Canons.
(e) All Masses celebrated at any altar on All Souls’ Day, and during its
octave, and during the Forty Hours’ Devotion enjoy the same privilege as
those offered on a privileged altar, but only in favor of the soul for whom
the Mass is said.
SCRIPTURE:
“It is therefore a holy and wholesome thought to pray for the dead, that
they may be loosed from sins” (II Machabees 12:46).
(a) Prayer, one of the spiritual works of mercy, is of value not only for
the living but also for the dead. The other spiritual works of mercy and
most of the corporal works are concerned primarily with the living.
SCRIPTURE:
“Then the king will say to those on his right hand, ‘Come, blessed of my
Father, take possession of the kingdom prepared for you from the
foundation of the world; for I was hungry and you gave me to eat; I was
thirsty and you gave me to drink; I was a stranger and you took me in;
naked and you covered me; sick and you visited me; I was in prison and
you came to me.’ Then the just will answer him, saying, ‘Lord, when did
we see thee hungry, and feed thee; or thirsty, and give thee drink? And
when did we see thee a stranger, and take thee in; or naked, and clothe
thee? Or when did we see thee sick, or in prison, and come to thee?’ And
answering the king will say to them, ‘Amen I say to you, as long as you
did it for one of these, the least of my brethren, you did it for me’ “
(Matthew 25:34-40).
“By this will all men know that you are my disciples, if you have love for
one another” (John 13:35).
“Pray for one another that you may be saved. For the unceasing prayer of a
just man is of great avail” (James 5:16).
The Mystical Body of Christ (picture)
This picture shows the Communion of Saints. The assembly of the
Angels and Saints in Heaven, the faithful on earth, and the souls in
Purgatory are all shown.
On top, the Angels and Saints adore the three Persons of the Trinity and
pray to them for the faithful who still live on earth.
In the middle, the faithful on earth assist at the Holy Sacrifice of the
Mass, where they invoke the Saints in Heaven, pray for each other, and
ask for the deliverance of the Poor Souls from Purgatory.
At the bottom are the souls in Purgatory. The refreshing waters which
two Angels pour upon them symbolizes the relief which the Holy
Sacrifice of the Mass obtains for them.
(a) The Church exercises the power to forgive sin when sins committed
before the reception of Baptism are forgiven by that sacrament; but
especially does the Church exercise this power in the sacrament of
Penance.
SCRIPTURE:
“He therefore said to them again, ‘Peace be to you! As the Father has sent
me, I also send you.’ When he had said this, he breathed upon them, and
said to them, “Receive the Holy Spirit; whose sins you shall forgive, they
are forgiven them; and whose sins you shall retain, they are retained’ ”
(John 20:21-23).
These friends are: first, those living on earth with sanctifying grace and
charity in their souls; these make up the Church militant, so called
because its members are still engaged in the spiritual warfare against the
world, the flesh and the devil, hoping to be victorious and to win the
crown of eternal life; second, the souls in purgatory–those who have left
this world in the state of grace but must still make atonement to God for
a debt of temporal punishment; these make up the Church suffering; third,
the saints in heaven, called the Church triumphant, because they have
won the victory and are now enjoying their triumph with God for all
eternity.
There are millions of saints in heaven, but only certain ones have been
canonized, or officially declared by the Church to be in heaven. When
the Church canonizes a saint, we have absolute certainty that this person
is in heaven, for the Church is infallible in canonizations. We can also be
sure that baptized children who die before they reach the age of reason–
perhaps members of our own family–are in heaven, and we can invoke
them in our private devotions. The saints in heaven help in a particular
way those who were dear to them in life and those who ask their prayers.
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the following statements as either true or false. The
correct answer can be found in the previous portions of this lesson).
(2) The indulgence of the privileged altar means that the Church grants a
plenary indulgence to the soul in purgatory for whom the Mass is said.
(3) It is a truth of the Catholic faith that the souls in purgatory pray for
those on earth.
(7) We are allowed to pray privately to a baptized child who died before
reaching the age of reason.
(9) Some sins are so grievous that the Church cannot forgive them.
(10) All the spiritual works of mercy are concerned with the living.
(2) What spiritual bonds unite the three classes of saints that form the
Church Triumphant, the Church Suffering, and the Church Militant?
(5) Silvia wonders is anyone in heaven praying for her and her family.
Give her your answer.
(6) Placida, a child in the fifth grade, has difficulties with her lessons.
She studies faithfully enough, but her memory of things is not very good.
Sabina, her sister in the seventh grade, urges Placida to pray to the souls
in purgatory whenever her memory fails her. What do you think of
Sabina’s advice?
(8) Can you name five canonized saints? Can you name two saints
canonized by Pope Pius XII? Can you name anyone who died in America
and may one day be a canonized saint?
(9) Roberta hears her parish priest announce that on All Souls’ Day he
will celebrate three Masses. On what two days of the year may every
priest offer the Holy Sacrifice three times?
(10) In which sense of the word “saint” as used in this lesson are only
extraordinarily holy men and women and children meant? Explain.
(11) Explain to Cleopatra, a Protestant neighbor about your own age,
what is meant by the title we Catholics confer on our Blessed Mother:
“Mediatrix of All Graces.” Though not a Catholic, the young girl has a
tender regard for the “Virgin,” as she calls her.
(a) No man knows when the world will end. The signs preceding the
destruction of the world, as given in Scripture, are: wars, famine,
pestilence, the coming of Antichrist, the darkening of the sun and moon,
and the appearance of the cross in heaven.
SCRIPTURE:
“But immediately after the tribulation of those days, the sun will be
darkened, and the moon will not give her light, and the stars will fall from
heaven, and the powers of heaven will be shaken. And then will appear the
sign of the Son of Man in heaven; and then will all tribes of the earth
mourn, and they will see the Son of Man coming upon the clouds of
heaven with great power and majesty. And he will send forth his angels
with a trumpet and a great sound, and they will gather his elect from the
four winds, from one end of the heavens to the other” (Matthew 24:29-31).
(See also Romans 8:11).
See Scripture, question 99; question 100, John 5:28-29; I Corinthians 15:51-53.
The bodies of the just will rise to share forever in the glory of their
souls.
(a) During their earthly life the bodies of the just were the temples of the
Holy Ghost; they were the instruments of the good acts by which the
souls of the just merited eternal life. Respect should be shown for the
bodies of the faithful departed; special burial places should be set aside
for them, and their graves should be blessed.
(b After the resurrection the bodies of the just will be in a glorified state.
There will then be no need for food and drink to preserve the body,
which will be endowed with qualities it did not possess in this life.
178. Has the body of any human person ever been glorified and taken
into heaven?
(a) This question emphasizes human person because the Divine Person,
Jesus Christ, in His human nature has risen from the dead, glorious and
immortal, and ascended into heaven (question 98 ).
(b) Since she was free from all sin, both original and actual, it was most
fitting that the Blessed Virgin Mary should be preserved from the
consequences of sin; the corruption of death and the deferment of glory
until the last day. Moreover, since the Son of God took His flesh and
blood from the chaste body of Mary, it was most appropriate that her
body shall be glorified as soon as her earthly life was ended. From the
early centuries, the doctrine of Mary’s bodily glorification and
assumption was accepted by the Church as contained in Christian
Tradition. It was declared a doctrine of divine-catholic faith by Pope Pius
XII on November 1, 1950. The Feast of the Assumption is celebrated on
August 15.
(c) It is not certain whether the Blessed Virgin Mary first died and was
shortly afterward taken into heaven, in body and soul, or was preserved
from death and taken immediately to heavenly glory when her life on
earth was ended. Pope Pius XII refrained from making a decision on this
question when he issued his solemn definition of the Assumption of the
Blessed Virgin.
(a) Since the body is the instrument of the soul in committing sin, it is
just that the body also share in eternal punishment.
180. What is the judgment called which will be passed on all men
immediately after the general resurrection?
The judgment which will be passed on all men immediately after the
general resurrection is called the general judgment.
(b) Every deliberate thought, word, deed, and omission of every person’s
entire life will be manifested at the general judgment.
“For the Son of Man is to come with his angels in the glory of his Father,
and then he will render to everyone according to his conduct” (Matthew
16:27). “Then the king will say to those on his right hand, ‘Come, blessed
of my Father, take possession of the kingdom prepared for you from the
foundation of the world; for I was hungry and you gave me to eat; I was
thirsty and you gave me to drink; I was a stranger and you took me in;
naked and you covered me; sick and you visited me; I was in prison and
you came to me.’ Then the just will answer him, saying, ‘Lord, when did
we see thee hungry, and feed thee; or thirsty, and give thee drink? And
when did we see thee a stranger, and take thee in; or naked, and clothe
thee? Or when did we see thee sick, or in prison, and come to thee?’ And
answering the king will say to them, ‘Amen I say to you, as long as you
did it for one of these, the least of my brethren, you did it for me.’
“Then he will say to those on his left hand, ‘Depart from me, accursed
ones, into the everlasting fire which was prepared for the devil and his
angels. For I was hungry, and you did not give me to eat; I was thirsty and
you gave me no drink; I was a stranger and you did not take me in; naked,
and you did not clothe me; sick, and in prison, and you did not visit me.’
Then they also will answer and say, ‘Lord, when did we see thee hungry,
or thirsty, or a stranger, or naked, or sick, or in prison, and did not minister
to thee?’ Then he will answer them, saying, ‘Amen I say to you, as long as
you did not do it for one of these least ones, you did not do it for me.’ And
these will go into everlasting punishment, but the just into everlasting life”
(Matthew 25:34-46).
181. What is the judgment called which will be passed on each one of
us immediately after death?
(a) The existence of the particular judgment is apparent from the parable
of Lazarus and Dives, which shows that one soul was rewarded and
another punished immediately after death. Reward or punishment follows
the sentence of judgment.
(b) The sentence of this judgment is final and will not be reversed.
(c) The particular judgment will be given immediately after the soul
leaves the body. The soul will go at once either to its reward in heaven or
to its punishment in purgatory or hell.
SCRIPTURE:
“Then shall the just stand with great constancy against those that have
afflicted them and taken away their labors. These seeing it, shall be
troubled with terrible fear, and shall be amazed at the suddenness of their
unexpected salvation. Saying within themselves, repenting, and groaning
for anguish of spirit: These are they whom we had some time in derision
and for a parable of reproach. We fools esteemed their life madness and
their end without honor. Behold how they are numbered among the
children of God, and their lot is among the saints. Therefore we have erred
from the way of truth, and the light of justice hath not shined unto us, and
the sun of understanding hath not risen upon us. We wearied ourselves in
the way of iniquity and destruction, and have walked through hard way:
but the way of the Lord we have not known. What hath pride profited us?
Or what advantage hath the boasting of riches brought us? All those things
are passed away like a shadow, and like a post that runneth on” (Wisdom
5:1-9).
See Scripture, question 180, Matthew 25:34-46.
183. What are the rewards or punishments appointed for men after
the particular judgment?
Those are punished for a time in purgatory who die in the state of
grace but are guilty of venial sin, or have not fully satisfied for the
temporal punishment due to their sins.
(c) The souls in purgatory are certain of entering heaven as soon as God’s
justice has been fully satisfied.
SCRIPTURE:
“The fire will assay the quality of everyone’s work: if his work abides
which he has built thereon, he will receive reward; if his work burns he
will lose his reward, but himself will be saved, yet so as through fire” (I
Corinthians 3:13-15).
See Scripture, question 173, II Machabees 12:46.
Those are punished in hell who die in mortal sin; they are deprived
of the vision of God and suffer dreadful torments, especially that of
fire, for all eternity.
(a) The souls in hell are beyond all help. They do not belong to the
Mystical Body of Christ or to the Communion of Saints. They are not
included among our neighbors and are not the objects of charity. They are
doomed to the company of the devils for all eternity.
(b) The souls in hell do not have supernatural faith. They believe,
however, in the truths revealed by Almighty God, not with divine faith,
but because they cannot escape the evidence of God’s authority.
(c) The privation of the beatific vision is called the pain of loss; the
torment inflicted by created means on the soul, and on the body after its
resurrection, is called the pain of sense.
(d) It is not against God’s mercy to punish souls in hell for eternity.
God’s justice demands that He thus punish those who, sinning gravely
and refusing to repent, deliberately turn themselves from God, their last
end.
(e) The punishment of hell is eternal; Our Lord referred to it as
“everlasting fire.”
SCRIPTURE:
“Then he will say to those on his left hand, ‘Depart from me, accursed
ones, into the everlasting fire which was prepared for the devil and his
angels’ ” (Matthew 25:41).
“Indeed it is just on the part of God to repay with affliction those who
afflict you, and to give you who are afflicted rest with us at the revelation
of the Lord Jesus, who will come from heaven with the angels of his
power, in flaming fire, to inflict punishment on those who do not know
God, and who do not obey the gospel of our Lord Jesus Christ. These will
be punished with eternal ruin, away from the face of the Lord and the
glory of his power, when on that day he shall come to be glorified in his
saints, and to be marveled at in all those who have believed (II
Thessalonians 1:6-10).
Those are rewarded in heaven who have died in the state of grace
and have been purified in purgatory, if necessary, from all venial sin
and all debt of temporal punishment; they see God face to face and
share forever in His glory and happiness.
(a) The happiness of heaven consists in the beatific vision and the
consequent joy of the blessed. This happiness is not postponed to the end
of the world but begins as soon as all venial sin and the temporal
punishment for sin have been remitted.
(b) The body participates in this happiness only after the resurrection at
the end of the world.
(c) The blessed rejoice in the company of Our Saviour, the Blessed
Virgin Mary, all the angels and saints, and the friends they knew on earth
who have attained the reward of eternal life.
“Then the king will say to those on his right hand, ‘Come, blessed of my
Father, take possession of the kingdom prepared for you from the
foundation of the world’ ” (Matthew 25:34).
“Now this is everlasting life, that they may know thee, the only true God,
and him whom thou hast sent, Jesus Christ” (John 17:3).
“But, as it is written, ‘Eye has not seen nor ear heard, nor has it entered
into the heart of man, what things God has prepared for those who love
him’ ” (I Corinthians 2:9).
“We see now through a mirror in an obscure manner, but then face to
face”(I Corinthians 13:12).
“We know that, when he appears, we shall be like to him, for we shall see
him just as he is” (I John 3:2).
“And there shall not enter into it anything defiled, nor he who practices
abomination and falsehood” (Apocalypse 21:27).
187. What is meant by the word “Amen” with which we end the
Apostles’ Creed?
(a) Our Divine Saviour frequently used this term to emphasize His
teaching.
SCRIPTURE:
“Amen I say to you, I have not found such great faith in Israel” (Matthew
8:10).
“Amen I say to you, unless you turn and become like little children, you
will not enter into the kingdom of heaven” (Matthew 18:3).
IMPORTANT TRUTHS ABOUT THE RESURRECTION AND
LIFE EVERLASTING
We know that we must all die. When, where and how we shall die is
uncertain; but that one day our soul will depart from our body, and that
our body will then return to the dust of earth, we are absolutely certain.
The all-important question is “What will take place after death?” St. Paul
tells us: “It is appointed unto men to die once but after this comes the
judgment” (Hebr. 9:27). Our Catholic faith assures us that we shall
appear before God twice to be judged for the deeds of our lifetime. The
first occasion occurs the very first moment after death in the very place
where we die. Then, in a single instant our entire life will be examined by
the all-knowing, all-just God, and the sentence given that will determine
our eternal abode. The soul will be sentenced to eternal punishment if it
is defiled by the guilt of mortal sin; if it is free from all sin and from the
debt of temporal punishment it will be admitted at once to the joys of
heaven; if it is adorned with the supernatural life of sanctifying grace but
is in venial sin or is still burdened by a debt of temporal punishment, it
will go to purgatory until full satisfaction is made and it is made worthy
of the presence of God. The souls in purgatory are often called the
faithful departed. God punishes these souls, not in a spirit of vengeance,
but because He loves them and wills that they be fully purified so that
they can be admitted to His presence.
This is the particular judgment, and here the fate of the soul is
determined unchangeably. But it often happens that the justice and the
wisdom of God are hidden from the eyes of men in the present world.
Those who lead good lives frequently have many trials to endure, while
those who freely transgress God’s law prosper. The question may arise in
the minds of some: “How can God be just and good and wise, if He
allows these things?” And so, in order that all men may see that God is
all-just, and may understand that in the next life, if not in this, every one
receives what is his due, there is a final or general judgment, conducted
by Our Blessed Lord. He Himself describes this in an inspiring passage
recorded in the twenty-fifth chapter of the Gospel according to St.
Matthew, beginning with the words: “When the Son of Man shall come
in his majesty, and all the angels with him, then he will sit on the throne
of his glory; and before him will be gathered all the nations” (Matthew,
25:31-32). Before the judgment, every human being that has ever lived
will rise from the dead-that is, the body of every member of the human
race will be formed again from the elements of the earth into which it
passed after death and will be reunited to its soul, and then in the
presence of the entire human race every individual will be judged, and
will hear the sentence either of eternal reward or of eternal punishment.
With the aid of our body and its senses we did either good or evil; and so,
our body will share our happiness or our misery for all eternity.
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTION. (Select the word or phrase in the parentheses which most exactly and
most completely fills out the sentence):
(2) The Blessed Virgin Mary (never died ... died and her body corrupted
in the grave . . . was taken into heaven, her glorified body united to her
immaculate soul.
(6) After the general judgment purgatory (will continue for all eternity . .
. will continue for a time . . . will cease to exist).
(9) The privation of the beatific vision in hell is called (the pain of loss . .
. remorse of conscience . . . the pain of sense).
(1) On how many occasions after our death will God pass judgment on
the deeds of our lifetime?
(2) Cordelia, a cultured college woman but utterly pagan in her morals, is
extremely wealthy. She enjoys the good things of this life, often at the
expense of her conscience. The society columns of the leading
newspapers flatter her vanity frequently. She does not go to church.
Amanda, a Catholic, is a poor laundress in her employ. Amanda is a
widow with five children. The first Friday of every month sees Amanda
at the Communion rail. She receives also every Sunday. She is a victim
of chronic rheumatism, and barely gets along on the small pay she
receives from Cordelia. Sometimes Amanda is tempted to give up the
struggle to be good, the devil suggesting the thought: “How can your
God be good and wise, if He allows you to suffer and your mistress to
prosper? Write a short note to Amanda, cheering her, and encouraging
her to continue to serve God faithfully. In your note be sure to mention a
truth learned in this lesson.
(3) Write from memory the two sentences Our Lord will pronounce at the
end of the general judgment.
(5) Christina is asked by her Sunday School teacher “If you hope to reach
heaven, what must be in your soul when you leave this world” Christina
does not remember ever seeing that question in her Catechism. Answer it
for her.
(7) Phil and his teammates on St. Pancratius’ baseball team are saddened
by the death of their baseball idol. They file past his corpse, all saying a
short prayer for the repose of his soul. He was a Christian, but not a
Catholic. Was it proper for them to pray for his soul? Why?
(8) If a soul leaves this world in mortal sin, is there any probability that
God will give it an opportunity to repent in eternity?
(9) Aurelia is making a novena for the feast of the Assumption. She
wonders why the priest doesn’t present a relic of the Blessed Virgin Mary
after every service, the same as he does after the services of the Little
Flower novena, when a relic of St. Therese is venerated. Aurelia says she
would very much like to kiss the reliquary containing a little piece of a
bone taken from the body of our Blessed Mother. Let Aurelia know why
the priest doesn’t present such a relic during the Assumption novena.
(10) Two policemen shoot Valerian through the head and the heart as the
gunman is staging a bank holdup. Before the horrified spectators,
Valerian instantaneously topples over dead on the floor of the bank.
Where does his particular judgment take place? If death claims him
unrepentant in mortal sin, what is his eternal fate?
(12) Adele’s mother died a month ago. Daily, for two weeks afterwards,
Adele went to Mass and received Holy Communion for the repose of her
mother’s soul. Then she stopped, thinking she had done enough to release
her dear mother from purgatory. Do you think she has done enough?
Give the reasons for your answer.
188. Besides believing what God has revealed, what else must we do to
be saved?
Besides believing what God has revealed, we must keep His law.
(a) God has clearly revealed that we must keep His law to attain eternal
salvation. The revealed doctrines, which we must believe, give us the
reasons for obeying the law.
(b) The law of God is an expression of divine wisdom guiding man to his
end and regulating man’s relations to his Creator and to his fellow men.
Some actions are good in themselves; others are good because they are
commanded. Some actions are evil in themselves; others are evil because
they are forbidden. Good actions are in conformity with human nature as
created by God; evil actions are contrary to it. The law of God
presupposes the divine will and also divine wisdom.
(c) Every rational creature must obey the law of God as made known
through human reason and divine revelation.
SCRIPTURE:
“He who has my commandments and keeps them, he it is who loves me”
(John 14:21).
“But if thou wilt enter into life, keep the commandments” (Matthew
19:17).
189. Which are the two great commandments that contain the whole
law of God?
The two great commandments that contain the whole law of God
are: first, Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with thy whole heart, and
with thy whole soul, and with thy whole mind, and with thy whole
strength; second, Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself.
(a) The whole law of God can be reduced to the commandment of love of
God, because the proper motive of love of neighbor and love of self is
God.
(b) The first three commandments of the Decalogue refer directly to the
commandment of love of God; the last seven regard the love of neighbor
and imply love of oneself.
SCRIPTURE:
“And one of them, a doctor of the Law, putting him to the test, asked him,
‘Master, which is the great commandment in the Law?’ Jesus said to him.
‘Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with thy whole heart, and with thy
whole soul, and with thy whole mind.’
This is the greatest and the first commandment. And the second is like it,
“Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself.” On these two commandments
depend the whole Law and the Prophets’ ” (Matthew 22:35-40).
(c) We prove our true love for our fellow man by performing the corporal
and spiritual works of mercy, which should have as their motive the love
of God and not merely humanitarian or natural reasons.
SCRIPTURE:
“Give alms out of thy substance, and turn not away thy face from any poor
person: for so it shall come to pass that the face of the Lord shall not be
turned from thee” (Tobias 4:7).
“Let love be without pretense. Hate what is evil, hold to what is good.
Love one another with fraternal charity, anticipating one another with
honor. Be not slothful in zeal; be fervent in spirit, serving the Lord,
rejoicing in hope. Be patient in tribulation, persevering in prayer. Share the
needs of the saints, practicing hospitality. Bless those who persecute you;
bless and do not curse. Rejoice with those who rejoice; weep with those
who weep. Be of one mind towards one another. Do not set your mind on
high things but condescend to the lowly. Be not wise in your own conceits.
To no man render evil for evil but provide good things not only in the sight
of God, but also in the sight of all men. If it be possible, as far as in you
lies, be at peace with all men. Do not avenge yourselves, beloved, but give
place to the wrath, for it is written, ‘Vengeance is mine; I will repay, says
the Lord’ ” (Romans 12:9-19).
“Brethren, even if a person is caught doing something wrong, you who are
spiritual instruct such a one in a spirit of meekness, considering thyself,
lest thou also be tempted. Bear one another’s burdens, and so you will
fulfill the law of Christ” (Galatians 6:1-2).
“Religion pure and undefiled before God the Father is this: to give aid to
orphans and widows in their tribulation, and to keep oneself unspotted
from this world” (James 1:27).
“My brethren, if any one of you strays from the truth and someone brings
him back, he ought to know that he who causes a sinner to be brought back
from his misguided way, will save his soul from death, and will cover a
multitude of sins” (James 5:19-20).
“My dear children, let us not love in word, neither with the tongue, but in
deed and in truth” (I John 3:18).
See Scripture, question 124, I Corinthians 13:1-7; question 174, Matthew 25:34-40.
(a) Our Lord taught explicitly that one can earn the eternal reward of
heaven by performing the corporal works of mercy and that those who
deliberately refuse to perform such works will be barred from heaven.
(b) One can feed the hungry, give drink to the thirsty, clothe the naked,
and shelter the homeless not only by actually providing the necessities of
life but also by working to correct economic abuses which cause
unnecessary unemployment and poverty. Those who work to provide
comfortable and sanitary housing for the poor perform a corporal work of
mercy.
(c) One can visit the sick by paying a social call or by providing the
necessary medical care as far as means and circumstances permit. Those
who help support hospitals for the poor and home-nursing organizations
also perform this work of mercy. Doctors and nurses who attend the sick
can gain the reward promised by Our Lord if they perform their duties
for the love of God and not merely for money or for humanitarian
reasons.
(d) That Almighty God is pleased to reward those who bury the dead is
distinctly taught in the book of Tobias. To visit a house of mourning or to
attend a funeral is a mark of respect to the dead and a consolation to the
relatives of the deceased person.
(e) The Church has forbidden cremation not because it is wrong in itself
nor because it is contrary to divine law but because it is in opposition to
the Jewish and Christian tradition and has been advocated by anti-
Christians with the express purpose of destroying belief in the
immortality of the soul and the resurrection of the body. The Fathers of
the Church defended the custom of burial by reason of the doctrine of the
resurrection of the body and the respect due to it as the temple of the
Holy Ghost.
(f) During great pestilences when it is impossible to bury the dead in time
to prevent the spread of contagion, the Church permits mass cremation
because it is neither wrong in itself nor expressly forbidden by the divine
law.
(a) The spiritual works of mercy by their very nature excel the corporal
works. They refer directly to the soul of man and to his eternal welfare.
They are aids in healing the soul and in preserving it from spiritual
disease; they help to foster the true happiness of mankind and are the
most perfect fulfillment of the command to love our neighbor.
(b) We are obliged to admonish the sinner and to try to persuade him to
turn from evil and to practice virtue whenever prudence dictates. We are
not obliged to do so when, for example, we judge that our words will not
be heeded or that greater harm will follow. Persons in authority, for
example, parents and teachers, have a greater obligation than others in
this regard. Sinners may be admonished not only by kind words but also
by good example.
(e) To console those who are in sorrow because of the death or sickness
of loved ones or because of some other spiritual or temporal affliction is
an act of Christian charity.
(f) The true Christian imitates the example of Christ by bearing wrongs
patiently and by forgiving all injuries because of love of God. While
dying on the cross, Christ prayed to His heavenly Father to forgive His
executioners “for they do not know what they are doing” (Luke 23:34).
The true Christian loves all men, even those who reproach and persecute
him.
(g) The sublime doctrines of the Communion of Saints and the Mystical
Body of Christ should make us pray for all our brothers in Christ.
(a) The obligation to perform the works of mercy varies with one’s
vocation and condition of life and the degree of the neighbor’s need.
194. Are all the ordinary deeds done every day to relieve the corporal
or spiritual needs of others true works of mercy?
All the ordinary deeds done every day to relieve the corporal or
spiritual needs of others are true works of mercy, if done in the name
of Christ.
(a) We can make all the good works done for our neighbor supernatural
by doing them in the name of Christ and for the love of God.
SCRIPTURE:
“For whoever gives you a cup of water to drink in my name, because you
are Christ’s, amen I say to you, he shall not lose his reward” (Mark 9:40).
“Therefore, whether you eat or drink, or do anything else, do all for the
glory of God” (I Corinthians 10:31).
1. I am the Lord thy God; thou shalt not have strange gods before
Me.
2. Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy God in vain.
“I am the Lord thy God, who brought thee out of the land of Egypt, out of
the house of bondage.
“Thou shalt not make to thyself a graven thing, nor the likeness of
anything that is in heaven above, or in the earth beneath, nor of those
things that are in the waters under the earth.
“Thou shalt not adore them, nor serve them: I am the Lord thy God,
mighty, jealous, visiting the iniquity of the fathers upon the children, unto
the third and fourth generation of them that hate me:
“And showing mercy unto thousands to them that love me, and keep my
commandments.
“Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy God in vain: for the Lord
will not hold him guiltless that shall take the name of the Lord his God in
vain.
“Six days shalt thou labor, and shalt do all thy works.
“But on the seventh day is the sabbath of the Lord thy God: thou shalt do
no work on it, thou nor thy son, nor thy daughter, nor thy man-servant, nor
thy maid-servant, nor thy beast, nor the stranger that is within thy gates.
“For in six days the Lord made heaven and earth, and the sea, and all
things that are in them, and rested on the seventh day: therefore the Lord
blessed the seventh day, and sanctified it.
“Honor thy father and thy mother, that thou mayest be long-lived upon the
land which the Lord thy God will give thee.
“Thou shalt not covet thy neighbor’s house: neither shalt thou desire his
wife, nor his servant, nor his handmaid, nor his ox, nor his ass, nor
anything that is his” (Exodus 20:1-17).
“Do not think that I have come to destroy the Law or the Prophets. I have
not come to destroy, but to fulfill. For amen I say to you, till heaven and
earth pass away, not one jot or one tittle shall be lost from the Law till all
things have been accomplished. Therefore whoever does away with one of
these least commandments, and so teaches men, shall be called least in the
kingdom of heaven; but whoever carries them out and teaches them, he
shall be called great in the kingdom of heaven” (Matthew 5:17-19).
196. Should we be satisfied merely to keep the commandments of
God?
“And behold, a certain man came to him and said, ‘Good Master, what
good work shall I do to have eternal life?’ He said to him, ‘Why dost thou
ask me about what is good? One there is who is good, and he is God. But
if thou wilt enter into life, keep the commandments.’ He said to him,
‘Which?’ And Jesus said,
The young man said to him, ‘All these I have kept; what is yet wanting to
me?’ Jesus said to him, ‘If thou wilt be perfect, go, sell what thou hast, and
give to the poor, and thou shalt have treasure in heaven; and come, follow
me.’ But when the young man heard the saying, he went away sad, for he
had great possessions’ ” (Matthew 19:16-22).
197. What does Our Saviour especially recommend that is not strictly
commanded by the law of God?
(b) The Evangelical Counsels are the most perfect of the many counsels
recommended in the Gospel; they remove impediments to sanctity and
are positive helps to greater holiness. The observance of voluntary
poverty enables a person to overcome the inclinations of greed; the
observance of perpetual chastity helps in conquering the flesh; the
observance of perfect obedience demands the entire subjection of the
will.
(c) The obligations of the Evangelical Counsels are assumed by the vows
of the religious life, which is called the life of perfection. Those who
make these vows do not thereby become perfect but they assume the
obligation of tending toward perfection in a special way.
(d) Any Catholic may voluntarily seek admission to the religious life
who is free from legal impediments, has the right intention, and is fitted
to discharge the duties of the particular institute of his choice. Married
persons, and persons under fifteen years of age, as well as those whose
parents need their help, are prevented by legal impediments from
embracing the religious state. A person who wishes to please God, to
save his soul, or to help his neighbor has a right intention in seeking
admission to the religious state. The novitiate of the religious life is a
period during which a vocation is tested and superiors and subjects are
enabled to decide freely on the mutual obligations that are assumed by
public profession in the religious state. By profession, members of the
religious life publicly assume the obligations of their state through the
vows of poverty, chastity, and obedience. These obligations are assumed
for a definite period or for life.
(e) Persons who do not embrace the religious life can tend toward
perfection in their particular state by observing the spirit of the
Evangelical Counsels. The spirit of poverty will make them freely give
up many needless things in order to help the poor. Married persons will
strive to govern their lives by marital chastity, realizing that they can
place limitation of their family only through virtuous living. The spirit of
obedience will make them docile to legitimate superiors, in whom they
will see the representatives of God.
SCRIPTURE:
“And Peter said, ‘Behold, we have left all and followed thee.’ And he said
to them, ‘Amen I say to you, there is no one who has left house, or parents,
or brothers, or wife, or children, for the sake of the kingdom of God, who
shall not receive much more in the present time, and in the age to come life
everlasting’ ” (Luke 18:28-30).
Our reason tells us that certain things are good and obligatory, such as
worshiping God and obeying our parents, while other things are bad and
sinful, such as theft or murder. These obligations and prohibitions make
up the natural law. To know this we need no revelation; yet, because
human beings through ignorance and malice are apt to go astray even in
this law, God gave the Israelites the ten commandments, which explicitly
contain the chief obligations of the natural law, and implicitly contain all
the rest. Thus, the fourth commandment explicitly commands children to
honor their parents; yet it surely implies other obligations, such as love,
respect and obedience, as also the duties of parents toward their children.
God also laid down certain other laws for the people of Israel in addition
to the natural law, such as the prohibition to eat certain kinds of food
(Leviticus 11). These constitute what we call the positive law. It is
evident that God, Creator and Lord of all mankind, has a right to make
any laws He wills, and men have the obligation to obey them.
These counsels are the basis of the religious state. There are hundreds of
different orders and congregations, each doing its own particular work
for God’s glory, but all leading their members nearer to God by the
constant practice of Christian virtue. Some female religious teach, others
care for the sick and the aged and orphans, others devote themselves
entirely to prayer in the seclusion of their convents. Some male religious
are priests; others are brothers. And the Church is ever holding the
religious life before Catholic boys and girls as the most perfect way in
which one may serve God and our neighbor and the surest way of
winning the happiness of heaven.
Sometimes young folks feel a desire for the life of holiness which the
religious state offers, but they fear that they have no vocation to this
sublime state. It is possible that they entertain a false notion about a
vocation. They seem to imagine that those who are called to the religious
life receive a clear internal inspiration, inviting them to the monastery or
the convent. On this point they are entirely mistaken. The very fact that a
person has the requisite qualities of body and of soul to fulfill the duties
of the religious life and feels an inclination toward this form of life can
be regarded as an indication that he has a vocation and that he may
lawfully seek admission to an order or congregation. During the novitiate
he will have a sufficient opportunity to judge whether or not he is called
to the religious state.
Today there is great need of candidates for the religious life, especially of
those who will devote themselves to works of charity, such as the care of
the sick and the education of children. The spirit of the age, so eager for
material wealth and pleasures and honors, is indeed the very opposite of
the religious spirit of poverty and self-denial and humility. But the very
fact that there is so great a difference between the world and the cloister
reflects great credit and merit on those who enter the religious life.
Young folks who think that they may have a religious vocation should
pray fervently for divine guidance, read good books on the religious
state, and consult an experienced confessor.
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the following statements as either true or false. The
correct answer can be found in the preceding portions of this lesson.)
(1) The Catholic Church commands us to keep holy the Sabbath day.
(3) The corporal works of mercy are superior to the spiritual works.
(6) A person must be at least sixteen years old before he may enter the
novitiate of a religious order.
(7) Our Lord did away with the ceremonial laws of the Jewish people.
(9) All male religious are either priests or candidates for the priesthood.
(1) Before the arrival of the early Catholic missionaries, could the
Indians of our country have known anything about any of the ten
commandments? Explain your answer.
(2) Try to condense the entire Law of God into as few as five words.
(5) Daniel goes to St. Hope’s Hospital to have a chat with his classmate
Edward, who is very sick, and at the same time, very discouraged and
sad. At the end of his visit, Dan has Eddie in good humor and resigned to
God’s will. On the way out of the hospital, Dan drops into the hospital
chapel to recite five Our Fathers and five Hail Marys for his friend Eddie.
How many works of mercy has he performed? Specify them.
(6) Frances and Genevieve are good friends. Frances has great influence
over her friend. She knows that Genevieve has been reading immodest
publications and going with questionable companions. What spiritual
work of mercy should Frances perform in Genevieve’s regard?
(10) Sophie, now in the graduating class at St. Mamertus’, recently got
the idea she would like to become a nun. Up to the present time she has
been pretty lazy around the house, doing only those things she is
compelled to do. Her constitution is weak. When asked why she wants to
become a Sister she replies: “Because I like Sister Alphonsina, and I’m
just crazy about the habit she wears!” Do you think Sophie has a
vocation? What are the reasons for your answer?
(11) Myles, an altar boy and daily communicant, would like to become a
priest. He is in the eighth grade. Raymond, his chum, would like to join
an order of teaching brothers. Both have confided their ambitions to each
other, but to no one else. In six months they are to graduate. What should
they do promptly?
(12) Cite some words of Our Saviour Himself proving that more than
faith alone is necessary to work out our salvation.
The first commandment of God is: I am the Lord thy God; thou
shalt not have strange gods before Me.
(a) The first commandment forbids idolatry, that is, offering to a creature
the supreme worship due to God alone. Idolatry is sinful because God
alone has a right to supreme worship as the Creator and Preserver of all
things. The first commandment also forbids us to ascribe to a creature
any of the attributes that belong to God alone.
SCRIPTURE:
“Thou shalt not have strange gods before me. Thou shalt not make to
thyself a graven thing, nor the likeness of anything that is in heaven above,
or in the earth beneath, nor of those things that are in the waters under the
earth” (Exodus 20:3-4).
“And Jesus answered and said to him, ‘It is written, “The Lord thy God
shalt thou worship, and him only shalt thou serve” ’ ” (Luke 4:8).
“For from him and through him and unto him are all things. To him be the
glory forever, amen” (Romans 11:36).
(b) We worship God by an act of hope when we firmly trust that God
who is all-powerful and faithful to His promises, will in His mercy give
us eternal happiness and the means to obtain it.
(c) We worship God by an act of charity when we love God above all
things for His own sake and our neighbor as ourselves for the love of
God.
(f) Acts of faith, hope, charity, adoration, and prayer may be internal or
external. They are internal when they are only in our mind or heart; they
are external when they are manifested outwardly by signs or words.
Faith obliges us: first, to make efforts to find out what God has
revealed; second, to believe firmly what God has revealed; third, to
profess our faith openly whenever necessary.
(a) God, whose power and knowledge are infinite, can reveal
supernatural truths to man. Every man who knows or suspects that he
does not profess the religion revealed by God is under the obligation of
seeking it and, when he has found it, of embracing it.
(b) Whoever has attained the use of reason must make an interior act of
faith: first, when he comes to the knowledge of divine revelation or
becomes certain of a dogma of the Church; second, when he, having
rejected the errors of infidelity or heresy, recognizes the obligation of
believing the Catholic religion; third, when an act of faith is necessary to
resist temptations against faith, or another virtue; fourth, often during life.
(c) A Catholic is bound to profess his faith openly: first, whenever the
honor due to God requires it; for example, when his failure to profess his
faith openly would be equivalent to a denial of faith; second, when the
good of his neighbor requires it.
SCRIPTURE:
“For whoever is ashamed of me and my words, of him will the Son of Man
be ashamed when he comes in his glory and that of the Father and of the
holy angels” (Luke 9:26).
“He who believes in the Son has everlasting life; he who is unbelieving
towards the Son shall not see life, but the wrath of God rests upon him”
(John 3:36).
“This is ‘The stone that was rejected by you, the builders, which has
become the cornerstone.’ Neither is there salvation in any other. For there
is no other name under heaven given to men by which we must be saved”
(Acts 4:11-12).
“For with the heart a man believes unto justice, and with the mouth
profession of faith is made unto salvation” (Romans 10:10).
“For we in the Spirit wait for the hope of justice in virtue of faith. For in
Christ Jesus neither circumcision is of any avail, nor uncircumcision, but
faith which works through charity” (Galatians 5:5-6).
“For by grace you have been saved through faith; and that not from
yourselves, for it is the gift of God” (Ephesians 2:8).
Hope obliges us to trust firmly that God will give us eternal life and
the means to obtain it.
SCRIPTURE:
“Paul, a servant of God and apostle of Jesus Christ, in accordance with the
faith of God’s elect and the full knowledge of the truth which is according
to piety, in the hope of life everlasting which God, who does not lie,
promised before the ages began–” (Titus 1:1-2).
(a) An act of charity must be made: first, when a person comes to the
realization of the duty of loving God above all things and his neighbor as
himself for the love of God; second, when temptation can be overcome
only by an act of charity; third, at the hour of death; fourth, often during
life.
(c) Indifferentism is the error of those who hold that one religion is as
good as another and that all religions are equally true and pleasing to
God, or that one is free to accept or reject any or all religions.
(d) Those take part in the worship of non-Catholics who join in their
religious services. Attendance at non-Catholic religious services,
provided no part is taken in such worship, is allowed for a sufficiently
grave reason, for example, presence at a non-Catholic funeral or a
marriage ceremony for social reasons.
(e) Infidelity is also a sin against faith. It is the unbelief of those to whom
the truths of faith have been sufficiently proposed but who nevertheless
deliberately refuse to accept them.
SCRIPTURE:
Heresy: “I know that after my departure fierce wolves will get in among
you and will not spare the flock. And from among your own selves men
will rise speaking perverse things, to draw away the disciples after them”
(Acts 20:29-30).
Infidelity: See Scripture, question 107, John 3:5, question 158, Mark
16:15-16.
206. Why does a Catholic sin against faith by taking part in non-
Catholic worship?
“Jesus said to him, ‘I am the way, and the truth, and the life’ ” (John 14:6).
“Pilate therefore said to him, ‘Thou art then a king?’ Jesus answered,
‘Thou sayest it; I am a king. This is why I was born, and why I have come
into the world, to bear witness to the truth. Everyone who is of the truth
hears my voice’ ” (John 18:37).
“For he is not approved who commends himself, but he whom the Lord
commends” (II Corinthians 10:18).
“Then Judas, who betrayed him, when he saw that he was condemned,
repented and brought back the thirty pieces of silver to the chief priests
and the elders, saying, ‘I have sinned in betraying innocent blood . . .’ And
he hung the pieces of silver into the temple, and withdrew; and went away
and hanged himself with a halter” (Matthew 27:3-5).
“My dear children, these things I write to you in order that you may not
sin. But if anyone sins, we have an advocate with the Father, Jesus Christ
the just; and he is a propitiation for our sins, not for ours only but also for
those of the Whole world” (I John 2:1-2).
“May no temptation take hold of you but such as man is equal to. God is
faithful and will not permit you to be tempted beyond your strength, but
with the temptation will also give you a way out that you may be able to
bear it” (I Corinthians 10:13).
The chief sins against charity are hatred of God and of our neighbor,
envy, sloth, and scandal.
(a) When a person hates another, he wishes him evil or rejoices in his
misfortune.
(b) One who hates God wishes evil to befall Him, if that were possible,
or wishes grievous sins to be committed, or rejoices in sin as an insult to
God. Hatred of God is the most grievous offense against Him and is
always a mortal sin.
(c) A person who hates his neighbor wishes him harm or rejoices when
evil befalls him. To wish a neighbor serious harm is a mortal sin; for
example, to wish another’s damnation. To wish a neighbor a slight evil or
to hold a slight aversion for him is a venial sin. It is not a sin to wish
some temporal misfortune to overtake another in order that he may be
converted or cease to do harm. Nor is it sinful to wish another’s death,
under the condition that it be in accord with God’s will; for example, to
wish a person’s death so that he will be relieved of great suffering, or
because he is a menace to society or is likely to inflict grave harm on an
innocent person, or because he deserves death by reason of crime.
(e) Sloth is distaste for spiritual things because their attainment requires
much labor. 16
16 (See question 74 (g).)
(f) Scandal is any word, act, or omission that is in itself evil or has the
appearance of evil and which can be the occasion of another’s sin.
Scandal may be given even though no sin follows. A person who has
already determined to sin or a person who cannot be led into sin cannot
be scandalized. Scandal is direct when a word, act, or omission is
intended to lead another to sin. Scandal is indirect when it is foreseen that
one’s word, act, or omission is likely to be the occasion of another’s sin,
even though such is not intended.
SCRIPTURE:
Sloth: “But we want every one of you to show to the very end the same
earnestness for the fulfillment of your hopes; so that you may become
sluggish but imitators of those who by faith and patience will inherit the
promises” (Hebrews 6:11-12).
“Be not slothful in zeal; be fervent in spirit, serving the Lord” (Romans
12:11).
Scandal: “Woe to the world because of scandals! For it must needs be that
scandals come, but woe to the man through whom scandal does come!”
(Matthew 18:7).
211. Besides the sins against faith, hope, and charity, what other sins
does the first commandment forbid?
Besides the sins against faith, hope, and charity, the first
commandment forbids also superstition and sacrilege.
(a) Superstition is by its nature a mortal sin, but it may be venial either
when the matter is slight or when there is a lack of full consent to the act.
Often this sin is not mortal when there is question of certain popular
superstitions, for example, belief in unlucky days and numbers, or when
superstitious acts are performed as a joke without any serious thought of
attributing divine powers to a creature, or when these acts are performed
for amusement.
SCRIPTURE:
(b) Sacrilege, of its nature, is a grievous sin, but it may be venial either
because the matter is slight or because there is lack of full consent to the
act.
SCRIPTURE:
“They have set thy sanctuary ablaze, they have profaned the dwelling of
thy name on the earth. They said in their heart: ‘Let us destroy them all
together; burn ye all God’s sanctuaries in the land’ ” (Psalm 73:7-8).
Sins against the first commandment are very common nowadays. Besides
the great multitude of persons who deliberately reject belief in God and
Christ, there are many who will not accept the Catholic religion, even
though they see the force of the arguments the Catholic Church presents
to show that it is the true Church of Jesus Christ, the Son of God. Many
of these persons are moved by the thought of the difficulties and the
sacrifices that are connected with the Catholic religion, such as the
stricter observance of the moral code, confession, and the laws of fast
and abstinence. These persons often try to justify themselves with the
statement that one religion is as good as another; but this is ridiculous,
because there can be only one true religion, and surely false religions
cannot be as good as that which is true.
The most important truths of revelation, which every one should know
explicitly as a means of salvation, are these four: (1) God exists; (2) God
rewards the good and punishes the wicked; (3) God is one in nature and
three in Persons; (4) The second Person of the Holy Trinity became man
and died for our salvation, rose from the dead and ascended into heaven,
whence He shall come to judge the living and the dead.
Catholics should be on their guard against the sin of sacrilege, such as the
lack of proper reverence in church, jokes concerning the Bible or other
sacred things, disrespectful use of holy water or blessed medals, etc.
Generally such sins are only venial; but a person is guilty of the mortal
sin of sacrilege when there is a question of the unworthy reception of a
sacrament. By far the worst example of this kind is the unworthy
reception of the Holy Eucharist.
STUDY HELPS
A. COLUMN SELECTION. (Join correctly the parts of the sentences in Columns I and II, by
placing the right key letter in the proper parentheses):
Column I
(2) Heresy is ( . . ).
(3) Infidelity is ( . . ).
Column II
(F) the unbelief of one to whom the faith has been sufficiently proposed.
(G) because the true God alone has the right to supreme worship.
(1) Titus, a fallen-away Catholic, is urged by his wife Lulu to make the
parish mission. He angrily replies: “I don’t need the mission! I’m okay as
I am. I don’t harm or injure anyone, I’m a sober and honest man, and I
mind my own business! Let me alone!” What important obligations are
being neglected by Titus? In what commandments are they contained?
(3) Joseph’s night prayer is generally very short. Tired out from the work
and the play of each day, he kneels alongside his bed, blesses himself,
says one Our Father and one Hail Mary, then goes to bed. What
recommendation would you make to him that will becomingly lengthen
his night prayer and help him more perfectly fulfill the duty placed on
him by the first commandment?
(4) Benjamin, a Jewish boy, Aquinas, a Catholic boy, and Adrian, a
protestant boy are sitting around their campfire discussing religion.
Benjamin goes to his synagogue four or five times a year; Aquinas never
misses Mass of obligation; Adrian’s attendance at Sunday service is
about 50%. “After all, we all worship the same God,” says Bennie, “so it
doesn’t make much difference to what church we belong!” “That’s what I
think, too!” chimes in Adrian. Should Aquinas be “liberal” and agree
with his two companions? Why not?
(5) Eduarda, Diana, and Maude sing in the choir at High Mass. Before
Mass they talk pretty freely among themselves about worldly matters;
sometimes they disturb the priest while he is reading the Gospel, making
the announcements, or preaching his sermon. Occasionally they annoy
members of the congregation by their silly antics. Lately the organist
reprimanded Maude for reading the Sunday comics during the sermon.
Express your opinion about these improprieties.
(6) Brendan, fourteen years old, spending the summer at a camp with his
brother Tommy, aged ten, misses Mass on Sunday through laziness,
realizing at the same time that because of his bad example, Tommy will
also miss Mass. How many and what sins has Brendan committed?
(7) Ronald, a good friend of yours, but an indifferentist all his life, has
only five minutes to live. No priest is available. He asks you to make a
Catholic out of him before he dies. Tell us what instruction you will give
him before you baptize him, and what prayer, or prayers, you will say
with him, after your hurried instruction is completed.
(8) Jonathan thinks that if a person reads the “Sunday Visitor” or the
diocesan paper regularly such a person will be a well-instructed practical
Catholic. His sister Hannah claims that it is better to listen in regularly to
the Catholic programs over the radio, especially the Catholic Hour on
Sunday evenings. In a paragraph of from 100 to 125 words tell us what
you think of both opinions, and add your own.
(9) Bertram, a Catholic, is visiting New York City for the first time. On a
sightseeing trip he goes to the Episcopalian Cathedral of St. John the
Divine. Although a service is going on, he moves about quietly, looking
at the various objects of interest. Has he committed a sin against faith?
Explain your answer.
(a) A saint, in the strict sense of the word, is a person who is declared
officially by the Church to be in heaven and who may be publicly
venerated.
(b) The veneration paid to the saints in heaven differs essentially from
the adoration of God. The saints are creatures and are not to be given the
supreme worship due to the Creator alone. The supreme honor given to
God only is adoration in the full and strict sense of the word. The
veneration given to the Blessed Mother and to the saints is an act of
respect and honor of an entirely different nature. The veneration given to
the Blessed Mother of God surpasses that given to the saints and angels.
SCRIPTURE:
“Behold I will send my angel. . .Take notice of him and hear his voice, and
do not think him one to be contemned” (Exodus 23:20-21).
“And he answered: No: but I am prince of the host of the Lord, and now I
am come. Josue fell on his face to the ground. And worshipping, said:
What saith my Lord to his servant?” (Josue 5:14-15).
“Let us now praise men of renown, and our fathers in their generation”
(Ecclesiasticus 44:1).
“Then Jesus said to him, ‘Begone, Satan! for it is written, “The Lord thy
God shalt thou worship and him only shalt thou serve” ’ ” (Matthew 4:10).
“For, behold, henceforth all generations shall call me blessed” (Luke 1:48).
215. Why do we honor the saints in heaven?
We can honor the saints: first, by imitating their holy lives; second, by
praying to them; third, by showing respect to their relics and images.
SCRIPTURE:
“And Eliseus died, and they buried him. And the rovers from Moab came
into the land the same year. And some that were burying a man, saw the
rovers, and cast the body into the sepulchre of Eliseus. And when it had
touched the bones of Eliseus, the man came to life, and stood upon his
feet” (4 Kings 13:20-21).
“Go to my servant Job….And my servant Job shall pray for you. His face I
will accept” (Job 42:8).
“And God worked more than the usual miracles by the hand of Paul; so
that even handkerchiefs and aprons were carried from his body to the sick,
and the diseases left them and the evil spirits went out” (Acts 19:11-12).
“Brethren, be imitators of me, and mark those who walk after the pattern
you have in us” (Philippians 3:17).
When we pray to the saints we ask them to offer their prayers to God
for us.
218. How do we know that the saints will pray for us?
We know that the saints will pray for us because they are with God
and have great love for us.
(a) The honor given to a relic does not stop at the sacred object itself but
is directed to the person whose relic is venerated.
220. When does the first commandment forbid the making or the use
of statues and pictures?
The first commandment forbids the making or the use of statues and
pictures only when they promote false worship.
SCRIPTURE:
“Thou shalt not make to thyself a graven thing, nor the likeness of
anything that is in heaven above, or in the earth beneath, nor of those
things that are in the waters under the earth. Thou shalt not adore them, nor
serve them” (Exodus 20:4-5).
“Keep therefore your souls carefully. You saw not any similitude in the
day that the Lord God spoke to you in Horeb from the midst of the fire:
lest perhaps being deceived you might make you a graven similitude, or
image of male or female, the similitude of any beasts, that are upon the
earth, or of birds, that fly under heaven, or of creeping things, ‘that move
on the earth, or of fishes, that abide in the waters under the earth: lest
perhaps lifting up thy eyes to heaven, thou see the sun and the moon, and
all the stars of heaven, and being deceived by error thou adore and serve
them, which the Lord thy God created for the service of all the nations,
that are under heaven” (Deuteronomy 4:l5-19).
221. Is it right to show respect to the statues and pictures of Christ and
of the saints?
222. Do we honor Christ and the saints when we pray before the
crucifix, relics, and sacred images?
We honor Christ and the saints when we pray before the crucifix,
relics, and sacred images because we honor the persons they
represent; we adore Christ and venerate the saints.
(a) In venerating relics, statues, and pictures of Our Lord and the saints
we must not believe that any divine power resides in them, nor should we
put our trust in them as though they had the power of to bestow favors.
We place our trust in God and the intercessory power of the saints.
In the liturgy of the Catholic Church seven general classes of saints are
distinguished-apostles, martyrs, popes, confessors who were bishops,
confessors who were not bishops, virgins, and women who were not
virgins. Thus, everyone can find saints whose state in life was like his
own. It should be noted here that when we speak of a saint as a confessor
we mean, not that he heard confessions, but that he openly confessed
himself a follower of Christ.
Naturally we cherish and venerate the images of the saints and their
relics, just as the citizens of a nation respect and honor the images of the
country’s heroes and the articles they used in life. Catholics know full
well that pictures and relics are only material things, incapable of helping
us in our needs; but we find in them a means of inspiring us with pious
affections, of reminding us of the saints, and of helping us to pray more
devoutly. That is why every truly Catholic home bears holy pictures on
the walls or sacred images among the furnishings. Only lukewarm,
cowardly Catholics are afraid to have such representations in their homes
out of fear lest their non-Catholic friends may laugh at them.
Of all holy images, the most sacred is the representation of Christ’s death
on the cross, the crucifix. This should find a place in every Catholic
home, especially in every bedroom, so that the occupants may say their
morning and night prayers before this reminder of God’s great love for
us. The most venerated relic of the Church is the Cross on which our
Saviour died. The largest portion of this is kept in the Church of the Holy
Cross in Rome, and small pieces are distributed to different churches
throughout the world. Frequently a bishop carries a relic of the true Cross
in the pectoral cross which he wears on his breast.
The Church does not permit the public veneration of a relic unless it is
properly encased and sealed and its authenticity supported by a
document, signed by a bishop or other ecclesiastical dignitary. This does
not mean necessarily that it is absolutely certain that the relic is genuine;
but it means that reasonable care has been taken to establish the fact that
the relic is a true one.
There are three classes of relics-first-class relics, which are the bodies or
portions of the bodies of the saints; second-class relics, which are articles
used by a saint, such as his clothing or books; third-class relics, which
are articles that have touched a first or second-class relic, such as the
coffin in which the saint was buried.
We honor the saints best by imitating their virtues. Every Catholic should
be familiar with the lives of some of the saints, and especially of the
saints whose names were given him or her in Baptism. Sometimes,
indeed the saints performed extraordinary deeds, or actions which were
not in accord with ordinary prudence. In these things we must not try to
imitate them, for on those occasions they were especially inspired by
God. But we can all imitate the spirit that animated the saints, especially
their love for God and for their fellow-men. They were human beings
like ourselves, subject to temptation; some of them had sinned gravely
before they became saints. We are all called to be saints; for to all of us
Our Lord said: “You therefore are to be perfect, even as your heavenly
Father is perfect” (Matt. 5:48).
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTION. (Select the word or phrase which most exactly and most completely
fills out the sentence.)
(1) The honor we give to a relic is directed toward (the relic itself . . .
God . . . the person whose relic it is).
(2) A saint in the strict sense of the word is (anyone in sanctifying grace .
. .one who has been canonized . . . one who has been beatified).
(3) When we pray to the saints we ask them (to offer their prayers to God
for us . . . to enlighten our minds . . . to confer grace on us).
(4) We give Jesus Christ (the honor due to a great man . . . the honor due
to a great saint . . . the honor due to God).
(5) All Catholics should have a special devotion to (St. Theresa of the
Child Jesus . . . the Blessed Virgin Mary . . . St. Joseph).
(6) The most sacred of all images is (the crucifix . . . the statue of the
Blessed Virgin . . . the statue of the Sacred Heart).
(7) The largest portion of the true cross is kept in (St. Peter’s church in
Rome . . . the church of the Holy Cross in Rome . . . Jerusalem).
(8) A person who has sinned gravely (can never be a canonized saint . . .
can be beatified but not canonized . . . can become a canonized saint).
(9) When a relic has a document in support of its authenticity (we can be
absolutely sure that the relic is genuine . . . we know that reasonable care
has been taken to establish the fact that it is genuine . . . the document
proves nothing).
(10) When we call St. Gerard Majella a confessor we mean that (he heard
confessions . . . he frequently went to confession . . . he openly confessed
himself a follower of Christ).
(4) Now from the foregoing list select three only, naming them in the
order of your preference, together with a short reason why you rank them
first, second, and third. If your favorite saint is not listed, you may supply
that saint’s name.
(5) Ambrose wants to know how to honor his patron saint. Can you tell
him ways in which he can honor his great patron? How can he secure
information about Saint Ambrose?
(6) St. Rose of Lima did some rather extraordinary things, such as cutting
off her beautiful hair, observing an extremely rigorous Lenten fast,
torturing her innocent flesh with sharp instruments of penance. Rose, a
schoolgirl of 11, would like to know if she should do the things her
illustrious patron did. What answer are you going to give her?
(7) Eric inquires whether or not the prayers he offers to St. Ann
eventually reach God. What is your reply to Eric? Explain it.
(8) Anna has a tiny bone relic of the Little Flower of Jesus; Winifred has
a piece of her Carmelite habit; Vivian, a small square of linen that was
touched to one of the Saint’s prayerbooks. Classify each relic.
(9) Jeremiah’s family are moving into a new house. They leave behind
them many old and worn out things, among them a picture of the Holy
Family. They take with them the frame, but the picture itself is thrown in
with the rubbish. Write three or four sentences to Jerry telling him what
you think about the treatment of the discarded picture, and what you
would have done under the same circumstances.
(10) On your own person do you habitually carry any religious image?
Give at least two reasons why you think it is a good practice.
(13) What relic is generally found in the bishop’s pectoral cross? Where
is the largest portion of this relic kept at the present time?
– LESSON 18 –
The Second and Third Commandments of God
The second commandment of God is: Thou shalt not take the name
of the Lord thy God in vain.
SCRIPTURE:
“Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy God in vain: for the Lord
will not hold him guiltless that shall take the name of the Lord his God in
vain” (Exodus 20:7).
(a) When we honor a name; we actually honor the person or thing related
to the name.
“Blessed be the name of the Lord both now and forever. From the rising of
the sun unto its going down, may the name of the Lord be praised” (Psalm
112:2-3).
“Thou shalt fear the Lord thy God, and shalt serve him only: and thou shalt
swear by his name” (Deuteronomy 6:13).
“For men swear by one greater than themselves, and an oath given as a
guarantee is the final settlement of all their disagreement” (Hebrews 6:16).
(b) The binding force of an oath arises from the virtues of veracity and
religion. The obligation to fulfill a promise made under oath is grave or
light, depending on the gravity of that which is promised.
(e) An oath to observe civil constitutions does not oblige us to obey laws
which are opposed to divine or ecclesiastical right. We are not permitted
to swear unconditional obedience to a constitution containing laws
against justice or the divine law. One cannot, for example, swear to
observe a civil constitution which prohibits the teaching of the religion of
Christ.
SCRIPTURE:
“By my own self have I sworn, saith the Lord: Because thou hast done this
thing, and hast not spared thy only begotten son for my sake” (Genesis
22:16).
“And thou shalt swear: As the Lord liveth, in truth and in judgment and in
justice” (Jeremias 4:2).
228. What great sin does a person commit who deliberately calls on
God to bear witness to a lie?
“The person that sweareth, and uttereth with his lips, that he would do
either evil or good, and bindeth the same with an oath, and his word: and
having forgotten it afterwards understandeth his offence, Let him do
penance for his sin” (Leviticus 5:4-5).
“Thou shalt not swear falsely by my name, nor profane the name of thy
God” (Leviticus 19:12).
“Neither shalt thou bear false witness against thy neighbor” (Deuteronomy
5:20).
(a) In making a vow, a person must act with freedom, knowledge, and
deliberation, and with the intention of binding himself under pain of sin.
What is promised by the vow must be possible, morally good, and better
than its contrary. We make vows to God alone, but we may make them to
God in honor of the saints in order to have greater assurance of obtaining
the favor which we seek. A vow, therefore, is an act of divine worship by
which we acknowledge God’s supreme dominion. Any act that pertains
to a vow is an act of divine worship.
(b) Vows may be public or private. A public vow is one made before a
legitimate ecclesiastical superior and accepted in the name of the Church.
(d) The obligation of a vow depends upon the gravity of the object of the
vow and the intention of the person making it.
SCRIPTURE:
“When thou hast made a vow to the Lord thy God, thou shalt not delay to
pay it: because the Lord thy God will require it. And if thou delay, it shall
be imputed to thee for a sin” (Deuteronomy 23:21).
“If thou hast vowed anything to God, defer not to pay it. For an unfaithful
and foolish promise displeaseth him: but whatsoever thou hast vowed, pay
it. And it is much better not to vow than after a vow not to perform the
things promised” (Ecclesiastes 5:3-4).
See Scripture, question 224, Exodus 20:7.
By taking God’s name in vain is meant that the name of God or the
holy name of Jesus Christ is used without reverence: for example, to
express surprise or anger.
SCRIPTURE:
“Bless the Lord, O my soul, and let all that is within me bless his holy
name” (Psalm 102:1).
“And let not the naming of God be usual in thy mouth, and meddle not
with the names of saints: for thou shalt not escape free from them”
(Ecclesiasticus 23:10).
(a) To take God’s name in vain is a mortal sin when it is done out of
deliberate contempt for God, or when serious scandal may be given.
“He that curseth his father, or mother, shall die the death” (Exodus 21:17).
“And he loved cursing: may it come upon him; he would not have
blessings: be it far from him. And may he be clothed with cursing as with a
garment. (Psalm 108:17-18).
“Bless those who persecute you; bless and do not curse” (Romans 12:14).
“Out of the same mouth proceed blessing and cursing. These things, my
brethren, ought not to be so” (James 3:10).
(a) Blasphemy is a grievous sin. It can become venial only through lack
of reflection or consent.
“And thou shalt speak to the children of Israel: The man that curseth his
God, shall bear his sin: And he that blasphemeth the name of the Lord,
dying let him die. All the multitude shall stone him, whether he be a native
or a stranger. He that blasphemeth the name of the Lord, dying let him die”
(Leviticus 24:15-16).
“ ‘Amen I say to you, that all sins shall be forgiven to the sons of men, and
the blasphemies wherewith they may blaspheme; but whoever blasphemes
against the Holy Spirit never has forgiveness, but will be guilty of an
everlasting sin.’ For they said, ‘He has an unclean spirit’ ” (Mark 3:28-30).
The third commandment of God is: Remember thou keep holy the
Lord’s day.
(a) The obligation to worship God is imposed on all men by the natural
law. Man is obliged to adore and to thank God for His continuous
blessings. Since the nature of man makes it impossible for him actually
to express his adoration and his thanks continuously, reason dictates that
certain times be specified for this purpose. God defined more exactly
how man is to fulfill this obligation by His divine precept given in the
Old Testament.
SCRIPTURE:
“And on the seventh day God ended his work which he had made: and he
rested on the seventh day from all his work which he had done. And he
blessed the seventh day, and sanctified it: because in it he had rested from
all his work which God created and made” (Genesis 2:2-3).
“Remember that thou keep holy the sabbath day. Six days shalt thou labor,
and shalt do all thy works. But on the seventh day is the sabbath of the
Lord thy God: thou shalt do no work on it, thou nor thy son, nor thy
daughter, nor thy man-servant, nor thy maid-servant, nor thy beast, nor the
stranger that is within thy gates. For in six days the Lord made heaven and
earth, and the sea, and all things that are in them, and rested on the seventh
day: therefore the Lord blessed the seventh day, and sanctified it” (Exodus
20:8-11).
“Observe the day of the sabbath, to sanctify it, as the Lord thy God hath
commanded thee. Six days shalt thou labor, and shalt do all thy works. The
seventh is the day of the sabbath, that is, the rest of the Lord thy God”
(Deuteronomy 5:12-14).
235. Why does the Church command us to keep Sunday as the Lord’s
day?
(a) The early Church changed the day of worship from Saturday to
Sunday on the authority given to it by Christ. The New Testament makes
no explicit mention that the apostles changed the day of worship, but we
know it from Tradition.
“Keep you my sabbath: for it is holy unto you. He that shall profane it,
shall be put to death: he that shall do any work in it, his soul shall perish
out of the midst of his people. Six days shall you do work: in the seventh
day is the sabbath, the rest holy to the Lord” (Exodus 31:14-15).
237. How does the Church command us to worship God on Sunday?
(a) Catholics who have reached the age of seven years and have
sufficient use of reason are bound under pain of mortal sin to hear Mass
on Sunday.
(c) A person should be present for the entire Mass, from the beginning to
the last Gospel. It is a venial sin to miss even a slight part of a Mass of
obligation deliberately and a mortal sin to miss a notable part. The
obligation to assist at Mass is not fulfilled if the Consecration or the
Communion is missed. The obligation can be fulfilled by hearing parts of
two or more Masses in succession, provided one is present for both the
Consecration and the Communion of the same Mass.
(d) To fulfill the obligation to assist at Mass a person must have at least
an implicit intention of hearing Mass and must advert, at least in a vague
way, to the celebration of the Mass. It would be a mortal sin if he paid no
attention at all to the principal parts of the Mass at which he assisted on
Sunday. A person is obliged under pain of venial sin to avoid deliberate
distractions during Mass and to take ordinary care to assist attentively
and in a becoming manner.
(e) The Mass offers us an opportunity to gain great spiritual benefits, and
the more frequently and more devoutly we hear Mass, the more grace we
can obtain. Ordinarily the best way to hear Mass is to unite with the
priest and follow him in reciting the prayers of the Mass.
Servile work is allowed on Sunday when the honor of God, our own
need, or that of our neighbor requires it.
It is indeed sad to realize that many persons use one of God’s greatest
gifts, the gift of speech, to insult God Himself. Nowadays, the use of the
name of God and of the holy name of Jesus as an interjection to mark any
form of feeling or emotion has become common. Even children, barely
able to speak, are thus using God’s name in vain–often because they have
heard it from their parents. Cursing and even blasphemy are also
frequent. In the courtroom perjury is something often committed with
little or no qualm of conscience. Truly, the world today has forgotten the
commandment: “Thou shalt not take the name of the Lord thy God in
vain”.
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the following statements as either true or false. The
correct answers can be found in the preceding portions of this lesson.)
(6) The change of the Sabbath day to Sunday was explicitly commanded
by Christ.
(7) A child who has reached the age of reason but is not yet seven years
old is strictly not obliged to attend Mass on Sunday.
(9) A person can fulfill his obligation of Sunday Mass if he sees the Mass
by television from a distance.
(1) When our gift of speech treats of things divine, what commandment
governs its use?
(3) Which vows are most commonly made by Catholics? Explain them.
(5) Julian has been, for many years, an extremely profane fellow. He
wants to know if the Holy Name Society will be satisfied if he reveres
the Holy Name, or must he also give up his profanity. Answer him.
(6) What practice is recommended to you when you use the Holy Name,
or hear others use It?
(7) In certain Catholic countries many boys receive in Baptism the name
of Jesus. Does this lesson suggest to you a reason why it is not customary
in the United States to confer this Holy Name in Baptism?
(8) Urban, a boy with a fiery disposition, frequently takes the Holy Name
irreverently. What resolution would you suggest he take, and what
penance should he impose on himself every time he slips?
(9) Father Elias, giving a children’s mission, suggests to them that if they
offend God by irreverent and profane speech they should make the sign
of the cross over their lips, and say an ejaculation. Would you agree that
this is a good practice? Why?
(11) Letitia, a schoolgirl, spends over an hour every Sunday reading the
newspaper and the funnies. The diocesan paper comes to her home every
week, but she seldom glances at it. Her sister, Antoinette, spends almost
as much time on the Sunday papers, but she also reads regularly the
youth section of the “Sunday Visitor” and the “Sacred Heart Messenger.”
In a paragraph of four or five short sentences tell us why you consider
Antoinette’s practice more commendable.
– LESSON 19 –
The Fourth, Fifth, and Sixth Commandments of
God
The fourth commandment of God is: Honor thy father and thy
mother.
(a) This commandment deals explicitly with the duties of children toward
their parents, implicitly with the obligation of parents toward their
children. Parents should make themselves worthy of the honor which this
commandment imposes.
(b) All true authority of superiors comes from God. Subjects must
therefore respect their legitimate superiors and obey their just commands.
Superiors in turn must exercise their authority in full conformity with the
laws of nature and of God.
SCRIPTURE:
“Honor thy father and thy mother, that thou mayest be long-lived upon the
land which the Lord thy God will give thee” (Exodus 20:12).
(a) Children respect their parents when they pay them due reverence,
speak and act with proper deference, accept their corrections readily, seek
their advice regarding important decisions, and bear with charity their
parents’ faults.
(b) Children love their parents when they wish them well, show them a
spirit of gratitude, try to please and help them, and pray for them.
(c) Children should obey the lawful commands of their parents as long as
they live under parental authority. Parents must not command their
children to sin. Children must obey the laws of God rather than the
commands of men–even of their parents, when such commands are
against the law of God.
(d) Children should ordinarily consult their parents about the choice of a
state of life, but they are not strictly obliged to follow their advice.
(e) Parents must not command a son or a daughter to marry. One may
exercise one’s natural right to live singly if one so desires; moreover, the
state of virginity or celibacy, embraced for the love of God, is higher than
the married state. Parents must not command their children to marry a
certain person. Ordinarily children should consult their parents before
definitely deciding to marry. They are not always obliged to follow their
parents’ advice.
(f) Children are obliged to aid their parents in bodily or spiritual need,
when they can do so. Children must provide for parents who are not able
to support themselves.
The Holy Family (picture)
At the top, the Child Jesus is helping the Blessed Virgin Mary in her
housework and St. Joseph in his craft.
At the bottom left, in the presence of the angel Raphael, the young Tobias
is restoring the sight of his father by anointing his eyes with the fish gall
that he brought back from his journey.
On the right, Our Savior is assisting St. Joseph, his foster-father, in his
last moments, pressing him affectionately against His Sacred Heart.
Our Lord and the Centurion (picture)
This picture offers two touching examples of the duties of masters
towards their servants. The first is that of the centurion of the Gospel:
“Now when He had entered Capharnaum, there came to Him a centurion
who entreated Him, saying, ‘Lord, my servant is lying sick in the house,
paralyzed, and is grievously afflicted.’ Jesus said to him, ‘I will come and
cure him.’ But in answer the centurion said, ‘Lord, I am not worthy that
thou shouldst come under my roof; but only say the word, and my
servant shall be healed. For I too am a man subject to authority, and have
soldiers subject to me; and I say to one, ‘Go,’ and he goes; and to
another, ‘Come,’ and he comes; and to my servant, ‘Do this,’ and he does
it.’ And when Jesus heard this, He marveled, and said to those who were
following Him, ‘Amen I say to you, I have not found such great faith in
Israel. And I tell you that many will come from the east and from the
west, and will feast with Abraham and Isaac and Jacob in the kingdom of
heaven, but the children of the kingdom will be put forth into the
darkness outside; there will be the weeping, and the gnashing of teeth.’
Then Jesus said to the centurion, ‘Go thy way; as thou hast believed, so
be it done to thee.’ And the servant was healed in that hour.” (Matthew
8:5-13)
At the top, this centurion is shown on his knees at the feet of Jesus, who
is surrounded by His apostles. Two servants who accompanied him stand
respectfully behind their master.
The second example, shown at the bottom left, is that of St. Elzear, count
of Sabran, in Provence. Having drawn up a rule of life for his servants,
St. Elzear has it displayed in one of the most beautiful rooms of his
palace, and gathers his servants there to explain it to them. Here are the
chief provisions:
5. To avoid idleness.
We are obliged: (1) to respect our superiors, (2) to serve them with
fidelity, (3) to obey them in all that is not contrary to the law of God. We
must regard our superiors as the representatives of God and obey them as
God Himself.
“He that honoreth his mother is as one that layeth up a treasure. He that
honoreth his father shall have joy in his own children: and in the day of his
prayer he shall be heard. He that honoreth his father shall enjoy a long life:
and he that obeyeth the father shall be comfort to his mother. He that
feareth the Lord honoreth his parents and will serve them as his masters
that brought him into the world. Honor thy father, in work and word, and
all patience: That a blessing may come upon thee from him, and his
blessing may remain in the latter end” (Ecclesiasticus 3:5-10).
“Support the old age of thy father: and grieve him not in his life; And if his
understanding fail, have patience with him, and despise him not when thou
art in thy strength: for the relieving of the father shall not be forgotten.”
(Ecclesiasticus 3:14-15).
“Children, obey your parents in the Lord, for that is right. ‘Honor thy
father and thy mother’– such is the first commandment with a promise –
‘that it may be well with thee, and that thou mayest be long-lived upon the
earth’ ” (Ephesians 6:1-3).
(b) Children must obey their teachers and other persons in whose charge
they have been placed by their parents.
SCRIPTURE:
“And he said to them, ‘Render, therefore, to Caesar the things that are
Caesar’s, and to God the things that are God’s’ ” (Luke 20:25).
244. What duty have parents toward their children and superiors
toward those under their care?
Parents must provide for the spiritual and bodily welfare of their
children; superiors, according to their varying degrees of
responsibility, must care for those entrusted to them.
(a) Parents must manifest their love for their children in a reasonable
manner. They must be on guard lest they spoil their children by granting
them unreasonable requests; they must not neglect to correct their faults.
(b) It is the duty of parents to care for the spiritual welfare of their
children, by having them baptized as soon as possible, by having them
well instructed in the truths of religion; by training them in the practice
of the Christian virtues, both by word and example; by counseling them
to choose good companions; by directing their reading and recreation;
and by urging them to fulfill their obligations to assist at Mass on
Sundays and holydays, and to receive the sacraments regularly, even
frequently.
(d) Parents are responsible for the physical and social well-being of their
children. They must provide the necessary food, clothing, shelter, and
medical care insofar as they are able. Parents are equally responsible for
the intellectual and religious instruction and moral training of their
children. They should rear them to be useful, self-supporting, patriotic
citizens and informed, practical members of the Church.
SCRIPTURE:
“He that spareth the rod hateth his son: but he that loveth him correcteth
him betimes” (Proverbs 13:24).
“Hast thou children? Instruct them, and bow down their neck from their
childhood” (Ecclesiasticus 7:25).
“And you, fathers, do not provoke your children to anger, but rear them in
the discipline and admonition of the Lord” (Ephesians 6:4).
(a) A person who plots against his country or rebels against its legitimate
government commits a grave sin. Citizens, however, have a right to
defend themselves against tyranny when there is no other way to secure
the exercise of their fundamental human rights.
SCRIPTURE: See Scripture, question 243, Romans 13:1-7.
(a) Citizens should exercise their right to vote. This is a moral obligation
when the common good of the state or the good of religion, especially in
serious matters, can be promoted.
(b) Citizens should vote for the candidates who in their judgment are best
qualified to discharge the duties of public office. Mere personal gain or
friendship does not justify one’s voting for a candidate. It would be sinful
to cast a ballot for one who, in the judgment of the voters, would do
grave public harm.
(c) Citizens of a country as well as aliens should obey the law of paying
just taxes in order to contribute their fair share to the lawful expenses of
good government and public security.
(d) Citizens are obliged to help their country wage a just war. They must
serve in the armed forces if the government commands them to do so
unless they are convinced from adequate and unquestionable evidence
that the war is unjust.
247. Why must we respect and obey the lawful authority of our
country?
(a) Citizens may accept any form of government that does not claim for
itself rights that belong to God alone or those that are proper to the
individual, to the family, or to the Church. The state exists for the
common good of men, and not men for the state. A government may not
infringe on the right of an individual or of a family to worship God and
to live according to His laws; nor may it forbid parents to instruct their
children in the truths of God and to train them in virtuous living. A
government may not prohibit the Church from preaching the Gospel.
administering the sacraments, and legislating in all those matters that
pertain to the worship of God and the salvation of souls.
249. What are the chief duties of those who hold public office?
The chief duties of those who hold public office are to be just to all in
exercising their authority and to promote the general welfare.
SCRIPTURE:
“Give ear, you that rule the people, and that please yourselves in
multitudes of nations: For power is given you by the Lord, and strength by
the most High. Who will examine your works, and search out your
thoughts” (Wisdom 6:3-4).
(a) Children sin mortally when they fail to give the respect and love due
to their parents by hating them, unjustly threatening them, or striking
them, by seriously insulting or ridiculing them, by wishing them serious
evil, by treating them heartlessly, by disregarding them when they are in
grave need, by cursing them, by causing them great sorrow, or by
provoking them to serious anger.
“Cursed be he that honoreth not his father and mother. And all the people
shall say: Amen” (Deuteronomy 27:16).
“Render to all men whatever is their due; tribute to whom tribute is due;
taxes to whom taxes are due; fear to whom fear is due; honor to whom
honor is due” (Romans 13:7).
(a) Man does not have supreme dominion over his own life; he was not
the cause of its beginning nor may he be the deliberate cause of its end.
Man must use the ordinary means to preserve life. He is not, however,
obliged to use extraordinary means which would involve relatively great
expense or intolerable pain or shame.
(b) Man is obliged to use prudent means in order to preserve his health
and the health of those under his care.
(b) The life of another person may lawfully be taken: first, in order to
protect one’s own life or that of a neighbor, or a serious amount of
possessions from an unjust aggressor, provided no other means of
protection is effective; second, by a soldier fighting a just war; third, by a
duly appointed executioner of the state when he metes out a just
punishment for a crime.
(e) The human body may not be mutilated unless there is no other way to
preserve the health or to save the life of a person.
(f) It is sinful to risk one’s life without a sufficiently good reason. To risk
one’s life in order to save the life of another person is permissible and in
certain cases obligatory.
(g) It is the law of the Church that the bodies of those who have
knowingly and deliberately committed suicide shall not be given
Christian burial.
(h) One may never take part in a duel, which is a prearranged contest
between two persons with deadly weapons. The Church punishes with
excommunication not only those who engage in a duel, but also those
who assist them and even those who are deliberately present at a duel and
do not, as far as they can, try to prevent it.
(i) Unjust anger leads to hatred, revenge, fighting, and other grave sins.
(j) Excessive eating and drinking are sinful because they injure the health
of a person and often lead to other sins. A person commits a mortal sin
when by excessive use of alcoholic drink he deliberately deprives himself
of the use of reason without a just cause, or when by habitual drinking he
seriously injures his health, neglects to provide for his family or gives
scandal, or when, as a result of excessive drinking, he violates a grave
obligation arising from the law of God, the Church, or the state.
The Martyrdom of St. Stephen (picture)
The top picture shows St. Stephen, deacon and first martyr, giving the
admirable example of the pardon of his enemies. Kneeling with his eyes
lifted up to heaven, he addresses to God his touching prayer for the Jews
who are stoning him, “Lord, do not lay this sin against them.” (Acts 7:60)
Suddenly, Heaven opens before him. God looks at him with pleasure
with His arms extended towards him. An angel offers him the palm of
martyrdom, and another shows him the crown that awaits him.
At the bottom of this plate on the left are Esau and Jacob being
reconciled to each other, while on the right, St. Cyprian is about to be
beheaded. His friends are paying the executioner twenty-five gold pieces,
having been ordered to do so by the Saint. St. Cyprian was a bishop, and
he shares the feast day of September 16 with St. Cornelius, Pope and
Martyr. The two martyrs are mentioned together in the Canon of the
Mass.
All the scenes of this plate relate to the commandment, “Thou shalt not
kill.”
SCRIPTURE:
“You have heard that it was said to the ancients, ‘Thou shalt not kill; and
that whoever shall kill shall be liable to judgment. But I say to you that
everyone who is angry with his brother shall be liable to judgment; and
whoever says to his brother, ‘Raca,’ shall be liable to the Sanhedrin; and
whoever says, ‘Thou fool!’, shall be liable to the fire of Gehenna.
Therefore, if thou art offering thy gift at the altar, and there rememberest
that thy brother has anything against thee, leave thy gift before the altar
and go first to be reconciled to thy brother, and then come and offer thy
gift” (Matthew 5:21-24).
“Woe to the world because of scandals! For it must be that scandals come,
but woe to the man through whom scandal does come! And if thy hand or
thy foot is an occasion of sin to thee, cut it off and cast it from thee! It is
better for thee to enter life maimed or lame, than, having two hands or two
feet, to be cast into the everlasting fire. And if thy eye is an occasion of sin
to thee, pluck it out and cast it from thee! It is better for thee to enter into
life with one eye, than, having two eyes, to be cast into hell-fire” (Matthew
18:7-9).
“The works of the flesh are manifest, which are . . . enmities, contention . .
. anger, quarrels . . . murders, drunkenness, carousings, and suchlike. And
concerning these I warn you, as I have warned you, that they who do such
things will not attain the kingdom of God” (Galatians 5:19-21).
“But let every man be swift to hear, slow to speak, and slow to wrath. For
the wrath of man does not work the justice of God” (James 1:19-20).
“Everyone who hates his brother is a murderer. And you know that no
murderer has eternal life abiding in him” (I John 3:15).
254. What is the sixth commandment of God?
The sixth commandment of God is: Thou shalt not commit adultery.
SCRIPTURE:
(b) Modesty inclines one to refrain from any action or word that might
lead oneself or others to an unlawful incitement of the sexual appetite.
Modesty is necessary for safeguarding purity.
SCRIPTURE:
“Or do you not know that your members are the temple of the Holy Spirit,
who is in you, whom you have from God, and that you are not your own?
For you have been bought at a great price. Glorify God and bear him in
your body” (I Corinthians 6:19-20).
(a) Impurity is any deliberate thought, word, look, or deed with oneself
or another by which the sexual appetite is aroused outside of marriage,
and even in marriage when contrary to the purpose for which God
instituted the married state.
(b) Some of the chief sins against purity are: first, adultery, by which one
violates the sexual rights of the married state. This sin is also committed
by one who lives as the legal husband or wife of another after one or both
parties have secured a civil divorce; second, fornication, by which an
unmarried person usurps the marriage right by sexual intercourse with
another unmarried person; third, deliberate actions with oneself or others
performed to arouse the sexual appetite.
(d) When there is full deliberation in any sin of impurity it is a mortal sin.
Immodesty may be either a mortal or venial sin depending on the greater
or less danger of impurity to which it tends, the degree of scandal, and
the intention of the sinner.
“Now the Scribes and Pharisees brought a woman caught in adultery, and
setting her in the midst, said to Him, ‘Master, this woman has just now
been caught in adultery. And in the Law Moses commanded us to stone
such persons. What, therefore, dost thou say?’ Now they were saying this
to test Him, in order that they might be able to accuse him. But Jesus,
stooping down, began to write with His finger on the ground.
“But when they continued asking him, he raised Himself and said to
them, ‘Let him who is without sin among you be the first to cast a stone
at her.’ And again stooping down, he began to write on the ground. But
hearing this, they went away, one by one, beginning with the eldest. And
Jesus remained alone, with the woman standing in the midst.
“And Jesus, raising Himself, said to her, ‘Woman, where are they? Has
no one condemned thee?’ She said, ‘No one, Lord.’ Then Jesus said,
‘Neither will I condemn thee. Go thy way, and from now on sin no more.’
” (John 8:3-11)
At the bottom right is king David, and before him the prophet Nathan. He
is reproaching David for the adultery which he committed with
Bethsabee and for the murder of her husband Urias.
On the left is shown the story which Nathan told to make David realize
the enormity of his crime. “There were,” he told him, “two men in one
city, the one rich and the other poor. The rich man had exceeding many
sheep and oxen. But the poor man had nothing at all but one little ewe
lamb, which he had bought and nourished up, and which had grown up in
his house together with his children, eating of his bread, and drinking of
his cup, and sleeping in his bosom: and it was unto him as a daughter.
And when a certain stranger was come to the rich man, he spared to take
of his own sheep and oxen, to make a feast for that stranger, who was
come to him: but took the poor man’s ewe, and dressed it for the man that
was come to him
“And David’s anger being exceedingly kindled against that man, he said
to Nathan, ‘As the Lord liveth, the man that hath done this is a child of
death.’ ”
“Thou art the man,” replied the prophet. “Thus saith the Lord, ‘I anointed
thee king over Israel; and I delivered thee from the hand of Saul, and
gave thee thy master’s house and all his goods, and I was to add far
greater things to thee. Why therefore hast thou despised the word of the
Lord, to commit sin by causing Urias the Hethite to perish by the sword
and by marrying his wife? In punishment for thy double crime, it is from
thy own family that the Lord will raise up ministers of His vengeance.
Thy family will become for thee a source of unhappiness.’
“The king was astounded, and was seized with repentance in the depths
of his soul and uttered this saving cry of penitence that God will never
despise, ‘I have sinned against the Lord.’ ” (2 Kings 12)
SCRIPTURE:
“You have heard that it was said to the ancients, ‘Thou shalt not commit
adultery.’ But I say to you that anyone who so much as looks with lust at a
woman has already committed adultery with her in his heart” (Matthew
5:27-28).
“For this is the will of God, your sanctification; that you abstain from
immorality; that every one of you learn how to possess his vessel in
holiness and honor, not in the passion of lust like the Gentiles who do not
know God” (I Thessalonians 4:3-5).
(a) We must avoid as far as possible any person, place, or thing that is
likely to tempt us to immodesty and impurity. Special care must be taken
to avoid the near occasions of these sins.
(b) Unmarried persons may not carry on a courtship with those who are
not free to marry. They should avoid receiving any attention from them.
Familiarity with such persons can readily lead to many sins of impurity
and to an invalid marriage.
SCRIPTURE:
“Idleness hath taught much evil” (Ecclesiasticus 33:29).
258. What are the chief means of preserving the virtue of chastity?
“Watch and pray, that you may not enter into temptation. The spirit indeed
is willing, but the flesh is weak” (Mark 14:38).
“Be sober, be watchful! For your adversary the devil, as a roaring lion,
goes about seeking someone to devour. Resist him, steadfast in the faith,
knowing that the same suffering befalls your brethren all over the world”
(I Peter 5:8-9).
Many persons in public office seem to forget that they are strictly bound
to provide for the welfare of the citizens and to protect their rights; they
are guilty of sin if they neglect to perform the duties demanded of them
or if they exercise their authority for their own personal advantage rather
than for the benefit of their fellow citizens. A public official must always
remember that the authority he possesses comes to him from God and
that he must employ that authority in the way that God wills. It is
unfortunate that there are many public officials nowadays who, while
they may be conscientious in their duties as private citizens and perhaps
even faithful in their religious practices, frequently transgress the fourth
commandment in their public life.
RESOLUTION: Resolve that you will carefully avoid anything that may
endanger your purity, such as bad companions, dangerous reading,
unchaste conversation and suggestive motion pictures.
STUDY HELPS
A. COLUMN SELECTION. (Join correctly the parts of the sentences in Columns I and II, by
placing the right key letter in the proper parenthesis.)
Column I
(4) Disobedience even in slight matters can become a grave sin (. .).
(7) It is a mortal sin to deprive oneself of the use of reason without a just
cause (. .).
Column II
(D) if it is the only way in which he can protect his own life.
(F) when the common good of the state or the good of religion demands
it.
(I) if he employs his authority for his personal advantage rather than for
the benefit of the citizens.
(J) when the motive is contempt for the authority of those who command.
(2) Ella and her brother Lyle, both over 21 and still living at home with
their parents, consider their parents old-fashioned. Father and mother
demand that all the children be in the house by eleven o’clock each night.
Ella and Lyle refuse to abide by that regulation. Are they guilty of any
sin? Why?
(3) John, a married man and a wealthy contractor, seldom visits his
widowed mother. She lives in the poorer section of the same town and
barely manages to get along on her limited income. What obligations, if
any, has John toward his mother?
(4) Ida, eighteen years old, would like to join the Sisters after her
graduation from High School. Her mother strongly objects to her
ambition; she wants the girl to get married to Orlando, a young Protestant
lawyer with lots of money. Must Ida obey her mother? Explain.
(5) Jonas, a Catholic, has been keeping company with Rania, the
daughter of a Protestant minister in the neighboring town. He plans to be
married in three weeks. Both of his parents are still ignorant of the whole
affair. Has Jonas acted correctly toward them? Explain.
(6) Audrey in the seventh grade dislikes being reminded by her mother
that it is time to go to confession and Communion with the Sodality girls.
Has Audrey a just complaint against her mother? Explain your reply.
(7) Paul is a very sick boy; the doctor has ordered certain tablets to be
taken every three hours. Has Paul an obligation to take the doctor’s
prescription? What commandment imposes the obligation?
(8) If Fido is run over by a bus, a policeman usually shoots the dog to
end its misery. If you were to meet with the same accident may a doctor
or a surgeon end your misery by an easy death (euthanasia)? Explain.
(9) Leon, an honest and thrifty young man, saved his money to buy
furniture for the home he planned after his marriage with Teresa, a
devout Catholic girl. A few days before the wedding he drew $1200 out
of the bank and kept it in his room, so that he could buy the furniture the
next day. That night he awoke to see a robber leaving the room with his
money. Leon seized a knife, pursued the robber, and grappled with him.
The robber drew a gun, and Leon stabbed him in the heart, killing him.
Was Leon allowed to do this? What difference would it make if the
robber had no gun? If Leon had a gun would he have been allowed to
shoot the robber?
(11) The sixth beatitude encourages us to the practice of the same virtue.
What is that beatitude? Who proclaimed it?
(12) What girl saint is the patroness of holy purity? In the same virtue,
who is the model saint for the boys?
(b) Theft and robbery are contrary to the natural law and are opposed to
justice. They are considered mortal sins unless that which is stolen is of
little value. Even in the case of slight value, the violence attached to
robbery may make it a mortal sm.
(c) When the thing stolen is of great value, solely from its own intrinsic
worth, it is said to constitute absolutely grave matter. Theft or robbery of
something which in itself is grave matter may not impose a hardship on
the owner but it is a mortal sin because it is a serious attack on society, on
the public peace of a community, and on its security. Dishonesty which
seriously disturbs the public order is always a mortal sin. The amount
that constitutes absolutely grave matter in theft or robbery varies in
different countries, owing to the special conditions and circumstances of
the countries.
(d) When the thing stolen is of relatively greater value, that is, not from
its own intrinsic worth, but considering the condition of the owner and
the injury suffered, it is said to constitute relatively grave matter. The
theft, for example, from a poor man of an amount that is required for one
day’s support of himself and his family would constitute, at least,
relatively grave matter and would be a mortal sin.
(e) One who frequently steals things of small value from one or different
persons within a short period (a month of two), the total of which is of
serious value, commits a mortal sin in the last act of the series of stealing,
because the small amounts stolen go together to constitute grave matter.
SCRIPTURE:
(b) It is sinful to incur willfully debts beyond one’s ability to pay. The
desire for pleasure and social and political ambition do not justify living
beyond one’s means, an abuse which has become a prevalent vice.
SCRIPTURE:
“The wicked man borrows and does not repay” (Psalm 36:21).
“Render to all men whatever is their due; tribute to whom tribute is due;
taxes to whom taxes are due…” (Romans 13:7).
(b) Employers who defraud laborers by not paying them a just, living
wage keep what belongs to others and are guilty of grave injustice not
only to the employee but also to members of his family. This injustice
can cause serious sins in the domestic life as well as in the social life of a
community. Employees who waste time during working hours, do
careless work, or neglect to take reasonable care of the property of their
employers violate the seventh commandment.
(c) Public officials are obliged to make appointments on merit; they sin
against the seventh commandment when they demand money or its
equivalent for such appointments. If these appointees do not render a just
service for the tax payments of a community, a further injustice is done to
the citizens. Public officials sin mortally by taking bribes for allowing
persons to violate the law in serious matters. The guilt of these officials is
all the greater when they violate their oath to uphold the law.
SCRIPTURE:
“Do not any unjust thing in judgment, in rule, in weight, or in measure. Let
the balance be just and the weights equal, the bushel just, and the sextary
equal” (Leviticus 19:35-36).
(a) If the owner is dead, stolen goods must be restored to the heirs. If the
owner or heir of stolen goods cannot be determined, the goods or their
value are to be given to the poor or pious causes. A person who has
obtained goods unjustly, but who no longer possesses them, must
sincerely intend to make due restitution as soon as he can; otherwise his
sin cannot be forgiven.
(c) Lost goods that are found may be kept only after every reasonable
effort has been made to find the owner and to restore the goods.
SCRIPTURE:
“If any man steal an ox or a sheep, and kill or sell it: he shall restore five
oxen for one ox, and four sheep for one sheep” (Exodus 22:1).
“If any man hurt a field or a vineyard, and put in his beast to feed upon
that which is other men’s: he shall restore the best of whatsoever he hath in
his own field, or in his vineyard, according to the estimation of the
damage” (Exodus 22:5).
The eighth commandment of God is: Thou shalt not bear false
witness against thy neighbor.
SCRIPTURE:
“Thou shalt not bear false witness against thy neighbor” (Exodus 20:16).
“Wherefore, put away lying and speak truth each one with his neighbor,
because we are members of one another” (Ephesians 4:25).
(a) A lie expresses opposition between one’s word and one’s thought ; it
implies the intention to deceive by stating what is false. A lie is
intrinsically wrong and is opposed to the natural law . It undermines
mutual trust among men.
(b) Ordinarily, a lie told in jest or for someone’s benefit is a venial sin; a
deliberate lie which causes serious harm is a mortal sin. A lie told under
oath is perjury and is always a mortal sin.
(a) We rightly prize the favorable judgment of others about our character
. We may not, without certain knowledge, believe things that undermine
or destroy the character of another. Rash judgment is a sin against justice;
it is a mortal sin if grave injustice is done deliberately. To suspend
judgment about a person’s character until suspicion or doubt can be
settled is not sinful.
SCRIPTURE:
“Do not judge, that you may not be judged. For with what judgment you
judge, you shall be judged; and with what measure you measure, it shall be
measured to you. But why dost thou see the speck in thy brother’s eye, and
yet dost not consider the beam in thy own eye?” (Matthew 7:1-3).
(a) There must be a sufficiently grave reason to reveal the hidden faults
of others, for example, the defense of one’s self or others; the correction
of others by their parents or superiors; the welfare of society, as when
one is obliged to inform public authorities of another’s secret crimes. A
person who has been found guilty in court has lost his good name owing
to the charge proved against him. It is not detraction to speak of this court
action to others, nor is it against the eighth commandment to speak of
faults that are generally known in a community. It is, however, more
charitable not to do so.
(c) We should avoid unkind remarks about others, and talebearing which
needlessly causes misunderstanding, distrust, and enmity.
“The slanderer of his neighbor in secret: him I will destroy” (Psalm 100:5).
“A good name is better than great riches: and good favor is above silver
and gold” (Proverbs 22:1).
“The whisperer and the double tongued is accursed: for he hath troubled
many that were at peace” (Ecclesiasticus 28:15).
“Take care of a good name: for this shall continue with thee, more than a
thousand treasures precious and great” (Ecclesiasticus 41:15).
“Devise not a lie against thy brother: neither do the like against thy friend”
(Ecclesiasticus 7:13).
The ninth commandment of God is: Thou shalt not covet thy
neighbor’s wife.
SCRIPTURE:
“Thou shalt not covet thy neighbor’s wife: nor his house” (Deuteronomy
5:21).
“Evil thoughts are an abomination to the Lord: and pure words most
beautiful shall be confirmed by him” (Proverbs 15:26).
“Blessed are the clean of heart, for they shall see God” (Matthew 5:8).
“For out of the heart come evil thoughts, murders, adulteries, immorality,
thefts, false witness, blasphemies. These are the things that defile a man”
(Matthew 15:19-20).
(a) We should form the habit of praying immediately when we are beset
by impure thoughts, desires, or imaginations. It is well to know by heart
many ejaculations addressed to Our Lord and His Blessed Mother which
we should repeat in time of such temptations.
(b) In confessing deliberate impure desires, one must tell the confessor
their object, for example, a married or single person, of the same or the
opposite sex, because such circumstances change the nature of the sin.
The tenth commandment of God is: Thou shalt not covet thy
neighbor’s goods.
“Take heed and guard yourself from all covetousness, for a man’s life does
not consist in the abundance of his possessions” (Luke 12:15).
“For covetousness is the root of all evils, and some in their eagerness to
get rich have strayed from the faith and have involved themselves in many
troubles” (I Timothy 6:10).
“Let your manner of life be without avarice; be content with what you
have, for he himself has said, ‘I will not leave thee, neither will I forsake
thee’ ” (Hebrew 13:5).
The ninth and tenth commandments are related to the sixth and seventh–
the ninth forbidding interior sins regarding matters of purity, while the
sixth forbids external acts; the tenth forbidding those internal sins the
external performance of which is forbidden by the seventh
commandment.
In our days there is much dishonesty, due largely to the excessive desire
of people for riches and luxuries. In business, in politics, even in the
home, many people are so anxious to enrich themselves that they are
entirely unconcerned with the rights of their fellow men. Moreover,
crimes of theft and robbery, often accompanied by violence or even
murder, are becoming more and more common.
Many persons, by not paying their just debts, are guilty of sins against
the seventh commandment. Some claim that they are unable to pay, yet
they continue to buy luxuries, a fact which shows that they are not
sincere. There are even some who deliberately refuse to pay a debt even
though they know it was contracted, if the creditor has no written proof
of his claim. God’s law of justice is not limited to what can be proved in
a civil court.
Sins of the tongue which injure others are also prevalent. Without the
least qualm of conscience men lie to their fellow men. There are many
who gravely injure the reputation of their fellows by their uncharitable,
often false, remarks and stories. Backbiting, tale-bearing, the violation of
secrets that one should keep, rash judgments–how common these are
today!
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the following statements as either true or false. The
correct answers can be found in the preceding portions of this lesson).
(1) A person who has damaged another’s property through no fault of his
own is bound in conscience to make reparation for the damage, even
when the civil law does not require it.
(3) If the owner of stolen goods or his heir cannot be found, the thief may
keep them.
(4) We are always allowed to tell the hidden faults of others as long as
what we say is true.
(5) To speak about the publicly known faults of others is not against
justice.
(8) When we find something we may keep it without making any further
investigation.
(9) If a creditor cannot prove by a written document that his debtor owes
him money, the debtor has no obligation to pay.
(10) If a person finds out after buying an article that it was really stolen,
and the owner appears and demands it, he must return it, and has no right
to receive any payment from the owner.
(1) Myron has stolen $3.00 from a rich man. Is that a mortal gin or a
venial sin? Give the reason for your answer.
(4) Elmer confesses he has stolen an expensive bicycle from the sporting-
goods store in his neighborhood. Is God’s justice satisfied when Elmer
tells the sin he has committed? Is there anything else Elmer must do, in
addition to telling the sin with sorrow? What is that obligation?
(5) Two years ago Myrna stole 50 cents from the pocketbook of a
playmate’s mother. She told her sin in confession, but forgot that her
obligation did not end with the mere telling of the sin. She is now willing
to do her duty, but that family has moved to another State. What is she to
do about it, since she doesn’t know the present whereabouts of the
family?
(6) Millicent buys a very fine camera from an acquaintance for $5,
thinking she is getting a good bargain. That afternoon a boy comes to her
house and proves that it is his camera which was stolen by Millicent’s
acquaintance. Must Millicent give it to the boy? May she demand $5
from him to make up for the price she paid? May she demand that
amount from her dishonest acquaintance?
(7) Every now and then a child is heard to say: “Findings is keepings!” If
you find a lost article is it yours? Explain your answer.
(9) Rhoda, with a rating of 95% wins the four years’ High School
scholarship worth $500. Priscilla, her nearest competitor, received 93 %.
Priscilla was thoroughly honest in her examination; but Rhoda cheated
on only one answer that gave her 5 % credit. Which of the ten
commandments did Rhoda break? How can she make her peace with
God?
(11) Gustave, a janitor in a stylish apartment house, now and then opens
the tenants’ mail out of sheer curiosity. Does he commit sin in acting that
way? What personal right of the tenants is violated? What commandment
safeguards that right of the tenants?
(12) Chrysostom, a choir boy, with ambitions to become a priest, is
sometimes upset in conscience because filthy thoughts and vile
imaginations assail him. As soon as he notices their presence, he utters
the ejaculation: “Jesus and Mary, help me!” What do you think about his
custom? Explain your answer in two or three short sentences.
(14) John, a rich man, employs Harvey as handy man on his estate.
Harvey works faithfully for eight hours a day, but John gives him only
$25 a week–a sum that is entirely insufficient for the needs of Harvey
and his wife and five children. Does John sin against the seventh
commandment? Explain.
(15) Mrs. Jones, suffering from a bad headache, tells her daughter Helen
to inform anyone who may visit her that afternoon that she is not at
home. Do you think that Helen is allowed to say this without breaking
the eighth commandment?
– LESSON 21 –
The Commandments of the Church;
The First and Second Commandments
279. Whence has the Catholic Church the right to make laws?
The Catholic Church has the right to make laws from Jesus Christ,
who said to the apostles, the first bishops of His Church: “Whatever
you bind on earth shall be bound also in heaven.”
(a) The power of the Church to bind and to loose is known as “the power
of the keys” and includes everything necessary for the government of the
Church and for the direction of the faithful in order that they may attain
their eternal destiny. The primary purpose of Church laws is the eternal
salvation of men.
(b) The Church has power from Christ to make laws and to enforce their
observance.
(d) The Church has indirect power over those temporal matters which are
necessary or useful for the salvation of men.
SCRIPTURE:
“Amen I say to you, whatever you bind on earth shall be bound also in
heaven; and whatever you loose on earth shall be loosed also in heaven”
(Matthew 18:18).
“He therefore said to them again, ‘Peace be to you! As the Father has sent
me, I also send you’ ” (John 20:21).
(a) The Roman Pontiff has full, supreme, ordinary (that is, in virtue of his
office), and immediate jurisdiction over the universal Church.
(b) All the bishops of the Church assembled in a general council in union
with the Pope can make laws for the universal Church.
(a) Besides these six commandments there are many other laws
regulating the government of the Church and the administration of its
affairs.
(a) There are four other holydays of obligation in the universal Church:
the Feasts of Epiphany, Corpus Christi, Saint Joseph, and Saints Peter
and Paul. With the approval of the Holy See, these four feasts are not
holydays of obligation in the United States.
(a) Catholics who must work on holydays are obliged to hear Mass
unless excused by a reasonably grave cause.
A fast day is a day on which only one full meal is allowed, but in the
morning and evening some food may be taken, the quantity and
quality of which are determined by approved local custom.
(a) The one full meal may be taken either at noontime or in the evening.
At this meal only may meat be taken.
(b) To take liquid does not break one’s fast, provided it is not equivalent
to food. Malted milk or cream, for example, is equivalent to food.
287. Who are obliged to observe the fast days of the Church?
(a) The sick and those who do extremely hard labor are excused from
fasting. A person who is in doubt regarding the obligation to fast should
consult a priest.
All baptized persons seven years of age or over who have attained
the use of reason are obliged to observe the abstinence days of the
Church, unless they are excused or dispensed.
(a) The sick who need meat, persons who do extremely hard work, and
those who would otherwise be deprived of sufficient food are excused
from the law of abstinence.
(b) For a just cause, a parish priest can dispense his subjects from the law
of fast or of abstinence, or of both, in particular cases. He can dispense
individuals or particular families of his parish. He can grant this
dispensation to his subjects even when they are outside the limits of his
parish, and also to visitors who are, at the time, in his parish. A bishop
enjoys the same power with respect to his diocese.
(a) It is not because meat and other foods are evil in themselves that the
Church prescribes days of fast and abstinence. The Church commands us
to deny ourselves for the glory of God and the good of our souls.
SCRIPTURE:
“Prayer is good with fasting and alms: more than to lay up treasures of
gold” (Tobias 12:8).
“Now therefore saith the Lord: ‘Be converted to me with all your heart, in
fasting . . .’ ” (Joel 2:12).
“Then Jesus was led into the desert by the Spirit, to be tempted by the
devil. And after fasting forty days and forty nights, he was hungry”
(Matthew 4:1 -2).
“And when you fast, do not look gloomy like the hypocrites, who disfigure
their faces in order to appear to men as fasting. Amen I say to you, they
have received their reward. But thou, when thou dost fast, anoint thy head
and wash thy face, so that thou mayest not be seen fasting by men, but by
thy Father, who is in secret; and thy Father, who sees in secret, will reward
thee” (Matthew 6:16-18).
292. How can we know the days appointed for fast or abstinence?
We can know the days appointed for fast or abstinence from the
instructions of our bishops and priests.
(a) From the general laws of the Church, we know the following
regulations: first, abstinence binds on all Fridays; second, fast and
abstinence bind on Ash Wednesday, the Fridays and Saturdays of Lent,
the Ember Days, and the vigils of Pentecost, the Immaculate Conception,
All Saints and Christmas. The Ember Days are twelve in number, three in
each season, namely, the Wednesday, Friday, and Saturday after
December 13; after the first Sunday of Lent; after Pentecost; and after
September 14; third, fast binds on all the other days of Lent.
(c) In the United States at present, most dioceses have special rules
regarding fast and abstinence.
IMPORTANT TRUTHS ABOUT THE 1st AND 2nd
COMMANDMENTS OF THE CHURCH
As is customary in every organized society, in the Church the lawful
rulers have the authority to make laws for the other members. Christ
Himself explicitly gave this power to the first bishops, the apostles, and
from them it has been passed down through the centuries to the bishops
of the present day. The fullest measure of this authority resides in the
Pope, the chief bishop of the entire Church who can make laws for all its
members, whereas other bishops can legislate for their respective
dioceses only.
The laws of the Church are all directed to one great purpose-to bring men
to eternal salvation. For more than nineteen centuries the Church has had
experience in making laws; in her legislative action she is guided by the
Holy Ghost. Indeed, on account of the infallibility of the Church it would
be impossible for her to pass any general law that would be harmful to
the faith or morals of Christians. Like a good mother, the Church is not
too severe in her laws. She knows the inclinations of human nature and
human frailty; she is ready to dispense from her laws when there is good
reason for a dispensation. Moreover, the Church is always ready to adapt
her legislation to local conditions and to the customs of different nations.
What are known as the six commandments of the Church are in reality
certain laws selected from the body of the Church’s legislative
enactments, stating the more urgent duties of the practical Catholic. The
two commandments considered in this lesson concern the two important
virtues of religion and temperance. In order that her children may
practice religion, the Church prescribes that they assist at the sacrifice of
the Mass, the most sublime act of Christianship, at least on every Sunday
and on certain great feasts. In order that they may practice temperance
the Church prescribes fast and abstinence at certain times –some days
being days of both fast and abstinence, others imposing only one of these
forms of self-denial.
These laws, like all the laws of the Church, are reasonable and easy to
observe. The first of these two commandments calls for only one hour of
our time every Sunday and on six other days in the course of the year.
This is a grave precept, so that one who misses Mass, or a considerable
portion of it, on a Sunday or holyday by his own fault is guilty of a
mortal sin. If a person failed to come before the Offertory but was
present from the Offertory to the end of the Mass, he would substantially
fulfill his obligation but he would be guilty of a venial sin, in the
supposition that the omission was culpable. But a person would not
substantially satisfy his obligation if he were present only from the
beginning of the Offertory through the Communion. It is permitted to
fulfill the obligation by hearing successively portions of two Masses
which together constitute an entire Mass, as long as one is present at both
the Consecration and the Communion of one of the Masses.
Generally speaking, the laws of the Church begin to bind only when a
Catholic has passed his seventh birthday and has attained the use of
reason. This rule holds in regard to the law of abstinence and of
attendance at Mass on Sundays and holydays. However the law of fasting
binds only those who have passed their twenty-first birthday and have
not yet passed their fifty-ninth birthday. On the other hand, a child who
has attained the use of reason but is not yet seven years old is obliged to
obey the law of annual Holy Communion.
The two commandments we have considered in this lesson are a good
test of a Catholic’s loyalty to his religion. Catholics who observe them
faithfully are usually practical Catholics, while those who habitually
neglect Mass and the laws of fast and abstinence–particularly the Friday
abstinence¬¬–are Catholics only in name and are in grave danger of
losing their souls.
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTION. (Select the word or phrase in the parentheses which most exactly and
most completely fills out the sentence).
(1) The Church has received the power to make laws from the (apostles .
. . St. Peter . . . Christ).
(2) The primary purpose of the Church’s laws is (to procure the eternal
salvation of souls . . . to increase the power of the Church . . . to test the
virtue of Catholics).
(3) The collection of laws binding the Latin church is called (the digest
of law . . . the Code of Canon Law . . . the summary of ecclesiastical
law).
(5) There are (eight . . . ten . . . twelve) Ember Days in the course of the
year.
(7) On a fast day a person who is obliged to fast (may not eat meat at all .
. . may eat meat at all meals . . . may eat meat at the principal meal only).
(8) A Friday in Lent is (a day of fast and abstinence . . . a day of
abstinence only . . . a day of fast only).
(9) For a just reason a parish priest can dispense his subjects from (the
laws of fast and abstinence . . . from the law of fast only . . . from the law
of abstinence only).
(10) The Pope can make laws for the entire Church (only with the
consent of the bishops . . . only with the consent of the cardinals . . . by
his own authority without asking the consent of anyone else).
(1) Whose authority does the Church exercise when she makes laws for
us? Is disobedience to Church laws always a serious sin? Explain.
(2) Near the church, before the children’s Mass on Sunday, Mark and
Linus are playing marbles. Knowing that the Mass has started, they
continue to play. When they enter the church, the priest is reading the
Epistle. Are they guilty of sin? Explain your reply.
(3) Clare and her sister Assunta are awakened promptly by their mother
on Sunday morning. Carelessly, they delay their rising, are tardy in
dressing, and idle on their way to the church. When they arrive the priest
has already finished the Gospel, made the announcements, and is nearing
the end of his sermon. Of what kind of sin are these girls guilty? Why? If
they remain for the next Mass and supply the part they have missed will
they be guilty of the sin of missing a part of the Mass?
(4) Norbert and his sister Monica are anxious to go on an automobile trip
with their uncle Otto. Carelessly, they enter the church late for Mass, the
priest having just finished the “Credo.” When the priest drains the chalice
of the Precious Blood, Norbert nudges Monica and says: “C’mon, let’s
go; we’ve heard the three principal parts of Mass!” What do you say of
their conduct? Explain your answer.
(5) Sheila, a precocious child of 5 1/2 has been admitted to her First Holy
Communion. Her big sister Pauline wants to know if Sheila is obliged to
go to Mass next Sunday. What is your opinion?
(6) Herbert and Oliver, High School boys, buy a second-hand car for
$25.00. All day Thursday they are busy cleaning it. On Friday, a holyday
of obligation, after they hear Mass, they continue the work of
overhauling the car, and have the job finished by 8:00 o’clock that night.
What comment have you to make about their observance of the holyday?
(7) Xavier and his sister Harriet are on a motor tour of the Rockies. On
Friday, August 15th, they hear Mass at Our Lady of the Snows. In a
nearby roadway lunchroom they ask for a breakfast of scrambled eggs
and toast; the proprietor prevails on them to breakfast on some New
England sausages. What do you think about the propriety of their
breakfast that Friday morning? Why do you think so?
(10) Jim and Jack are going for a fishing trip on Sunday, and they want to
start about 6 o’clock in the morning. The first Mass in the parish church
is at 6:30; if they attend Mass, they will not be able to start until about 7
o’clock. Jim says that they will commit a mortal sin if they miss Mass,
but Jack says that they have a sufficient reason to be excused. Which of
the two do you think is right?
(11) Mrs. Aylward’s baby daughter is very sick. On Sunday morning her
older daughter, ten years old, offers to take care of the baby while her
mother goes to Mass. Should Mrs. Aylward trust the baby to the little
girl’s care and go to Mass, or should she stay away from Mass to take
care of the sick baby?
(12) On Christmas Eve Eunice, a healthy college student, 22 years old,
who has eaten a big dinner at noon, goes to a party in the evening, and
there consumes a large number of turkey sandwiches with several glasses
of malted milk. Which laws of the Church has Eunice violated?
– LESSON 22 –
The Third, Fourth, Fifth, and Sixth
Commandments of the Church
(a) This commandment binds all Catholics who have attained the use of
reason.
(b) One who commits a mortal sin after Baptism is obliged by divine law
to receive the sacrament of Penance. If this is impossible, one must make
an act of perfect contrition and have the desire to receive the sacrament.
(c) Baptized persons in the state of mortal sin who are in danger of death
are obliged to receive the sacrament of Penance.
(e) One guilty of mortal sin who does not fulfill the precept of annual
confession commits another mortal sin.
SCRIPTURE:
“He therefore said to them again, ‘Peace be to you! As the Father has sent
me, I also send you.’ When he had said this, he breathed upon them, and
said to them, ‘Receive the Holy Spirit; whose sins you shall forgive, they
are forgiven them; and whose sins you shall retain, they are retained’ ”
(John 20:21-23).
“If we say that we have no sin, we deceive ourselves, and the truth is not in
us. If we acknowledge our sins, he is faithful and just to forgive us our sins
and to cleanse us from all iniquity. If we say that we have not sinned, we
make him a liar, and his word is not in us” (I John 1:8-10).
295. What sin does a Catholic commit who neglects to receive Holy
Communion worthily during the Easter time?
(a) This commandment obliges all Catholics who have the use of reason,
Children who have completed seven years of age are presumed to have
the use of reason.
(c) One who has failed to receive Holy Communion within the appointed
time is obliged to receive the Holy Eucharist as soon as possible.
SCRIPTURE:
“Jesus therefore said to them, ‘Amen, amen, I say to you, unless you eat
the flesh of the Son of Man, and drink his blood, you shall not have life in
you. He who eats my flesh and drinks my blood has life everlasting and I
will raise him up on the last day. For my flesh is food indeed, and my
blood is drink indeed’ ” (John 6:54-56).
(a) Trinity Sunday, or the Sunday after Pentecost, is eight weeks after
Easter.
(a) The Church instituted by Christ has the right to all the means it needs
for the fulfillment of its divine commission, for divine worship, and for
the support of the clergy. The Church has the right to determine how to
secure the necessary means without civil interference.
(b) Mass stipends are given to the priest, not in payment for the spiritual
benefits received, but as a means of his support.
SCRIPTURE:
“When thou shalt take the sum of the children of Israel according to their
number, every one of them shall give a price for their souls to the Lord:
and there shall be no scourge among them, when they shall be reckoned.
And this shall every one give that passeth at the naming, half a sicle
according to the standard of the temple” (Exodus 30:12-13).
“The priests and Levites, and all that are of the same tribe, shall have no
part nor inheritance with the rest of Israel: because they shall eat the
sacrifices of the Lord, and his oblation. And they shall receive nothing else
of the possession of their brethren: for the Lord himself is their
inheritance, as he hath said to them. This shall be the priest’s due from the
people, and from them that offer victims. Whether they sacrifice an ox, or
a sheep, they shall give to the priest the shoulder and the breast: The first
fruits also of corn, of wine, and of oil, and a part of the wool from the
shearing of their sheep. For the Lord thy God hath chosen him of all thy
tribes, to stand and to minister to the name of the Lord: him and his sons
forever. If a Levite go out of any one of the cities throughout all Israel, in
which he dwelleth, and have a longing mind to come to the place which
the Lord shall choose: he shall minister in the name of the Lord his God, as
all his brethren the Levites do, that shall stand at that time before the Lord.
He shall receive the same portion of food that the rest do: besides that
which is due to him in his own city, by succession from his fathers”
(Deuteronomy 18:1-8).
“Do not keep gold, or silver, or no wallet for your journey, nor two tunics,
nor sandals, nor staff; for the laborer deserves his living” (Matthew 10:9-
10).
“So also the Lord directed that those who preach the gospel should have
their living from the gospel” (I Corinthians 9:14).
(a) Some other examples of marriages forbidden by the Church are: first,
marriage of a boy who is not sixteen years old or of a girl who is not
fourteen years of age; second, marriage between a godparent and a
godchild; third, marriage between a widow or a widower and the near
relatives of the deceased spouse.
(a) The divine law forbids mixed marriages as long as there is danger to
the faith of the Catholic party or of the offspring.
(b) The Church, before granting the dispensation for a mixed marriage,
demands that this danger be removed and asks that guarantees to that
effect be given by explicit promises made before a representative of
ecclesiastical authority.
(c) The non-Catholic party must promise not to endanger the faith of the
Catholic; both parties must promise that the children born of the marriage
will be baptized in the Catholic Church alone and educated solely in the
Catholic religion. The Catholic party, moreover, must promise to strive
for the conversion of the non-Catholic party by prayer and good example.
302. Does the Church allow Catholics to marry during Lent and
Advent?
STUDY HELPS
A. COLUMN SELECTION. (Join correctly the parts of the sentences in Columns I and II, by
placing the right key letter in the proper parentheses).
Column I
(3) All Catholics who have reached the use of reason must receive Holy
Communion (. .).
(4) According to the general law of the Church, the Easter season lasts (.
.).
Column II
(I) not in payment for the spiritual benefits received but for his support.
(1) The civil year begins with January 1st,–the ecclesiastical year with
the first Sunday of Advent. How is the year generally reckoned within
which the precept of annual confession must be fulfilled?
(3) His sister Rita is also seriously injured in the same accident. She is a
daily communicant. She is in the state of grace. Is she compelled by any
law of God or of the Church to go to confession?
(5) Ludmilla is a very bright little girl in the second grade of elementary
school. She is only six years old. May she receive her First Holy
Communion? Give a brief explanation of your answer.
(6) Polycarp, in mortal sin, has been putting off his annual confession
and Easter duty from week to week. Finally, he lets the Easter duty
season pass by without complying with these precepts. Trinity Sunday
night he says to himself: “Well, I missed my Easter duty this year; now
all the worry is over until next year!” Has Polycarp rid himself of the two
obligations for the present year? What comment have you to make about
the correctness or incorrectness of his conclusion?
(7) Are Barnabas and Rita, mentioned above in the railroad wreck,
obliged to receive Viaticum?
(8) Gilbert’s mother hands him $2.00 “for a Mass to be said by Father
Roger.” What is the customary name of that offering? For what is it
given? Explain the answer.
(9) Angela, of St. Luke’s parish, is going to marry Regis of St. Gemma’s
parish. Angela’s brother Damian, a priest in a neighboring diocese, is to
perform the marriage ceremony. Does Father Damian need special
authorization to perform the service in his sister’s parish? Explain your
decision.
(10) What two sacraments are the principal sources of strength in the
Christian life?
(13) Lorenzo and Concetta are working for a year with an oil company in
the Near East. The nearest Catholic church is 100 miles distant; and a
priest comes to their camp only once every two months to say Mass and
to administer the sacraments. The young couple decides to marry. They
cannot get a car to journey to the church; and they know that the priest is
not due to visit them for five weeks. May they marry even without the
presence of a priest? Explain how this can be done.
(a) Man, composed of body and soul, lives in the midst of visible things,
deals with them constantly, and gains his knowledge from them. His
knowledge of spiritual things depends on the use of his senses. It was
fitting, therefore, that the sacraments, which were to bring man the
supernatural, spiritual gifts of grace, be instituted by Christ as visible
signs which could be perceived by man.
(b) In each of the sacraments there is an outward sign, that is, some
external thing or action called the matter, and a set formula of words
known as the form. The matter and the form together make up the sign of
each sacrament. In the sacrament of Baptism, for example, the matter
consists in the water; and in its application to the person being baptized;
the form is the sentence: “I baptize thee in the name of the Father and of
the Son and of the Holy Ghost,” which is said while the water is being
poured.
(c) When the sign is applied to the one who receives the sacrament, it
signifies inward grace and has the power of producing it in the soul. The
external action performed by the minister of the sacrament is called a
sign of the inward grace because it signifies and represents outwardly
what is produced inwardly and invisibly in the soul. The sacramental
signs actually effect what they represent. In Baptism, for example, the
application of the water and the pronouncing of the words are a sign
which both represents the cleansing of the soul from sin and actually
effects that cleansing.
(d) The sacramental signs were instituted by Christ. Our Lord is the
Author of all the sacraments. Only God can give to material things or to
outward signs the power of producing grace in the soul
(e) Although Christ instituted all seven sacraments before ascending into
heaven, He did not completely specify the matter and form of all the
sacraments as clearly and definitely as He did for Baptism and the
Eucharist. Christ gave His Church the power to make certain
determinations in the matter and form of some of the sacraments.
(a) Christ instituted seven sacraments to supply the various needs of the
spiritual life of man. Baptism is the sacrament of spiritual rebirth;
Confirmation is the sacrament of spiritual strength and maturity; the Holy
Eucharist gives us food for spiritual nourishment; Penance is the cure for
the spiritual sickness of sin committed after Baptism; Extreme Unction
strengthens us when dying; Holy Orders provides for the work of the
Church; and Matrimony provides for the social needs of the Church.
(b) Christ instituted the seven sacraments during His public ministry and
after His Resurrection before ascending into heaven.
306. From whom do the sacraments receive their power to give grace?
The sacraments receive their power to give grace from God, through
the merits of Jesus Christ.
(a) All grace, including the grace of the sacraments, comes from God
through Jesus Christ, who merited it for all men by His life, His passion,
and His death.
(b) God uses the seven sacraments as instruments to produce grace in our
souls.
(c) Christ willed that the sacraments be administered by men who act in
His name.
(d) Although faith and sanctity of life should characterize the minister,
they are not required for the valid administration of the sacraments. That
the minister validly confer the sacraments it is necessary:
first, that he have the power of administering them; second, that he have
jurisdiction for those sacraments which require it; third, that he perform all
the essential ceremonies; fourth, that he have the intention of at least
“doing what the Church does,” that is, of performing the sacred
ceremony that is usual among Catholics.
SCRIPTURE:
“They are justified freely by his grace through the redemption which is in
Christ Jesus, whom God has set forth as a propitiation by his blood
through faith” (Romans 3:24-25).
“Amen, amen, I say to you, unless you eat the flesh of the Son of Man, and
drink his blood, you shall not have life in you. He who eats my flesh and
drinks my blood has life everlasting and I will raise him up on the last
day” (John 6:54-55).
“Receive the Holy Spirit; whose sins you shall forgive, they are forgiven
them; and whose sins you shall retain, they are retained” (John 20:22-23).
“Now when the apostles in Jerusalem heard that Samaria had received the
word of God, they sent to them Peter and John. On their arrival they
prayed for them, that they might receive the Holy Spirit; for as yet he had
not come upon any of them, but they had only been baptized in the name
of the Lord Jesus. Then they laid their hands on them and they received the
Holy Spirit” (Acts 8:14-17).
“For all you who have been baptized into Christ, have put on Christ”
(Galatians 3:27).
“For this reason I admonish thee to stir up the grace of God which is in
thee by the laying of hands (II Timothy 1:6).
“He saved us through the bath of regeneration and renewal by the Holy
Spirit” (Titus 3:5).
The sacraments always give grace if we receive them with the right
dispositions.
(a) The sacraments, validly administered, always give grace to those who
receive them with the right dispositions, because the power of the
sacraments does not depend on anything human but solely on the will of
God as expressed by Christ when He instituted them. The right
dispositions do not produce the grace; they merely remove the obstacles
that would prevent the reception of grace. The right dispositions, or the
acts and habits required as conditions in order that the sacraments have
their effect, vary with the different sacraments.
“Therefore whoever eats this bread or drinks the cup of the Lord
unworthily, will be guilty of the body and the blood of the Lord” (I
Corinthians 11:27).
“Is anyone among you sick? Let him bring in the presbyters of the Church,
and let them pray over him, anointing him with oil in the name of the
Lord. And the prayer of faith will save the sick man, and the Lord will
raise him up, and if he be in sins, they shall be forgiven him” (James 5:14-
15).
310. Why are Baptism and Penance called sacraments of the dead?
(a) The sacraments of the dead increase sanctifying grace when they are
received by one who is already in the state of grace. Thus when a person
who has only venial sins to confess receives absolution in the sacrament
of Penance, he receives an increase of sanctifying grace.
SCRIPTURE:
“Amen, amen, I say to thee, unless a man be born again of water and the
Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God” (John 3:5).
312. What sin does one commit who knowingly receives a sacrament of
the living in mortal sin?
313. Which are the sacraments that can be received only once?
“Now it is God who is warrant for us and for you in Christ, who has
anointed us, who has also stamped us with his seal and has given us the
Spirit as a pledge in our hearts” (II Corinthians 1:21-22).
“And in him you too, when you had heard the word of truth, the good
news of your salvation, and believed in it, were sealed with the Holy
Spirit, . . . for a redemption of possession, for the praise of His Glory”
(Ephesians 1 13:14).
“And do not grieve the Holy Spirit of God, in whom you were sealed for
the day of redemption” (Ephesians 4:30).
Our Lord Himself instituted the seven sacraments for our sanctification,
but the Church has instituted various rites and ceremonies for the
administration of the sacraments, to manifest more clearly their
significance and to impress us more deeply with their holiness.
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTION. (Select the word or phrase in the parentheses which most exactly and
most completely fills out the sentence).
(1) The words used by the person who administers a sacrament are called
(the matter . . . the form . . . the character).
(3) Christ instituted all the sacraments (before He began His public
ministry . . . before His death . . . before His ascension).
(5) The sacramental grace of Confirmation helps us (to profess our faith
openly . . . to avoid sin in future . . . to be united more closely with God).
(6) A person who knowingly receives a sacrament of the living in mortal
sin commits a sin of (blasphemy . . . sacrilege . . . perjury).
(8) To receive the sacrament of Baptism validly a person having the use
of reason must have (faith . . . sorrow for sin . . . the intention of
receiving it).
(10) A person who receives a sacrament of the living in mortal sin but
unaware of his unworthiness will receive sanctifying grace if he has
(faith . . . the use of reason . . imperfect contrition).
(1) Why are external ceremonies, namely, the sacraments, properly used
for transmitting God’s grace to our souls?
(2) Explain to eighth grader Myrtle why Our Lord decided to suit His
means of grace to our human nature.
(3) Describe in your own words the sacramental grace of each of the
seven sacraments.
(4) In the commentary, references are made to an artist, his brush, and a
beautiful picture. What point is brought out by these references?
(8) Generally speaking, what is the disposition required in one who has
attained the use of reason, for the fruitful reception of the sacraments of
the dead?
(9) What is the essential disposition for a worthy reception of one of the
sacraments of the living?
(15) Father Tugwell enjoys a rare distinction. He has received during the
past 73 years all of the seven sacraments. Explain how that is possible.
– LESSON 24 –
Baptism
Baptism is the sacrament that gives our souls the new life of
sanctifying grace by which we become children of God and heirs of
heaven.
(b) The Baptism preached by Saint John did not have the same power as
the Baptism instituted by Christ. The Baptism instituted by Christ
directly produces grace; the Baptism preached by Saint John was
intended to arouse in souls sorrow for sin. The Baptism of St. John
prepared the way for the Baptism of Christ.
“All power in heaven and on earth has been given to me. Go, therefore,
and make disciples of all nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father,
and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit, teaching them to observe all that I
have commanded you; and behold, I am with you all days, even unto the
consummation of the world” (Matthew 28:18-20).
“And he preached, saying, ‘One mightier than I is coming after me, the
strap of whose sandals I am not worthy to stoop down and loose. I have
baptized you with water, but he will baptize you with the Holy Spirit’ ”
(Mark 1:6-8).
“Go into the whole world and preach the gospel to every creature. He who
believes and is baptized shall be saved, but he who does not believe shall
be condemned” (Mark 16:15-16).
“Amen, amen, I say to thee, unless a man be born again of water and the
Spirit, he cannot enter into the kingdom of God” (John 3:5).
“Repent and be baptized every one of you in the name of Jesus Christ for
the forgiveness of your sins; and you will receive the gift of the Holy
Spirit” (Acts 2:38).
“For whoever are led by the Spirit of God, they are the sons of God. Now
you have not received a spirit of bondage so as to be again in fear, but you
have received a spirit of adoption as sons, by virtue of which we cry ‘Abba
Father!’ The Spirit himself gives testimony to our spirit that we are sons of
God. But if we are sons, we are heirs also: heirs indeed of God and joint
heirs with Christ, provided, however, we suffer with him that we may also
be glorified with him” (Romans 8:14-17).
“But when the goodness and kindness of God our Savior appeared, then
not by reason of good works that we did ourselves, but according to his
mercy, he saved us through the bath of regeneration and renewal by the
Holy Spirit; whom he has abundantly poured out upon us through Jesus
Christ our Savior, in order that, justified by his grace, we may be heirs in
the hope of life everlasting” (Titus 3:4-7).
Baptism (picture)
The baptism of Jesus Christ, which is shown in the middle, demonstrates
the effect that baptism produces in us. When Our Lord was baptized by
St. John the Baptist in the waters of the Jordan, the voice of God the
Father was heard, saying, “This is my beloved Son, in whom I am well
pleased.” (St. Matthew 3:17) The Holy Spirit descended upon Him in the
form of a dove, and the heavens were opened. When we are baptized,
God adopts us as His children. The Holy Spirit descends upon us by His
grace, and we become heirs of the kingdom of heaven.
Baptism takes away original sin; and also actual sins and all the
punishment due to them, if the person baptized is guilty of any actual
sins and truly sorry for them.
(a) Baptism takes away both the eternal punishment of hell due to
unforgiven mortal sin, and the temporal punishment on earth or in
purgatory due to venial sin or to forgiven mortal sin.
(b) Though Baptism takes away original sin and restores sanctifying
grace to the soul, it does not take away all the consequences of original
sin. For example, it does not take away death, suffering, ignorance, and a
strong inclination to sin.
SCRIPTURE:
“Get up and be baptized and wash away thy sins, calling on his name”
(Acts 22:16).
“Do you not know that all we who have been baptized into Christ Jesus
have been baptized into his death? . . . for he who is dead is acquitted of
sin. But if we have died with Christ, we believe that we shall also live
together with Christ” (Romans 6:3, 7-8).
317. What are the effects of the character imprinted on the soul by
Baptism?
(a) Baptized persons remain members of the Church as long as they are
united to it by profession of the same faith and have not broken the bonds
of communion with it.
(b) All validly baptized persons are subjects of the Church, even if they are
not members. Hence they are obliged to obey the laws of the Church
unless exempted. If, however, they are invincibly ignorant of their
obligation to obey the laws of the Church, they do not sin by not obeying
them.
(d) A baptized person renounces Satan, his works, and his pomps, and
has the obligation of leading a Christian life by following Christ and by
obeying the legitimate pastors of the Church, especially the Roman
Pontiff.
SCRIPTURE:
The priest is the usual minister of Baptism, but if there is danger that
someone will die without Baptism, anyone else may and should
baptize.
(a) By the command of Christ, real water must be used in Baptism. Thus,
anything that is not water in the usual sense of the word cannot be used.
(b) In solemn Baptism, baptismal water, blessed for the purpose, must be
used under penalty of grave sin.
(e) In conferring Baptism by pouring, care must be taken that the water
flows over the skin of the person’s head, and that the words are clearly
and exactly spoken while the water is being poured, not before or after
the water is poured.
(f) In Baptism, the pouring of the water and the saying of the words must
be done by the same person.
“Now they who received his word were baptized, and there were added
that day about three thousand souls” (Acts 2:41).
“These in times past had been disobedient when the patience of God
waited in the days of Noah while the ark was building. In that ark a few,
that is, eight souls were saved through water. Its counterpart, Baptism, now
saves you also” (I Peter 3:20-21).
See Scripture, question 315, Matthew 28:18-20; John 3:5.
Baptism is necessary for the salvation of all men because Christ has
said: “Unless a man be born again of water and the Spirit, he cannot
enter into the kingdom of God.”
(a) Today, many of the sects, renewing the ancient heresy of the
Pelagians, reject Christ’s words concerning the necessity of Baptism and
seek to establish their own norms of salvation.
321. How can those be saved who through no fault of their own have
not received the sacrament of Baptism?
Those who through no fault of their own have not received the
sacrament of Baptism can be saved through what is called baptism of
blood or baptism of desire.
(a) Baptism of blood does not imprint a character on the soul, nor does it
give one the right to receive the other sacraments. It does, however,
confer grace and take away sin, original and actual, and the punishment
due to sin.
(b) Martyrdom is the suffering, from a supernatural motive, of death or a
mortal wound inflicted out of hatred for Christ, His religion, or a
Christian virtue. In sinners guilty of mortal sin, at least attrition is also
required in order to secure the effects of baptism of blood.
SCRIPTURE:
“He who finds his life will lose it, and he who loses his life for my sake,
will find it” (Matthew 10:39).
“For he who would save his life will lose it; but he who loses his life for
my sake and for the gospel’s sake will save it” (Mark 8:35).
“And I say to you, everyone who acknowledges me before men, him will
the Son of Man also acknowledge before the angels of God” (Luke 12:8).
“Greater love than this no one has, that one lay down his life for his
friends.” (John 15:13).
(a) Baptism of desire takes away all sin, original and actual, and the
eternal punishment due to sin. It does not, however, imprint a character
on the soul, nor does it necessarily take away all the temporal
punishment due to actual sins.
“And behold, a certain lawyer got up to test him, saying, ‘Master, what
must I do to gain eternal life?’ But he said to him, ‘What is written in the
Law? How dost thou read?’ He answered and said,
‘Thou shalt love the Lord thy God with thy whole heart,
and with thy whole soul,
And he said to him, ‘Thou hast answered rightly; do this and thou shalt
live’ ”(Luke 10:25-28).
“He who has my commandments and keeps them, he it is who loves me.
But he who loves me will be loved by my Father, and I will love him and
manifest myself to him” (John 14:21).
“If anyone love me, he will keep my word, and my Father will love him,
and we will come to him and make our abode with him” (John 14:23).
325. What sin do Catholic parents commit who put off for a long time,
or entirely neglect, the Baptism of their children?
Catholic parents who put off for a long time, or entirely neglect, the
Baptism of their children, commit a mortal sin.
(a) Godparents develop a spiritual relationship, not with each other, but
with their godchildren. Godparents cannot marry their godchildren
without a dispensation.
Only Catholics who know their faith and live up to the duties of their
religion should be chosen as godparents for Baptism.
(b) Non-Catholics cannot be godparents, nor can the father, the mother,
the husband, or the wife of the person to be baptized.
Our Lord Himself received a baptism from St. John the Baptist, but this
ceremony was not a sacrament. It was only a foreshadowing of the
sacrament. However, it was probably about this time that Our Saviour
instituted the sacrament; and perhaps administered it to the apostles with
His own hands. At any rate, they must have been baptized before the Last
Supper, for they then became priests, and the character of the priesthood
can be given only to one who possesses the character of Baptism. Before
His Ascension into heaven Christ deputed the apostles to go and baptize
all men; and on Pentecost Sunday the apostles began the task, telling
those who heard the Gospel and were converted: “Repent and be
baptized every one of you in the name of Jesus Christ for the forgiveness
of your sins; and you will receive the gift of the Holy Spirit” (Acts, 2,
38). As the apostles went to various lands and made converts, they
announced the reception of Baptism as the chief condition of becoming a
follower of Christ and a member of His Church. In the words of St. Paul:
“All you who have been baptized into Christ, have put on Christ” (Gal. 3,
27) . . . “We were all baptized into one body” (I Cor. 12, 13).
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the following statements as either true or false. The
correct answers can be found in previous portions of this lesson).
(2) Baptism takes away all the temporal punishment due to actual sins.
(3) A person who bears the character of Baptism on his soul is subject to
the laws of the Church, whether he is a Catholic or not.
(4) A person who is not himself baptized cannot confer the sacrament of
Baptism.
(8) Godparents at the same baptism cannot marry each other without a
special dispensation.
(10) An infant in danger of death may be baptized even against the will
of its parents.
(1) What are the words of Our Lord commanding the reception of the
sacrament of Baptism? Did He give this command before Holy Week,
during it, or afterwards?
(2) Terence, an infant, has just been baptized by Father Tracy. What has
Baptism given his soul?
(3) Who baptized Our Lord? Was that baptism a sacrament or a mere
ceremony? Did that baptism give grace of itself?
(5) Warren and Sigismund are eighteen years old and have about an equal
amount of guilt on their souls as the result of many mortal and venial
sins. Both receive a sacrament of the dead, –Warren, Baptism;
Sigismund, Penance. Warren died immediately after his Baptism this
morning. In another city, almost at the same hour, Sigismund died of a
heart attack in the confessional just as the priest completed the words of
absolution. Did Warren and Sigismund both enter heaven immediately?
Did one or both of them go to purgatory? Explain your answer.
(6) This morning, at the request of the child’s Anglican parents, Dr. Saul,
a Jewish doctor, baptized a frail, new-born infant boy. Doctor Saul does
not believe in Christian baptism, but he does what the parents ask him to
do, pours the water correctly, and says the words of Baptism accurately.
The child is baptized David, the Jewish doctor’s first name. Now is the
infant David subject to the laws of the Catholic Church, or to the laws of
the Anglican church, or to the laws of the synagogue? Why?
(9) The Holy Innocents martyred by cruel Herod shortly after Jesus was
born are honored by the Church as saints. Did some priest baptize them
before they died? How was original sin removed from their souls?
(11) Where now are the countless millions of infants who have died
without Baptism? Are they happy or unhappy?
(12) Estelle, in the eighth grade of St. Venantius’ school, has a very
healthy new baby sister now six weeks old. She is to be baptized Joan.
Her parents are waiting for the godparents to come up from South
America three months from now. Estelle wants to know if the delay in
Joan’s Baptism is justified. Tell her, and add a reason to your reply.
(b) We are not certain from Sacred Scripture of the exact time and
circumstances of the institution of Confirmation. We do know, however,
that Christ instituted the sacrament before He ascended into heaven,
because it is clearly evident in the New Testament that the apostles
administered this sacrament.
“ ‘He who believes in me, as the Scripture says,’ “From within him there
shall flow rivers of living water.’ ” He said this, however, of the Spirit
whom they who believed in him were to receive; for the Spirit had not yet
been given, since Jesus had not yet been glorified” (John 7:38-39).
“But I speak the truth to you; it is expedient for you that I depart. For if I
do not go, the Advocate will not come to you; but if I go, I will send him
to you” (John 16:7).
“And when the days of Pentecost were drawing to a close, they were all
together in one place. And suddenly there came a sound from heaven, as of
a violent wind blowing, and it filled the whole house where they were
sitting. And there appeared to them parted tongues as of fire, which settled
upon each of them. And they were all filled with the Holy Spirit and began
to speak in foreign tongues, even as the Holy Spirit prompted them to
speak” (Acts 2:1-4).
“Now when the apostles in Jerusalem heard that Samaria had received the
word of God, they sent to them Peter and John. On their arrival they
prayed for them, that they might receive the Holy Spirit; for as yet he had
not come upon any of them, but they had only been baptized in the name
of the Lord Jesus” (Acts 8:14-16).
“On hearing this they were baptized in the name of the Lord Jesus; and
when Paul laid his hands on them, the Holy Spirit came upon them, and
they began to speak in tongues and to prophesy” (Acts 19:5-6).
The bishop extends his hands over those who are to be confirmed,
prays that they may receive the Holy Ghost, and, while laying his
hand on the head of each person, anoints the forehead with holy
chrism in the form of a cross.
333. What does the bishop say in anointing the person he confirms?
(a) The words, “I sign thee with the sign of the cross,” designate the
character by which the confirmed person becomes a soldier of Christ.
The words, “I confirm thee,” etc., designate the gift of strength received
in this sacrament.
Holy chrism is a mixture of olive oil and balm, blessed by the bishop
on Holy Thursday.
(a) Olive oil was formerly used to condition and strengthen the limbs of
athletes. The olive oil in holy chrism signifies the strengthening grace of
the Holy Spirit received in the sacrament.
335. What does the anointing of the forehead with chrism in the form
of a cross signify?
336. Why does the bishop give the person he confirms a slight blow on
the cheek?
The bishop gives the person he confirms a slight blow on the cheek to
remind him that he must be ready to suffer everything, even death,
for the sake of Christ.
See Scripture, question 315, Acts 2:38; question 330, Acts 8:14-16; Acts
19:5-6.
(e) The candidate for Confirmation should have a sponsor of his own sex
who was not his godparent in Baptism. The sponsor must be a baptized
Catholic who is confirmed. The other conditions of sponsorship are in
general the same as those for godparents in Baptism.
In the middle, St. Peter and St. John are bestowing confirmation upon the
faithful of Samaria. They impose their hands upon them and pray for
them that they might receive the Holy Spirit. On the right of St. Peter,
approaching from a distance, is a man who is holding a purse in his hand.
This is Simon the Magician, who came to ask the Apostle to sell the
power to give the Holy Spirit. St. Peter reproved him severely for
wanting to buy the gift of God with money.
The Holy Spirit is shown hovering above those who are confirmed and
pouring out all His gifts upon them.
In the beginning, this sacrament may have been conferred only by the
laying on of hands; but at any rate, anointing was in use in the third or
fourth century. Even today there are some differences in the manner of
confirming between the Latin Church and the Oriental churches. Thus, in
the former only one anointing is given, on the forehead, whereas in the
latter the anointing is given on several parts of the body. Moreover, in the
Oriental rites infants are usually confirmed immediately after Baptism,
whereas in the Latin Church it is considered preferable to wait until
children have reached the use of reason.
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTIONS. (Select the word or phrase in each parenthesis which most exactly
and most completely fills out the sentence).
(4) The bishop gives the person confirmed a light blow on the cheek to
remind him (that he deserves punishment for his sins . . . that he must be
ready to suffer everything for the sake of Christ . . . that he must be
obedient to the authorities of the Church).
(5) The hands of a man being ordained a priest are anointed with (oil of
catechumens . . . holy chrism . . . oil of the sick).
(6) The hands of a priest being consecrated a bishop are anointed with
(oil of catechumens . . . holy chrism . . . oil of the sick).
(7) The head of a person who has just been baptized is anointed with (oil
of catechumens . . . holy chrism . . . oil of the sick).
(10) In Confirmation a person should have (one sponsor of the same sex .
. . two sponsors . . . one sponsor of the opposite sex.)
(1) Bella, a prospective convert to our faith, would like to know who are
our spiritual enemies referred to in this lesson. Write her three or four
sentences of explanation.
(2) Nina, in the fifth grade got a letter yesterday from her brother, a
missionary priest in the East Indies. Among other news items, Nina’s
brother wrote that he had confirmed 175 natives on his last missionary
tour. Nina is studying Catechism No. 2, and it seems to her that only a
bishop can give Confirmation. But her brother, Pius, is just a missionary
priest, and not a bishop. Please clear up Nina’s difficulty.
(3) On Holy Thursday afternoon Fr. Cletus informed Andrew, one of the
altar-boys, that he was driving to the cathedral, forty miles distant, to get
the holy oils. Andrew asked why Fr. Cletus could not wait until after
Easter Sunday, since the roads were covered with snow. What answer do
you think Fr. Cletus gave?
(5) Six months ago, Bishop James, for the first time in his life, received
the last rites of the Church. He has now recovered his health. How many
of the sacred oils has he received up to now? In which Sacraments were
they used? Have any of these oils been used in more than one
Sacrament? Explain.
(6) Little Stephen, two years old, is very sick, and the doctor says that he
is sure to die within several days. His good Catholic parents would like to
have Stephen confirmed before his death, so that he may have additional
glory in heaven. But it is impossible to bring the sick child to the Bishop,
whose residence is more than a hundred miles distant; and it would be
unreasonable to expect the Bishop to make the long journey. Can you tell
Stephen’s parents how they can procure Confirmation for their little boy
through an extraordinary privilege granted by Pope Pius XII, which
began to be effective on January 1, 1947?
(8) Dominic, a Catholic boy in the sixth grade of public school receives
the Sacrament of Confirmation. But after that he stops going to Sunday
School and to religious instructions. Cajetan, a Catholic boy in the same
grade, also receives Confirmation, but continues to attend religious
instruction classes. Whose action do you approve? Why?
(9) Jolanda, a girl in the same class, also receives Confirmation. She tells
Walberga she doesn’t have to go to Sunday School anymore because she
is confirmed. Walberga disagrees with her and says that Jolanda should
go to the Sunday School and religious instruction classes at least until she
graduates from Junior High School. What do you think of Walberga’s
suggestion? What is your opinion of Jolanda’s statement?
(10) Lawrence, twelve years of age, was very sick when Confirmation
was administered in his parish and hence could not receive it. In the
course of the next few years his parents changed their abode several
times, so that it was not until Lawrence was eighteen years old that he
heard the announcement of an approaching Confirmation in his parish
church. Lawrence is now embarrassed at the thought of receiving
Confirmation with little boys and girls, for he is a tall, robust young man.
Will he commit a mortal sin if he refuses to be confirmed? What
arguments can you give him to induce him to put aside his fears?
(13) Hyacinth and his sister Lydia, confirmed ten years ago, are visiting
some non-Catholic friends on a day of fast and abstinence. Neither of
them is lawfully excused from its observance. Can the sacrament of
Confirmation help them as they are put to the test? How? Both of them
ate the fried chicken that was served. Account for their failure.
(15) Alexander has great devotion to the Holy Ghost. Frequently during
the day he utters aspirations such as these: “Come, Holy Ghost!” “God,
the Holy Ghost, have mercy on me!” Among his daily Mass prayers he
has the following neatly written on a piece of paper: “O Holy Spirit,
sweet Guest of my soul, remain with me, and grant that I may ever
remain with Thee!” Would you encourage Alexander to continue these
devotional practices. For what reason?
– LESSON 26 –
The Holy Eucharist
(a) The whole Christ is really, truly, and substantially present in the Holy
Eucharist. We use the words “really, truly, and substantially” to describe
Christ’s presence in the Holy Eucharist in order to distinguish Our Lord’s
teaching from that of mere men who falsely teach that the Holy Eucharist
is only a sign or figure of Christ, or that He is present only by His power.
(b) All Christians, with but few minor exceptions, held the true doctrine
of the Real Presence from the time of Christ until the Protestant
Revolution in the sixteenth century.
Christ instituted the Holy Eucharist at the Last Supper, the night
before He died.
(a) About a year before the Last Supper Our Lord promised to give us the
Holy Eucharist. This promise is related in the sixth chapter of the Gospel
according to Saint John. The fulfillment of this promise took place at the
Last Supper.
SCRIPTURE:
I: The Promise
“ ‘I am the bread of life. Your fathers ate the manna in the desert, and have
died. This is the bread that comes down from heaven, so that if anyone eat
of it he will not die. I am the living bread that has come down from
heaven. If anyone eat of this bread he shall live forever; and the bread that
I will give is my flesh for the life of the world.’
“The Jews on that account argued with one another, saying, ‘How can this
man give us his flesh to eat?’
“Jesus therefore said to them, ‘Amen, amen, I say to you, unless you eat
the flesh of the Son of Man, and drink his blood, you shall not have life in
you. He who eats my flesh and drinks my blood has life everlasting and I
will raise him up on the last day. For my flesh is food indeed, and my
blood is drink indeed. He who eats my flesh, and drinks my blood, abides
in me and I in him. As the living Father has sent me, and as I live because
of the Father, so he who eats me, he also shall live because of me. This is
the bread that has come down from heaven; not as your fathers ate the
manna, and died. He who eats this bread shall live forever’ ” (John 6:48-
59).
“And while they were at supper, Jesus took bread, and blessed and broke,
and gave it to his disciples, and said, ‘Take and eat; this is my body.’ And
taking a cup, he gave thanks and gave it to them, saying, ‘All of you drink
of this; for this is my blood of the new covenant, which is being shed for
many unto the forgiveness of sins’ ”(Matthew 26:26-28).
“And while they were eating, Jesus took bread, and blessing it, he broke
and gave it to them, and said, ‘Take; this is my body.’ And taking a cup
and giving thanks, he gave it to them, and they all drank of it; and he said
to them, ‘This is my blood of the new covenant, which is being shed for
many’ ” (Mark 14:22-24).
“And having taken bread, he gave thanks and broke, and gave it to them,
saying, ‘This is my body, which is being given for you; do this in
remembrance of me.’ In like manner he took also the cup after the supper,
saying, ‘This cup is the new covenant in my blood, which shall be shed for
you’ ” (Luke 22:19-20).
“For I myself have received from the Lord (what I also delivered to you),
that the Lord Jesus, on the night in which he was betrayed, took bread, and
giving thanks broke, and said, ‘This is my body which shall be given up
for you; do this in remembrance of me.’ In like manner also the cup, after
he had supped, saying, ‘This cup is the new covenant in my blood; do this
as often as you drink it, in remembrance of me. For as often as you shall
eat this bread and drink the cup, you proclaim the death of the Lord, until
he comes.’ Therefore whoever eats this bread or drinks the cup of the Lord
unworthily, will be guilty of the body and the blood of the Lord. But let a
man prove himself, and so let him eat of that bread and drink of the cup;
for he who eats and drinks unworthily, without distinguishing the body,
eats and drinks judgment to himself” (I Corinthians 11:23-29).
345. Who were present when Our Lord instituted the Holy Eucharist?
When Our Lord instituted the Holy Eucharist the apostles were
present.
SCRIPTURE:
“Now when evening arrived, he reclined at table with the twelve disciples”
(Matthew 26:20).
“Now when evening arrived, he came with the Twelve” (Mark 14:17).
“And when the hour had come, he reclined at table, and the twelve
apostles with him” (Luke 22:14).
347. What happened when Our Lord said: “This is My body . . . this is
My blood?”
When Our Lord said, “This is My body,” the entire substance of the
bread was changed into His body; and when He said, “This is My
blood,” the entire substance of the wine was changed into His blood.
(a) Christ could not have used clearer, more explicit words than “This is
My body.” He did not say, “This is a sign of My body.” or “This
represents My body,” but, “This is My body.” Catholics take Christ at His
word because He is the omnipotent God. On His word they know that the
Holy Eucharist is the body and blood of Christ.
SCRIPTURE:
348. Did anything of the bread and wine remain after their substance
had been changed into Our Lord’s body and blood?
After the substance of the bread and wine had been changed into
Our Lord’s body and blood, there remained only the appearances of
bread and wine.
(a) Because the appearances of bread and wine remain in the Holy
Eucharist, we cannot see Christ with our bodily eyes in this sacrament.
We do see Him, however, with the eyes of faith. Our bodily eyes,
moreover, do not deceive us when they see the appearances of bread and
wine, for these appearances really remain after the Consecration of the
Mass.
350. What is the change of the entire substance of the bread and wine
into the body and blood of Christ called?
The change of the entire substance of the bread and wine into the
body and blood of Christ is called Transubstantiation.
351. Is Jesus Christ whole and entire both under the appearances of
bread and under the appearances of wine?
Jesus Christ is whole and entire both under the appearances of bread
and under the appearances of wine.
(a) We know that Christ is whole and entire under both appearances
because, “Christ having risen from the dead, dies now no more” (Romans
6:9). Because Christ cannot die, His blood must remain united always to
His body, and His soul to both. The divinity of Christ, moreover, always
remains united to His body and blood and soul because He is God made
man.
(b) The whole Christ is present under each part of the sacred appearances
and remains present as long as the sacred appearances remain.
SCRIPTURE:
352. How was Our Lord able to change bread and wine into His body
and blood?
Our Lord was able to change bread and wine into His body and
blood by His almighty power.
(a) God, who created all things from nothing, who fed the five thousand
with five loaves, who changed water into wine instantaneously, who
raised the dead to life, can change bread and wine into the body and
blood of Christ. Although the Holy Eucharist is a great mystery, and
consequently beyond human understanding, the principles of sound
reason can show that this great gift is not impossible by the power of
God.
SCRIPTURE:
“And looking upon them, Jesus said to them, ‘With men this is impossible,
but with God all things are possible’ ” (Matthew 19:26). “All power in
heaven and on earth has been given to me” (Matthew 28:18).
353. Does this change of bread and wine into the body and blood of
Christ continue to be made in the Church?
This change of bread and wine into the body and blood of Christ
continues to be made in the Church by Jesus Christ, through the
ministry of His priests.
(a) Only ordained priests have the power of changing bread and wine into
the body and blood of Christ. When they consecrate, they act in the
person of Christ, through the power received in the sacrament of Holy
Orders.
SCRIPTURE:
354. When did Christ give His priests the power to change bread and
wine into His body and blood?
Christ gave His priests the power to change bread and wine into His
body and blood when He made the apostles priests at the Last
Supper by saying to them: “Do this in remembrance of Me.”
355. How do priests exercise their power to change bread and wine
into the body and blood of Christ?
Priests exercise their power to change bread and wine into the body
and blood of Christ by repeating at the Consecration of the Mass the
words of Christ: “This is My body . . . this is My blood.”
356. Why does Christ give us His own body and blood in the Holy
Eucharist?
Christ gives us His own body and blood in the Holy Eucharist: first, to
be offered as a sacrifice commemorating and renewing for all time
the sacrifice of the cross; second, to be received by the faithful in Holy
Communion; third, to remain ever on our altars as the proof of His
love for us, and to be worshiped by us.
STUDY HELPS
A. COLUMN SELECTION. (Join correctly the parts of the sentences in Columns I and II, by
placing the right key letter in the proper parenthesis).
Column I
(7) Christ gave His priests the power to change bread and wine into His
body and blood when He said (. .).
(8) The priest uses his power to change bread into the body of Christ
when he says (. .).
(9) We joyfully thank Our Saviour for the gift of the Blessed Sacrament
(. .).
Column II
(1) Gertrude, on her way to the children’s Mass, at which she intends to
receive Holy Communion, passes a Protestant Church. The bulletin board
in front of the church advertises the Lord’s Supper service at 11:00 a.m.
every Sunday morning. Is Gertrude on her way to “The Lord’s Supper”
in her church?
(3) Hubert notices that the Church celebrates two special feasts of the
Blessed Sacrament during the year, and neither of them falls on a Sunday,
What are those feasts, and what do they commemorate? On what day of
the week do they occur? Why?
(6) Gladys would like to know when the apostles received their First
Holy Communion.
(7) At the Consecration in the Mass, the priest leans on the altar and
speaks certain words over the bread in his hands and again over the wine
in the chalice he is holding; next, he bends his right knee to the ground,
then elevates, first the Host, and next the Chalice, and finally repeats the
genuflection. Which of the above enumerated actions are the most
important? Why?
(8) Lucille, a cultured little pagan girl, whose parents are not
churchgoers, learned from Joyce, her Catholic playmate, that Our Lord is
present within our tabernacles. She seems pleased with her newly
acquired knowledge, but is a bit mystified to know how Our Lord can be
in thousands of tabernacles throughout the United States, and all over the
world at one and the same time. Joyce tells Lucille that we cannot
understand how that can be; we take Our Lord’s word for it that it is so;
but she gives an illustration from the modern wonders of worldwide
hookups over the radio and television that helps Lucille in her difficulty.
How would you express the same illustration?
(9) Bernard has the habit of burying his head in his left arm at the
elevations in the Mass, while he thumps his breast resoundingly with his
right fist as the altar-boy rings the bells. Make a comment of not less than
15 words and not more than 30 on this particular habit of Bernard.
(10) Does Our Lord ask us to understand HOW He can be present in the
Blessed Sacrament, or to believe THAT He is present therein? Explain
your answer in three or four sentences.
(13) What is the center of Catholic worship, the heart of Catholic life?
(14) Name three ways of showing appreciation for the immense treasure
we have in the Blessed Sacrament.
(15) Write out from memory three ejaculations honoring Our Lord in the
Blessed Sacrament. Say each of them ten times–slowly and thoughtfully–
in your next thanksgiving after Communion.
– LESSON 27 –
The Sacrifice of the Mass
The Mass is the Sacrifice of the New Law in which Christ, through
the ministry of the priest, offers Himself to God in an unbloody
manner under the appearances of bread and wine.
(a) The name “Mass” comes from the Latin word Missa meaning
dismissal. In the early days of the Church the catechumens were asked to
leave after the gospel and sermon were finished. The faithful, however,
remained until they were dismissed after the sacrifice was completed.
Then, as now, this was done by saying or singing Ite Missa Est. In the
course of time the word Missa, or dismissal, was used to designate the
entire sacrifice.
SCRIPTURE:
“I have no pleasure in you, saith the Lord of hosts: and I will not receive a
gift of your hand. For from the rising of the sun even to the going down,
my name is great among the Gentiles: and in every place there is sacrifice
and there is offered to my name a clean oblation” (Malachias 1:10-11).
(a) By his very nature man wants to adore and thank his Creator. Men
mistaken at times about the nature of the true God have offered false
worship; but they have always recognized the obligation of adoring the
Supreme Being. As far back as the history of man is recorded, there is
evidence that men acknowledged their dependence on the Supreme
Being by offering sacrifices to Him.
(b) Before the coming of Christ, sacrifices were offered to God in many
different ways. The patriarchs and Jewish priests at the command of God
offered fruits, wine, or animals as victims. Cain, for example, offered
fruits; Abel offered some sheep of his flock; Melchisedech offered bread
and wine. The destruction of these offerings removed them from man’s
use and thereby signified that God is the Supreme Lord and Master of the
entire created universe and that man is wholly dependent upon Him for
everything. Sacrifice, therefore, is the most perfect way for man to
worship God.
(c) All these different sacrifices of the Old Law were only figures of the
sacrifice that Christ was to make of Himself. His offering of Himself on
the cross was the greatest sacrifice ever offered to God. All the sacrifices
of the Old Law derived their efficacy, or value, from the sacrifice which
Christ was to offer on the cross.
The principal priest in every Mass is Jesus Christ, who offers to His
heavenly Father, through the ministry of His ordained priest, His
body and blood which were sacrificed on the cross.
(a) The Mass is the same sacrifice as the sacrifice of the cross. It is now,
in the New Law, the sacrifice that is acceptable to God.
360. Why is the Mass the same sacrifice as the sacrifice of the cross?
The Mass is the same sacrifice as the sacrifice of the cross because in
the Mass the victim is the same, and the principal priest is the same,
Jesus Christ.
(b) The most important part of the Mass is the Consecration. In the
Consecration bread and wine are changed into the body and blood of
Christ, who then is really present on the altar. Through the priest He
offers Himself to God in commemoration of His death on the cross.
(c) The other most important parts of the Mass are the Offertory and the
Communion. In the Offertory the priest offers to God the bread and wine
that will be changed into the body and blood of Christ. In the
Communion the priest and the people receive the body and blood of Our
Lord under the appearances of bread and wine.
SCRIPTURE:
“And Jesus cried out with a loud voice and said, ‘Father, into thy hands I
commend my spirit.’ And having said this, he expired” (Luke 23:46).
361. What are the purposes for which the Mass is offered?
The purposes for which the Mass is offered are: first, to adore God as
our Creator and Lord; second, to thank God for His many favors; third,
to ask God to bestow His blessings on all men; fourth, to satisfy the
justice of God for the sins committed against Him.
(a) In every Mass adoration, praise and thanksgiving are given to God
and reparation is made to Him.
(b) Besides the purpose for which the Mass is offered and the effects that
it produces, there are also special fruits of the Mass. The fruits of the
Mass are the blessings that God bestows through the Mass upon the
celebrant, upon those who serve or assist at it, upon the person or persons
for whom it is offered, and also upon all mankind, especially the
members of the Church and the souls in purgatory.
362. Is there any difference between the sacrifice of the cross and the
Sacrifice of the Mass?
(a) On the cross Christ was offered in a bloody manner; in the Mass He is
offered in an unbloody manner. On the cross Christ alone offered
Himself directly; in the Mass He offers Himself through the priest, who
is the secondary but true minister, dependent upon Christ.
(b) On the cross Christ suffered and died; in the Mass He can no longer
suffer or die. On the cross He paid the price of our redemption; in the
Mass He applies to us the merits of His Sacrifice on the cross.
(c) There are various kinds of Masses: first, a Solemn Mass, which is
celebrated by a priest who is immediately assisted by a deacon and a sub-
deacon; second, a High Mass, in which the celebrating priest sings certain
parts of the Mass; third, a Low Mass, in which the priest reads all the parts
of the Mass: fourth, a Pontifical Mass, which is celebrated by a bishop
and by certain other prelates.
(d) Some prayers make up the “Ordinary” of the Mass and are practically
always the same; others make up the “Proper” of the Mass and differ
according to the seasons and the feasts of the ecclesiastical calendar.
(f) The priest wears the following vestments during Mass: first, the amice,
a white linen cloth placed over the shoulders and about the neck; second,
the alb, a long white linen garment covering the body; third, the cincture, a
cord tied about the waist; fourth, the maniple, a short band of cloth
hanging from the left arm; fifth, the stole, a long narrow band of cloth
worn over the shoulders and crossed in front of the body; and sixth, the
chasuble, an outer garment covering the greater part of the body.
These vestments have an ancient origin, and most of them resemble the
garments worn by the apostles.
(g) The colors of the outer vestments worn during Mass are: white, which
signifies purity of soul and holiness; red, which signifies the shedding of
blood and burning love; green, which signifies hope; violet, which
signifies penance; black, which signifies mourning; rose, which signifies
joy in the midst of penance; and gold, which is used on solemn occasions
in place of white, red, or green vestments.
White vestments are worn on feasts of Our Lord, the Blessed Virgin,
saints who were not martyrs, and during the Easter season; red is used on
the feasts of the Holy Ghost, the passion of Our Lord, and martyrs; green
is used on the Sundays outside of Advent, Lent, and the Christmas and
Easter season; violet is worn in Lent, Advent, and on penitential days;
black is worn in Masses for the dead; rose may be used instead of violet
on the third Sunday of Advent and on the fourth Sunday of Lent.
(h) Some of the important articles used during Mass are: the chalice, or
gold-lined cup, in which the wine is consecrated; the paten, or gold-
covered plate, on which the host is placed; the purificator, or cloth, for
wiping the chalice; the pall, or linen-covered card, used to cover the
chalice; the corporal, or square linen cloth, on which the host is placed;
the missal, or book, from which the priest reads the prayers of the Mass;
the beeswax candles; the crucifix over the altar; and the three linen cloths
that cover the altar.
SCRIPTURE:
“For we know that Christ, having risen from the dead, dies now no more,
death shall no longer have dominion over him. For the death that he died,
he died to sin once for all, but the life that he lives, he lives unto God”
(Romans 6:9-10).
“For Jesus has not entered into a Holies made by hands, a mere copy of the
true, but into heaven itself, to appear now before the face of God on our
behalf; nor yet has he entered to offer himself often, as the high priest
enters into the Holies year after year with blood not his own; for in that
case he must have suffered often since the beginning of the world”
(Hebrews 9:24-26).
“Because Christ also died once for sins, the Just for the unjust, that he
might bring us to God. Put to death indeed in the flesh, he was brought to
life in the spirit” (I Peter 3:18).
(a) There are different ways of assisting at Mass devoutly: using the
missal to follow the priest, saying the Mass prayers as found in a prayer
book, reciting the Rosary, or singing hymns.
(a) It is evident from the words of the priest himself that we do unite with
him in offering up the Holy Sacrifice. After the Offertory he turns to the
people and says: “Pray, brethren, that my sacrifice and yours may be
acceptable to God the Father Almighty.” In the second commemoration
of the Canon of the Mass he says: “Remember, O Lord, Thy servants . . .
, for whom we offer, or who offer up to Thee, this sacrifice of praise . . .
.”
Our divine Saviour said the first Mass, at the Last Supper, the night
before He died.
There are many references to sacrifices in the Old Testament. Cain and
Abel, the sons of our first parents offered sacrifices, the former of the
fruits of the earth, the latter some of the sheep of his flock. Noah offered
a sacrifice on leaving the Ark. Melchisedech offered a sacrifice of bread
and wine on meeting Abraham. God Himself prescribed many forms of
sacrifice for the Jewish people. However, all these sacrifices were but
preparations for the great sacrifice that was to be offered on Calvary, the
sacrifice of Jesus Christ, the sacrifice of which He was both priest and
victim. As St. Paul says: “At the end of the ages. He has appeared for the
destruction of sin by the sacrifice of Himself” (Hebr., 9, 26) The sacrifice
of Himself which Our Lord offered was of infinite worth, because of the
infinite dignity of the priest and victim, and so it gave infinite praise and
adoration to God, and was capable of satisfying for the sins of all
mankind.
However, Our Lord wished that the sacrifice of Calvary should not be
limited to one place or one time. He willed that all men should have an
opportunity of assisting at the sacrifice of His body and blood. And so,
on the night before His death He established the Sacrifice of the Mass.
This was to be a renewal of Calvary, in the sense that the same body and
blood that were offered on the cross were to be offered again. There was
to be no new death of Our Saviour; but His death was to be represented
vividly by the twofold consecration of the bread into His body and the
wine into His blood, typifying the separation of body and blood that
actually took place on Calvary. This sacrifice was to apply to the souls of
men the merits and satisfaction which Our Saviour earned by His death.
It was this sacrifice, the Mass, which God through the prophet Malachias
announced, more than four centuries before Christ: “From the rising of
the sun even to the going down, my name is great among the Gentiles:
and in every place there is sacrifice, and there is offered to my name a
clean oblation” (Mal., 1, 11).
The Sacrifice of the Mass is therefore the greatest possible act of divine
worship. It is the only form of sacrifice now acceptable to God. The
power to offer Mass is the greatest power of the Catholic priest.
However, the members of the laity should remember that they too have a
share in the offering of this divine sacrifice. It is in their name that the
priest officiates; they offer the body and blood of Our Saviour to His
eternal Father through the hands of the priest. And the more fervently
they participate in the offering of the Mass, the more benefits they will
receive from this precious sacrifice by which the death of our Redeemer
on Calvary is daily represented and its benefits applied on thousands of
altars throughout the Catholic Church.
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the following statements as either true or false. The
correct answers will be found in the preceding portions of the lesson).
(1) The most important part of the sacrifice of the Mass is the
Communion.
(2) The measure of the fruits of the Mass depends especially on the
dispositions of those to whom they are given.
(5) In every Mass Our Lord gains new merit and satisfaction for us.
(6) The Mass is offered for the same purposes as the sacrifice of the
Cross.
(8) The pall is the linen cloth for wiping the chalice.
(3) Are modern religious sacrifices, other than the Mass, acceptable to
God? Explain your answer.
(5) Sum up in four words the purposes for which the Mass is offered.
(8) On the following days, what color of vestments does the priest wear
during Mass: December 8th and 25th, Ash Wednesday, Easter, Pentecost,
November 1st, November 2nd, March 17th, and August 15th?
(9) Name the liturgical articles the priest carries in his hands as he
approaches the altar to celebrate Mass.
(10) What is the name of the large book the priest uses in the celebration
of Mass? In what language is it written?
(11) When James assists at Mass he follows the priest, reading the
prayers from an English Missal. His brother John recites the rosary.
Which method do you think is preferable, and why?
(12) One Sunday morning Fr. John announces that the following Sunday
a bishop will celebrate a pontifical Mass. Explain what is meant.
(13) Explain in your own words, with examples, the difference between
the Ordinary and the Proper of the Mass.
(14) Was the first Mass celebrated on a Sunday morning? If not, when
was it celebrated? In what city? In what country? On what continent? By
whom? Was it celebrated in a church, a temple, a synagogue, or a private
dwelling?
– LESSON 28 –
Holy Communion
(a) Just as it is necessary to nourish our bodies with material food, so also
it is necessary to nourish our souls with spiritual food. Our Divine
Saviour so loved us that He gave us Himself in the sacrament of the Holy
Eucharist; He gave us His own body and blood as food for our souls.
(b) It is not necessary that we receive Our Lord’s body and blood under
the appearances of both bread and wine. Christ is entirely present under
the appearances of bread, and also entirely present under the appearances
of wine. Therefore, we receive Him whole and entire under the
appearances of bread alone or of wine alone.
“Jesus therefore said to them, ‘Amen, amen, I say to you, unless you eat
the flesh of the Son of Man, and drink his blood, you shall not have life in
you. He who eats my flesh and drinks my blood has life everlasting and I
will raise him up on the last day. For my flesh is food indeed, and my
blood is drink: indeed. He who eats my flesh, and drinks my blood, abides
in me: and I in him. As the living Father has sent me, and as I live because
of the Father, so he who eats me, he also shall live because of me. This is
the bread that has come down from heaven; not as your fathers ate the
manna, and died. He who eats this bread shall live forever (John 6:54-59).
“And they continued steadfastly in the teaching of the apostles and in the
communion of the breaking of the bread and in the prayers” (Acts 2:42).
See Scripture, question 344, Luke 22:19-20.
(a) Venial sin does not make us unworthy of receiving Holy Communion;
but it does prevent us from receiving the more abundant graces and
blessings which we would otherwise receive from Holy Communion.
SCRIPTURE:
“For I myself have received from the Lord (what I also delivered to you),
that the Lord Jesus, on the night in which he was betrayed, took bread, and
giving thanks broke, and said, ‘This is my body which shall be given up
for you; do this in remembrance of me.’ In like manner also the cup, after
he had supped, saying, ‘This cup is the new covenant in my blood; do this
as often as you drink it, in remembrance of me. For as often as you shall
eat this bread and drink the cup, you proclaim the death of the Lord, until
he comes.’
Therefore whoever eats this bread or drinks the cup of the Lord
unworthily, will be guilty of the body and the blood of the Lord. But let a
man prove himself, and so let him eat of that bread and drink of the cup;
for he who eats and drinks unworthily, without distinguishing the body,
eats and drinks judgment to himself. This is why many among you are
infirm and weak, and many sleep. But if we judged ourselves, we should
not thus be judged. But when we are judged, we are being chastised by the
Lord that we may not be condemned with this world. Wherefore, my
brethren, when you come together to eat, wait for one another. If anyone is
hungry, let him eat at home, lest you come together unto judgment. The
rest I shall set in order when I come” (I Corinthians 11:23-34).
370. Does the Church now command us to fast from midnight before
Holy Communion?
The Church does not now command us to fast from midnight before
Holy Communion, as it did formerly. The laws enacted by Pope Pius
XII now regulate this matter by the number of hours we must fast.
(a) For many centuries the Church commanded a strict fast from
midnight before one could receive Holy Communion. However, in 1953
Pope Pius XII introduced a much more lenient form of fasting before
Holy Communion, and in 1957 the same Pope granted greater
concessions, in order to give Catholics an opportunity to receive Holy
Communion more frequently.
(b) Pope Pius XII also allowed the celebration of afternoon and evening
Masses every day, when the spiritual good of a considerable number of
the faithful requires it. It is the right of the bishop of each diocese to
decide when such Masses may be offered in his diocese.
(a) Ordinarily the danger of death comes from sickness or injury. But it is
not necessary that a person be in danger of death from sickness in order
to receive Holy Communion without fasting. The danger of death may
come from some other cause. A soldier, for example, who is about, to go
into battle or a person about to be executed may receive Holy
Communion without fasting.
372. What are the laws enacted by Pope Pius XII regarding the fast
required before Holy Communion?
The laws enacted by Pope Pius XII regarding the fast required
before Holy Communion are the following:
3. All Catholics may receive Holy Communion after fasting three hours
from food and alcoholic drinks and one hour from non-alcoholic drinks.
This applies to Holy Communion at midnight Mass as well as at Masses
celebrated in the morning, afternoon or evening. A priest’s permission is
not necessary.
(c) When actually receiving Communion we should raise the head and
extend the tongue. We should swallow the sacred host as soon as
possible, not allowing it to dissolve in the mouth.
SCRIPTURE:
“Lord, I am not worthy that thou shouldst come under my roof; but only
say the word, and my servant will be healed” (Matthew 8:8).
“Behold, the lamb of God, who takes away the sin of the world” (John
1:29).
See Scripture, question 366, John 6:54-59.
“Ask, and it shall be given you; seek, and you shall find; knock, and it
shall be opened to you. For everyone who asks, receives; and he who
seeks, finds; and to him who knocks, it shall be opened. Or what man is
there among you, who, if his son asks him for a loaf, will hand him a
stone; or if he asks for a fish, will hand him a serpent? Therefore, if you,
evil as you are, know how to give good gifts to your children, how much
more will your Father in heaven give good things to those who ask him!”
(Matthew 7:7-11).
“And they continued steadfastly in the teaching of the apostles and in the
communion of the breaking of the bread and in the prayers” (Acts 2:42).
See Scripture, question 344, Luke 22:19-20; question 366, John 6:54-59.
378. How should we show our gratitude to Our Lord for remaining
always on our altars in the Holy Eucharist?
Until comparatively recent times, daily Communion was very rare in the
Church. However, children were generally not admitted to their First
Communion until they were about ten years old. But a great and holy
Pope, Pius X, who ruled the Church from 1903 to 1914, urgently invited
all Catholics to partake of the Divine Banquet frequently, even daily,
telling them that the only necessary conditions are the state of grace and
a right intention. He also laid down the law that children are to be
admitted to Holy Communion as soon as they reach the age of reason,
when they are about seven years old. Certainly Our Lord must be pleased
that through the efforts of this great Pope He has the opportunity of
coming so frequently into the hearts of His faithful, especially into the
innocent hearts of little children.
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTION. (Select the word or phrase in each parenthesis which most exactly and
most completely fills out the sentence.)
(1) A person who is sick though not confined to bed can receive Holy
Communion after taking (food . . . medicine) or (wine . . . non-alcoholic
liquids).
(2) One who is to receive Holy Communion at the midnight Mass must
fast (from midnight . . . 9 P. M. . . .three hours before receiving).
(3) We are bound under pain of mortal sin to receive Holy Communion
(once a year at any time . . . at Christmas . . . once a year in the Easter
season).
(7) Venial sins (do not make us unworthy of Holy Communion but
prevent us from receiving more abundant graces . . . make us unworthy
of Holy Communion . . . do not affect the measure of grace we receive).
(1) Abie, a little Jewish fellow, wants you to explain what his Catholic
friend Jude meant when he refused to eat a piece of candy this morning
on his way to church: “I can’t; I’m going to Communion.” Tell Abie why
Jude could not eat candy and what “going to Communion” is.
(4) Irene is up at 6:00 o’clock, takes a cup of coffee and a buttered role
for breakfast, then goes to the church at 8:00 o’clock. Irene goes to
confession. She remains for the 9:00 o’clock Mass, during which she
goes to Holy Communion. Since she took nothing to eat since about 6:15
o’clock, was it all right for her to receive? Explain.
(9) Phyllis receives Holy Communion this morning without fasting. For
the past five weeks she has been a patient in the hospital. She is not in
danger of death, and will not be discharged from the hospital for another
week or ten days. At 7:00 o’clock this morning the nurse gave her a glass
of orange juice, and some medicine; at 8:00 o’clock she enjoyed a glass
of milk. The priest came with Holy Communion at 8:30 and permits her
to receive without fasting. Please explain matters.
(10) A company of soldiers is ordered to the battle front at 9:00 a.m. All
of them have had a good substantial breakfast. About an hour after
breakfast the Catholic Chaplain is seen giving Communion to the
Catholics in the company. Not one of them is fasting. Explain this
situation.
(c) Through mortal sin, the soul is deprived of its supernatural life. The
sacrament of Penance raises the soul from death to supernatural life.
The priest has the power to forgive sins from Jesus Christ, who said
to His apostles and to their successors in the priesthood: “Receive the
Holy Spirit; whose sins you shall forgive, they are forgiven them; and
whose sins you shall retain, they are retained.”
(a) Our Lord spoke these words to the apostles when He appeared to
them after His Resurrection.
(b) During His life on earth, Christ forgave sinners in His own name and
by His own authority. Before ascending to His Father in heaven, He
wanted to confer that power on His apostles and their successors in the
priesthood. He knew that many persons would commit grievous sins after
they had received sanctifying grace in the sacrament of Baptism.
(c) No man, by his own power and authority, could possibly forgive sins.
Only God can do that because sin is an offense against Him. But the
priest, as God’s representative, can forgive sins because God has given
him the power to do so.
SCRIPTURE:
“But if thy brother sin against thee, go and show him his fault, between
thee and him alone. If he listen to thee, thou hast won thy brother. But if he
do not listen to thee, take with thee one or two more so that on the word of
two or three witnesses every word may be confirmed. And if he refuse to
hear them, appeal to the Church, but if he refuse to hear even the Church,
let him be to thee as the heathen and the publican. Amen I say to you,
whatever you bind on earth shall be bound also in heaven; and whatever
you loose on earth shall be loosed also in heaven” (Matthew 18:15-18).
The priest forgives sins with the words: “I absolve thee from thy sins
in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost.
Amen.”
Jesus Christ forgave sins several times during His life. At the top right, a
paralytic has been brought to Him to be cured. Our Lord says to him, ‘
“Take courage, son; thy sins are forgiven thee.’ Then, some of the scribes
who were present said within themselves, ‘This man blasphemes.’
And Jesus, knowing their thoughts, said, ‘Why do you harbor evil
thoughts in your hearts? For which is easier, to say, “Thy sins are
forgiven thee,” or to say, “Arise, and walk?” But that you may know that
the Son of Man has power on earth to forgive sins’–then he said to the
paralytic ‘Arise, take up thy pallet and go to thy house.’ And he arose,
and went away to his house’ ” (St. Matthew 9:2-7)
At the bottom right is a penitent who has gone to confession and received
the pardon of his sins. On one side is his guardian angel giving him hope
for heaven, and on the other side is the demon who was driven from his
soul by the absolution. At bottom left is a man who has made a
sacrilegious confession. He has cooperated with the demon by willfully
holding back a mortal sin in confession, and, instead of obtaining pardon,
he has committed another serious sin. His good angel turns away in
sorrow while he is led away by the demon.
At the top left is a model of perfect contrition in the person of St. Mary
Magdalene. This woman, having led an evil life, came one day to lament
her sins at the feet of Jesus Christ in the hope of obtaining pardon. Our
Lord, who was at table with a Pharisee named Simon, declared that many
sins were forgiven Magdalene, because she had loved much. Then He
said to her, “Thy sins are forgiven thee; go in peace.” (St. Luke 7)
“But if the wicked do penance for all his sins which he hath committed and
keep all my commandments and do judgment and justice, living he shall
live, and shall not die. I will not remember all his iniquities that he hath
done: in his justice which he hath wrought, he shall live. Is it my will that a
sinner should die, saith the Lord God, and not that he should be converted
from his ways and live?” (Ezechiel 18:21-23).
Our Saviour could indeed have decreed that men should receive the
pardon of their sins by going directly to God with contrition. But a
sacrament, administered by men in the name of God, is a more assuring
and a more effective means. The conditions for the reception of this
sacrament are very easy. The penitent confesses his sins with true
contrition and the priest by the authority of God forgives him. In the
early days of Christianity the Church administered this sacrament with
far greater severity than nowadays. The worst sinners were sometimes
obliged to perform penance publicly for a long time before receiving the
pardon of their sins. But today the Church is most lenient; she receives
the sinner kindly and makes his return to God as easy as possible. Every
day throughout the world thousands of sinners are making use of the
sacrament of Penance to have the sins of many years washed from their
souls and to be restored to the life of grace and the friendship of God.
We can never sufficiently thank Our Blessed Saviour for the sacrament of
Penance. We read in the Gospel of various occasions on which He
Himself forgave sinners, such as the case of Mary Magdalene and of the
penitent thief who hung beside Him on Calvary. We feel that these
persons were fortunate because they received from the lips of Christ
Himself the consoling assurance that their sins were forgiven. Yet, we too
have a like assurance, for Our Lord Himself really administers the
sacrament of Penance through the ministry of His priest; He himself says
to us, when we have made a worthy confession: “Go in peace, thy sins
are forgiven thee.”
STUDY HELPS
A. COLUMN SELECTIONS. (Join correctly the parts of the sentences in Columns I and II, by
placing the right key letter in the proper parenthesis.)
Column I
(1) The sacrament of Penance (. .).
(3) Besides the power of ordination the priest needs for the
administration of the sacrament of Penance (. .).
(7) Our Lord said to the apostles: “Whose sins you shall forgive they are
forgiven them, etc.” (. .).
(8) In the early days of the Church sinners were sometimes obliged (. .).
(10) A person who has not the firm purpose of avoiding mortal sin in
future cannot receive (. .).
Column II
(H) the merits of his good works, which were lost by sin.
(1) Egbert, dead in mortal sin, has his soul brought back to life by Father
Reuben. Explain the terms “dead in mortal sin”–“brought back to life.”
What ‘miraculous power’ did Father Reuben use to bring about this
spiritual resurrection? Who gave him that power?
(2) Mary Magdalene and the Good Thief had the consoling experience of
hearing directly from Our Saviour Himself that their sins were forgiven.
Have we a similar assurance that our sins are forgiven? Explain.
(3) In your own way explain the meaning of the word “penance” used in
the following sentences:
(b) Baptism was the first Sacrament received by Lucinda; Penance, the
second.
(c) At home, Dinah is on penance, washing and drying the dishes, and
putting them away, because she stayed out overtime last night.
(4) Write from memory the words that Our Lord spoke Easter Sunday
evening when He gave the Apostles the power to forgive sins.
(6) Constance wants to know what the priest is saying in Latin while she
is reciting her act of contrition at the end of her confession. Tell her.
(7) Dexter, in the graduating class of St. Carmela’s, confides to his chum
Morgan that Father Demetrius would not give him absolution today when
he went to confession. Ordinarily what does this refusal indicate? What
advice should Morgan give his pal, Dexter?
(8) Who authorized Father Demetrius to hear Dexter’s confession? When
did Father Demetrius receive the power to hear confessions? Where did
this power come from?
(11) Adeline has made her last ten confessions to Father Hiram. At
present, she is in an agony of suspense because she is ashamed to
mention a certain doubt about a serious temptation she had during the
past week. Advise her what to do, and give her the reason for your
advice.
(12) Maureen asks her older brother, Patrick, who is studying for the
priesthood why Our Lord isn’t satisfied that we should go to Him directly
for the pardon of our sins but demands that we confess them to the priest.
What answer do you think Patrick will give his little sister?
– LESSON 30 –
Contrition
Contrition is sincere sorrow for having offended God, and hatred for
the sins we have committed, with a firm purpose of sinning no more.
(b) By sin we offend and insult God. Unless we are sincerely sorry for
our sins and are firmly resolved not to commit them again, we cannot
reasonably expect God to forgive us.
SCRIPTURE:
“Let the wicked forsake his way and the unjust man his thoughts, and let
him return to the Lord; and he will have mercy on him: and to our God; for
he is bountiful to forgive” (Isaias 55:7).
“And when the wicked turneth himself away from his wickedness, which
he hath wrought, and doeth judgment and justice, he shall save his soul
alive. Because he considereth and turneth away himself from all his
iniquities which he hath wrought, he shall surely live and not die”
(Ezechiel 18:27-28).
“But while he was yet a long way off, his father saw him and was moved
with compassion, and ran and fell upon his neck and kissed him. And the
son said to him, ‘Father, I have sinned against heaven and before thee. I
am no longer worthy to be called thy son.’ But the father said to his
servants, ‘Fetch quickly the best robe and put it on him, and give him a
ring for his finger and sandals for his feet; and bring out the fattened calf
and kill it, and let us eat and make merry; because this my son was dead,
and has come to life again; he was lost, and is found.’ And they began to
make merry” (Luke 15:17-24).
389. Will God forgive us any sin unless we have true contrition for it?
God will not forgive us any sin, whether mortal or venial, unless we
have true contrition for it.
(a) Sometimes people are unwilling to pardon our offenses against them
even when we are sincerely sorry for having offended them. But God will
always forgive us our sins when we are sincerely sorry for them. He will
not forgive us, however, unless we are sincerely sorry.
SCRIPTURE:
“Now therefore saith the Lord: Be converted to me with all your heart, in
fasting and in weeping and in mourning. And rend your hearts and not
your garments, and turn to the Lord your God: for he is gracious and
merciful, patient and rich in mercy, and ready to repent of the evil. Who
knoweth but he will return and forgive and leave a blessing behind him,
sacrifice and libation to the Lord your God?” (Joel 2:12-14).
It is universal: “Turn thy face away from my sins, and blot out all my
iniquities” (v. 11).
Our sorrow is interior when it comes from our heart, and not merely
from our lips.
(a) It is not enough merely to say that we are sorry for our sins. We must
really mean it. We must sincerely detest our sins and firmly intend not to
commit them again. We do not, however, have to feel our sorrow, for
contrition is an act of the will, not of the feelings.
(a) “Motives that spring from faith” are truths God has revealed; God has
revealed, for example, that mortal sin will be punished in hell, venial sin
in purgatory; that sin caused Christ to die; that sin is an offense against
the infinite goodness of God; and that sin is hateful in itself. If we are
sorry for our sins for one of these reasons, then, with God’s grace, our
sorrow is supernatural; it is prompted by truths which we believe because
of the authority of God who revealed them.
(b) If we are sorry for our sins because they injure our health or will be
punished by the civil courts or cause us to lose our friends, then our
sorrow is natural. It is prompted by natural reasons. It is not wrong to be
sorry for our sins because of natural motives; but this natural sorrow is
not sufficient to obtain God’s pardon.
Our sorrow is supreme when we hate sin above every other evil, and
are willing to endure anything rather than offend God in the future
by sin.
(a) We know that sin is the greatest of all evils because it is an offense
against God, the greatest Good, and for that reason we should detest it
more than we detest any other evil.
Our sorrow is universal when we are sorry for every mortal sin that
we may have had the misfortune to commit.
(a) When mortal sins are forgiven sanctifying grace enters the soul and it
is impossible for sanctifying grace to enter the soul if a single mortal sin
remains there. All our mortal sins, therefore, must be forgiven, or none of
them is forgiven.
395. Should we always try to have sorrow for all our venial sins when
receiving the sacrament of Penance?
We should try to have sorrow for all our venial sins when receiving
the sacrament of Penance, and, when we have only venial sins to
confess, we must have sorrow for at least one of them or for some sin
of our past life which we confess.
“Turn to the Lord: and forsake thy sins . . . Return to the Lord, and turn
away from thy injustice: and greatly hate abomination” (Ecclesiasticus
17:21, 23).
“If anyone does not abide in me, he shall be cast outside as the branch and
wither; and they shall gather them up and cast them into the fire, and they
shall burn” (John 15:6).
“Or do you not know that the unjust will not possess the kingdom of
God?” (I Corinthians 6:9).
(a) As long as a person has mortal sin on his soul he cannot be pardoned
for his venial sins. Mortal sin makes man an enemy of God. He cannot,
therefore, receive pardon for his slighter offenses if he does not receive
pardon for the serious offenses that make him an enemy of God.
(b) A person having only venial sins on his soul can obtain pardon for
those for which he is sincerely sorry, even though other venial sins
remain unforgiven because he is not sorry for them.
Our contrition is perfect when we are sorry for our sins because sin
offends God, whom we love above all things for His own sake.
(a) We love God because He is the supreme Good. Sin is the greatest evil
because it is an offense against God, the supreme Good. Our sorrow for
sin is perfect, therefore, when we detest sin because it offends God,
whom we love above all things.
Our contrition is imperfect when we are sorry for our sins because
they are hateful in themselves or because we fear God’s punishment.
(a) Imperfect contrition is sometimes called attrition.
SCRIPTURE:
“And the children of Israel said to the Lord: We have sinned: do thou unto
us whatsoever pleaseth thee. Only deliver us this time” (Judges 10:15).
403. How can a person in mortal sin regain the state of grace before
receiving the sacrament of Penance?
A person in mortal sin can regain the state of grace before receiving
the sacrament of Penance by making an act of perfect contrition with
the sincere purpose of going to confession.
(a) It is not true that we can regain the state of grace by perfect contrition
only when we are in danger of death or when it is impossible to go to
confession.
“Is it my will that a sinner should die, saith the Lord God, and not that he
should be converted from his ways and live?” (Ezechiel 18:23).
The firm purpose of sinning no more is the sincere resolve not only to
avoid sin but to avoid as far as possible the near occasions of sin.
(a) This firm purpose of amendment does not necessarily exclude the fear
that a person may repeat his sin in the future. It does mean that, at the
time, a person, relying fully upon God’s grace, sincerely intends never to
commit this sin again.
(b) The firm purpose of amendment includes also the intention to remain
away from persons, places, or things that may easily lead him to sin.
(c) The firm purpose of amendment must include not only those mortal
sins which the person has committed in the past and confessed, but also
all mortal sins.
SCRIPTURE:
“My son, hast thou sinned? Do so no more: but for thy former sins also
pray that they may be forgiven thee. Flee from sins as from the face of a
serpent: for if thou comest near them, they will take hold of thee”
(Ecclesiasticus 21:1-2).
“Watch and pray, that you may not enter into temptation” (Mark 14:38).
“Then Jesus said, ‘Neither will I condemn thee. Go thy way, and from now
on sin no more’ “ (John 8:11).
If a person has only venial sins to confess, he must have the purpose
of avoiding at least one of them.
When we say that God will not forgive any sin without contrition, we are
speaking only of actual sin, not of original sin. We cannot have contrition
for original sin since we did not contract it by our own free will; hence,
infants who have only original sin are cleansed of that sin by Baptism,
without making any act of contrition.
The most noble type of contrition is that which arises from the love of
God for His own sake, or because of His own goodness. This is called
perfect contrition, and it has the power to procure the forgiveness of all
mortal sins that may be on the soul of the person who detests his sins
from this motive. It was of this contrition that Our Lord spoke when He
said, pointing to the repentant sinner, Mary Magdalene, “Her sins, many
as they are, shall be forgiven her, because she has loved much” (Luke 7:
47). It is indeed unfortunate that Catholics are often unaware of the
wonderful power of perfect contrition. Some think it remits sin only
when one is in danger of death and cannot get to confession. The truth is
that an act of perfect contrition will always take away mortal sin; one has
only to have the intention of going to confession when he is next obliged
to do so–that is, within the year or when in danger of death–and telling
the mortal sins which have been remitted by perfect contrition. One who
has had his sins forgiven by perfect contrition may not go to Communion
until he has been to confession; nevertheless he can enjoy the advantages
of being in the state of grace and of gaining merit for his good works.
A person can have at the same time both perfect and imperfect contrition
for his sins. One does not exclude the other. For this reason we say in our
act of contrition: “I detest all my sins because of thy just punishments”
thus expressing imperfect contrition, and then we add our expression of
perfect contrition, when we say: “But most of all because they offend
Thee, my God, who art all-good and deserving of all my love.”
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE. Check each statement given below as either true or false. The correct
answer will be found in the preceding portions of the lesson.)
(1) A person can have both perfect and imperfect contrition at the same
time.
(2) An act of perfect contrition will take away a person’s mortal sins even
when he is not in danger of death and can go to confession.
(3) A person cannot have true contrition unless he is sure that he will
never sin mortally again.
(4) We may not receive Holy Communion after committing a mortal sin
until we have gone to confession, even though we have received the
pardon of the sin by perfect contrition.
(5) The purpose of amendment need not include any sins except the kind
which the penitent has confessed.
(6) If we have only venial sins to confess we can receive the sacrament of
Penance fruitfully even though we are not sorry for any of them,
provided we confess some sin of the past for which we are truly sorry.
(8) If we are sorry for some of our mortal sins but not for all of them, we
can receive the pardon of those for which we are sorry.
(9) A person in mortal sin can receive the pardon of the venial sins for
which he is sorry.
(10) A person who has only venial sins on his soul can obtain the pardon
of those for which he has contrition, even though he is not sorry for the
others.
(1) Alvin asks, can we be sorry for original sin? Answer him, giving the
reason for your answer.
(2) Bede, a highly sensitive lad, is wondering has he true sorrow for his
sins. That wonder is occasioned by his inability to be emotional during
the recitation of the act of contrition. Give your comment on this problem
of Bede–in three or four sentences.
(3) Enumerate at least five motives for contrition that spring from faith.
(4) Ivan, a prisoner in the State Prison, is in a death cell, with only two
more weeks to live. His crimes were robbery and murder. He is grieving
over the shame and sorrow he is causing his devout Catholic parents. He
is dreading the ordeal of execution. He is afraid of God’s punishments in
the next life. Is he disposed to receive absolution? Which of the
foregoing motives for sorrow is sufficient for his worthy reception of the
sacrament of Penance? Why?
(5) Through shame, Cynthia keeps back in confession one of her five
mortal sins. How many mortal sins are on her soul as she leaves the
confessional? Explain your answer.
(6) Ulysses thinks he can get rid of his venial sins by his prayers and by
using sacramentals; he is not sorry for some of his mortal sins. Is his
opinion correct about the pardon of his venial sins under these
circumstances? Give the reason for your answer.
(7) Olga, a daily communicant, is sorry for her venial sins of anger, but
not much concerned about her numerous petty lies. She confesses only
her sins of anger, but purposely does not confess her many small lies. Is
her confession good? Why? Are both classes of venial sin forgiven, or
only one? If only one, which one? Explain the answer.
(8) In a Catechism quiz Dennis lost first prize because he could not give
the definition of attrition. What is it? Give a complete definition of it.
(10) Write from memory the act of contrition that you say when you
make your confession. Analyze it, pointing out whether it is perfect,
imperfect, or a combination of both kinds of contrition. If a combination
of both, mark a single line under the expression of imperfect contrition,
and a double line under that of perfect contrition.
(12) Remy, a boy of 9, is unfortunately led to commit his first mortal sin
by Quincy, a vicious companion of 11. That night Remy is afraid to go to
sleep. He knows that if he dies during the night in mortal sin he will be
lost forever in the fire of hell. What should he try to do? When should he
do it?
(13) Callistus and Melba are on their honeymoon trip–a cruise of twelve
days. There is no priest aboard the ship. Through human respect, both of
them eat a meat dinner on Friday, the first day of their trip. Both are soon
ashamed of their moral cowardice. How long will they have to wait
before they get back into the state of grace? Explain your answer.
(15) Hans has 15 venial sins to confess: 5 small lies, 5 slight outbursts of
anger, and 5 acts of disobedience to his parents. His purpose of
amendment covers only the sins of disobedience. Does he make a good
confession? How could he make it better?
(16) Merlin, staying at a camp for the summer, committed a mortal sin;
but that same evening made an act of perfect contrition. The following
Sunday he attended Mass, celebrated by a visiting priest in the dining
hall of the camp. The priest explained to the congregation that he could
not hear confessions because he came from another diocese and did not
have jurisdiction for administering the sacrament of Penance in the
diocese where the camp was situated. “However,” he added, “those who
have committed no mortal sin since their last confession may receive
Holy Communion, if they wish.” Merlin concluded that, even though he
had committed a mortal sin since his last confession, he was now in the
state of grace through his act of perfect contrition; hence, he received
Holy Communion. Did he reason correctly?
– LESSON 31 –
Confession
(a) An authorized priest is one who has not only the power to forgive sins
by reason of his ordination to the priesthood, but also the power of
jurisdiction over the persons who come to him. He has this jurisdiction
ordinarily from his bishop, or by reason of his office. 22
22 (See question 381)
SCRIPTURE:
“I have confessed my sin to thee, and my fault I have not concealed; I said:
‘I confess my iniquity to the Lord,’ and thou didst forgive the guilt of my
sin” (Psalm 31:5).
“He that hideth his sins shall not prosper: but he that shall confess and
forsake them shall obtain mercy” (Proverbs 28:13).
“And this became known to all the Jews and Gentiles living in Ephesus,
and fear fell on them all, and the name of the Lord Jesus came to be held in
high honor. And many of those who believed kept coming, and openly
confessed their practices” (Acts 19: 17-18).
(a) The priest must judge the penitent. In order to act as judge the priest
must know whether to forgive or to retain the penitent’s sins. It would be
impossible for the priest to decide, that is, to judge, whether or not the
penitent should be forgiven unless the penitent made known the extent of
his guilt and his sorrow.
(b) In the sacrament of Penance the priest acts also as the physician of the
soul. He tells the penitent how to avoid sin and how to amend his life.
Just as we tell a doctor about our bodily aches and pains in order that he
can cure us, so also we tell our sins to the priest in order that he can
suggest spiritual remedies.
(c) Since God has commanded us to confess our sins to the priest, as His
representative, we should not let shame prevent us from doing so. The
priest, as God’s representative, will advise and encourage us, help us
solve our doubts, guide our future conduct, and forgive our sins in the
name of Christ. He will never, under any circumstances, not even to save
his own life, make our sins known to anyone else. Priests, bishops, and
even the Pope must also confess their sins to a priest.
It is necessary to confess every mortal sin which has not yet been
confessed and forgiven; it is not necessary to confess our venial sins,
but it is better to do so.
(a) It is not necessary to confess venial sins because they do not deprive
the soul of sanctifying grace.
(b) It is better to confess our venial sins because when we do so, we have
more assurance that they are forgiven and because we receive from the
sacrament of Penance special graces to help us avoid them in the future.
“And the son said to him, ‘Father, I have sinned against heaven and before
thee. I am no longer worthy to be called thy son’ ” (Luke 15:21).
Our confession is sincere when we tell our sins honestly and frankly.
(b) Persons who lack the power of speech may, if they wish, write a list
of their sins for the priest.
(c) Persons who are hard of hearing should confess in places set aside for
them so neither they nor the priest will be overheard.
Our confession is entire when we confess at least all our mortal sins,
telling their kind, the number of times we have committed each sin,
and any circumstances changing their nature.
(a) By the kind of sins is meant the class to which they belong, such as
blasphemy, missing Mass, disobedience, theft. The best way to determine
the different kinds of sin is to determine the virtue that has been violated
or the commandment that has been broken. We must confess whether the
sin was in thought, word, or deed.
(b) In most prayerbooks there are lists of sins which help us to determine
the kinds of sins we have committed.
(c) Circumstances that change the nature of a sin are those that add some
new kind of wickedness to the act we have done. For example, if a
person kills another, he commits a sin of murder; but the killing of a
cleric is a circumstance that adds a new wickedness to his act and makes
it also a sin of sacrilege.
SCRIPTURE:
“And the Lord spoke to Moses, saying: Say to the children of Israel: When
a man or woman shall have committed any of all the sins that men are
wont to commit, and by negligence shall have transgressed the
commandment of the Lord, and offended: they shall confess their sin . . .”
(Numbers 5:5-7).
(a) There are times when a person can receive the sacrament of Penance
without telling the nature and number of all his sins. A dying person, for
example, or a large number of soldiers going into battle may not have
time for a detailed confession. Before receiving absolution they must
admit that they have sinned, that they are sorry, and that they want to be
absolved. Those who have confessed in this general way must, in their
next confession, tell all their sins according to their nature, number, and
circumstances that change their nature.
419. Why should a sense of shame and fear of telling our sins to the
priest never lead us to conceal a mortal sin in confession?
A sense of shame and fear of telling our sins to the priest should
never lead us to conceal a mortal sin in confession because the priest,
who represents Christ Himself, is bound by the seal of the sacrament
of Penance never to reveal anything that has been confessed to him.
(a) The priest may not speak about anything he has heard in confession
even to the penitent who told it to him, unless the penitent himself
willingly permits it.
(c) A person ordinarily should not mention to others what he has told in
confession.
SCRIPTURE:
“He who hears you, hears me; and he who rejects you, rejects me; and he
who rejects me, rejects him who sent me” (Luke 10:16).
(b) If a person intended to perform the penance at the time he received it,
the sins he told in confession are forgiven; but he is guilty of a new sin
afterward when he deliberately omits the penance.
(c) A person should follow exactly the instructions of the priest as to the
manner and time of performing the penance. If the priest does not give
such instructions it is best to perform the penance immediately, or as
soon as possible.
SCRIPTURE:
“And David said to Nathan: I have sinned against the Lord. And Nathan
said to David: The Lord also hath taken away thy sin. Thou shalt not die.
Nevertheless, because thou hast given occasion to the enemies of the Lord
to blaspheme, for this thing, the child that is born to thee, shall surely die”
(II Kings 12:13-14).
“Now therefore saith the Lord: Be converted to me with all your heart, in
fasting and in weeping and in mourning” (Joel 2:12).
(a) We know that God demands temporal punishment for mortal sins
even after they have been forgiven, because God Himself has made this
known by divine revelation.
(b) Christ, by His death on the cross, made more than adequate
satisfaction to atone for all the temporal punishment due to all the sins of
mankind; but God wants us to perform works of penance ourselves to
receive all the benefits of the satisfaction of Christ.
SCRIPTURE:
“If anyone does not abide in me, he shall be cast outside as the branch and
wither; and they shall gather them up and cast them into the fire, and they
shall burn” (John 15:6).
“But if anyone build upon this foundation, gold, silver, precious stones,
wood, hay, straw–the work of each will be made manifest, for the day the
Lord will declare it, since the day is to be revealed in fire. The fire will
assay the quality of everyone’s work: if his work abides which he has built
thereon, he will receive reward; if his work burns he will lose his reward,
but himself will be saved, yet so as through fire” (I Corinthians 3:12-15).
‘But as for the cowardly and unbelieving, and abominable and murderers,
and fornicators and sorcerers, and idolaters and all liars, their portion shall
be in the pool that burns with fire and brimstone, which is the second
death” (Apocalypse 21:8).
(b) The sacrament of Penance, however, does not always take away all
temporal punishment due to sins committed after Baptism. The
dispositions with which one receives the sacrament of Penance determine
the amount of temporal punishment which will be taken away.
(a) We should do as much penance as we can in this life for our sins. Our
works of satisfaction in this life help us to merit greater glory in heaven.
(b) The debt of temporal punishment is paid in this life according to the
penance imposed and the devotion with which it is performed. The priest
is obliged to impose greater or less penance in proportion to the gravity
and number of the sins confessed.
425. What are the chief means of satisfying the debt of our temporal
punishment, besides the penance imposed after confession?
SCRIPTURE: “Prayer is good with fasting and alms: more than to lay up
treasures of gold. For alms delivereth from death: and the same is that
which purgeth away sins, and maketh to find mercy and life everlasting”
(Tobias 12:8-9).
See Scripture, question 420.
With all these considerations before them, Catholics should not find it
difficult to make a worthy confession, especially in view of the fact that
they are always free to confess to a priest who does not know them.
Surely, it is most unreasonable to conceal a mortal sin in confession.
Such an act renders the confession useless. The sinner leaves the
confessional still burdened with all the sins with which he entered and in
addition with a new sin of sacrilege. He has the obligation of telling all
the sins again; and if he has the misfortune of leaving this world without
receiving the forgiveness of his transgressions, the sin which he was
afraid to reveal to one person in private will be revealed to the whole
world to his shame at the last judgment.
In the early centuries it was not unusual for Christians to make their
confession publicly, before the entire congregation. Moreover, a very
severe penance was often imposed in those times, sometimes lasting for
several years. Nowadays the Church is far more lenient. The modern
penance is generally a few prayers that can be said in a short time.
Hence, we see the necessity of supplying for our debt of temporal
punishment by works of self-denial over and above the sacramental
penance. We need not practice the extraordinary deeds of mortification
performed by the great saints; even the smallest deeds of self-denial,
when we are in the state of grace, possess satisfactory value toward
atoning for our debt of temporal punishment. And we can perform such
works of satisfaction not only for ourselves but also for others, whether
living or dead.
When a person realizes that he has been guilty of many sins and
doubtless has a great debt of temporal punishment to pay, it is always
better for him to make as much satisfaction as he can in the present life
instead of deferring it to purgatory. Our satisfactory works in the present
life, unlike our suffering in purgatory, not only pay our debt of temporal
punishment but also merit greater glory for us in heaven.
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTION. (Select the word or phrase in each parenthesis which most exactly and
most completely fills out the sentence.)
(3) The obligation of confessing our sins comes from (the law of Moses. .
. the law of Christ. . . the law of the Church).
(4) If a person has forgotten a mortal sin in confession (he may not go to
Holy Communion until he has confessed it . . . he need not worry about it
anymore . . . he may go to Holy Communion but he must confess it the
next time he goes to confession).
(7) A confessor (may reveal venial sins he has heard in confession but
not mortal sins . . . may not reveal either venial or mortal sins under any
circumstances . . . may reveal a penitent’s sins to save his own life).
(8) In confessing venial sins (it is better not to mention the number . . . it
is necessary to confess the number . . . it is advisable but not necessary to
mention the number).
(9) The sacrament of Baptism received by one who has attained the use
of reason (takes away all the debt of temporal punishment . . . takes away
no temporal punishment . . . takes away some temporal punishment
according to the dispositions of the recipient).
(2) Pierpont, a Unitarian Sunday School pupil, tells his Catholic friend
Clarence that it is not necessary to tell his sins to the priest. Pierpont
suggests that it is nicer and easier to tell them directly to God in the
privacy of one’s own home. What reply should Clarence make to his
friend Pierpont? Does God need to be informed about our sins?
(5) Wesley, a lad of 12, has lost his angelic innocence by wicked
companionships with members of a bad gang down on the waterfront.
His conscience has been bothering him for a long time. His mother keeps
urging him to go to confession. Finally he decides to go, not to one of the
parish priests, but to a foreign-language priest downtown. He will
confess his sins in waterfront slang that he feels pretty sure the priest will
not really understand. Has Wesley the right idea about the sincerity that is
required for confession? Explain your answer.
(6) Sergius, a town bully, gives his own father a terrible beating, breaking
his jaw, and knocking out four of his teeth. It happened when his father
was trying to get him up for Mass on Sunday morning. Six months later
Sergius goes to confession during a Mission. In telling this particular sin
how must he confess it? Add an explanation to your answer.
(7) Rhea, an elderly lady, is burned seriously in a fire that destroyed her
home. For 35 years she has been a careless Catholic, neglectful of the
Sacraments and attendance at Mass. The chaplain at the hospital gives
her the Last Rites. Because of her serious condition, and inability to
speak much, the priest suggests, in a general way, that she be sorry for all
the sins of her life, especially neglect of religion. He asks her to repeat in
her heart the act of contrition he says aloud, he presses the crucifix to her
lips that she may kiss it as an expression of her sorrow. After several
weeks of careful nursing, Rhea emerges from the danger of death. Since
her last confession she has been guilty of only three venial sins–three acts
of impatience. Is it enough if she confesses only those three sins?
Explain.
(8) Nine weeks ago, while making his confession, through fear Ernest
kept back a mortal sin. He goes to confession every week with the
members of his class. In the next seven confessions Ernest told truthfully
and accurately all the new sins he committed each week, but said nothing
about the sin concealed, the bad confession, or the unworthy Communion
that followed both. Yesterday in his confession again he told truthfully all
the new sins committed last week. Then he “slipped in” the big sin he
concealed nine weeks ago, but he did not tell that he had kept it back in
confession. Can a concealed sin of this kind be “slipped into” a later
confession in this way? How is Ernest to straighten out things?
(9) There may be in hell Catholics who made worthy confessions during
their lifetime but who unfortunately died as enemies of God. In eternity
are they better off than they would have been had they never made those
worthy confessions? Why?
(10) Evans, a Protestant boy, wants to know may a priest tell what he has
heard in confession if thereby the priest could save his own life. What
answer is to be given to Evans?
(11) Miranda, a girl in Junior High School, and all her classmates are
brought to the church for their weekly confession. Miranda is assigned to
Father April’s confessional. She doesn’t want to go to confession to him,
but is afraid to attract notice by leaving her place to go to another priest.
When her turn comes she says; “Father, please give me your blessing; I
don’t want to go to confession today.” What do you think of her solution
of the difficulty?
(12) During the school year, Ariel and his classmates are taken over to
the church regularly every week to make their confession. Ariel is in the
seventh grade. Each Summer, during the ten week vacation, Ariel also
takes “a vacation from the Sacraments.” Once Ariel graduates from the
parish school, do you think he will be a ‘regular at the confessional and
at the Communion rail? What is the reason for your opinion? What
remedy for his ailment would you suggest?
(13) Clifton has a serious sin to confess, but he is very friendly with the
priest, and is ashamed to tell him about it. That priest is the only priest in
Clifton’s home town. Saturday afternoon Clifton takes the bus to the next
town and there makes his confession. Do you approve or disapprove of
what he did? Give the reason for your answer.
(14) Alfred was a soldier in World War II, and several times before going
into battle, he received, together with the other Catholic soldiers of his
regiment, absolution in a general way from the chaplain, after merely
reciting the act of contrition, without confessing his sins according to
their number and nature. Since returning from the war Alfred has been
going to confession every month, but he never told the sins he had on his
soul when he received general absolution from the chaplain, because, he
says: “Since these sins were forgiven by the priest, why do I have to
worry about them anymore?” Can you enlighten Alfred regarding the
obligation he still has to confess any mortal sins that were forgiven by the
chaplain’s general absolution?
– LESSON 32 –
How To Make a Good Confession
(a) Respect for the sacrament of Penance requires serious preparation for
its reception. Reverence in church, a careful examination of conscience,
exciting sincere sorrow for our sins, and patience in awaiting one’s turn
to approach the confessional, are marks of respect for the sacrament.
428. After telling the time of our last confession, what do we confess?
After telling the time of our last confession, if we have committed any
mortal sins since that time, we must confess them and also any that
we have forgotten in previous confessions, telling the nature and
number of each; we may also confess any venial sins we wish to
mention.
(b) A person should not attempt to offer excuses for himself; but he
should mention those conditions or circumstances that increase or
decrease his guilt.
(c) It is not necessary to mention acts that are not sins. It is not necessary,
for example, to mention that one has eaten meat on a day of abstinence
unless it was eaten deliberately with the knowledge that it was a day of
abstinence. Nor is it necessary to mention that one has missed Mass on
Sunday if one was seriously ill and could not go to Mass.
(a) Even though we have already confessed a sin of our past life in a
previous confession, we can again be sincerely sorry for it, especially if it
is a mortal sin. This sincere sorrow is sufficient to enable the priest to
give us absolution even if we confess only slight sins for which we do
not have sufficient sorrow.
SCRIPTURE:
(a) If, for some reason, it would be impossible or too difficult for us to
perform the penance given by the priest, we should ask him to give us
some other penance.
(b) If there is any matter of a spiritual nature that is bothering us, we
should not hesitate to ask the priest for his advice.
When the priest is giving us absolution, we should say from our heart
the act of contrition in a tone to be heard by him.
After leaving the confessional we should return thanks to God for the
sacrament we have received, beg Our Lord to supply for the
imperfections of our confession, and promptly and devoutly perform
our penance.
There is no occasion better suited for testing our Catholic courtesy than
the reception of the sacrament of Penance. Sad to say, there are some
Catholics who show a great lack of respect and seriousness in the
reception of this sublime sacrament. They walk into church, gazing
around as if it were a theater. Instead of a reverent genuflection, they
make a slight inclination and slouch into a pew. A minute or two suffices
for preparation; then they approach the confessional, perhaps forcing
their way ahead of others who had the first right. They make their
confession in a careless, slipshod way, rendering if necessary for the
priest to put a number of questions regarding the nature and number of
their sins. The act of contrition is hastily mumbled; when they leave the
confessional they say their penance as fast as possible and hasten from
the church. Strange to say, many of these persons are most careful in
obeying the rules of politeness when they are at some social function in a
parlor or dining-room; but in the house of God they are ill-mannered and
disrespectful.
It may happen that after confession a person will forget what penance he
has received. In that event he should return to the confessor and ask him
to repeat it, if he can do so without much inconvenience. If, however, he
would have to wait a considerable length of time or suffer some other
grave inconvenience before he could again get to the confessor, he can
consider himself free from the penance, though it would be advisable for
him to say some prayers in satisfaction for his debt of temporal
punishment.
STUDY HELPS
A. COLUMN SELECTION. (Join correctly the parts of the sentences in Columns I and II, by
placing the right key letter in the proper parenthesis.)
Column I
(10) If a person cannot remember the exact number of his sins (. .).
Column II
(2) Thecla has recovered from a serious heart ailment. She goes to
confession after an absence of five weeks. While a patient in the Jewish
hospital she missed Mass on four Sundays. Among her sins she accuses
herself of missing Mass. What have you to say concerning her
confession?
(3) Wallace, a careless Catholic, attending public school, has been away
from the sacraments for nine months. He is making the confession for his
Easter Duty Communion. In telling his sins he accuses himself this way:
“I missed Mass lots of times; I ate meat on Friday many times etc.” Point
out the serious defect in Wallace’s manner of confessing.
(4) Pearl is worried about the confession she made three days ago. She
told the priest she stole two expensive rings and a valuable necklace; but
she forgot to mention that she missed her Easter Duty. Is the sin of
missing Easter Duty still on her soul? Explain your reply.
(5) Louis, who formerly was a very careless Catholic, is now changed for
the better. He is somewhat upset on discovering that he did not tell the
exact truth in his last confession. He confessed that he missed Mass
twelve times; but it was only ten times. Advise him how to act.
(10) After every confession, Hilda, 11 years of age, goes directly to the
Communion railing, and there before Our Lord in the Blessed Sacrament
she recites her penance. Then she tells Our Lord how thankful she is for
His kindness and forgiveness. Before leaving the church, Hilda kneels
before the image of Our Lady, asking her to help Hilda stay good. Tell us
what you think of Hilda’s custom after confession.
(11) Seumas had to confess a long list of mortal sins. He thinks the priest
has given him too difficult a penance–the Stations of the Cross every day
for a month. Afterwards, Seumas takes matters in his own hands and
changes the penance to one decade of the Rosary each day for that
month. Is Seumas allowed to do that? Explain your answer.
(12) Sinon thinks the priest gave him a penance of only three Hail Marys.
But he isn’t sure. A large number of penitents are awaiting their turn to
go to confession. Sinon must hurry home to run an important errand for
his mother. So he decides to say 5 Our Fathers and 5 Hail Marys as his
penance. What have you to say about his decision?
– LESSON 33 –
Temporal Punishment and Indulgences
(a) An indulgence does not take away sin. Neither does it take away the
eternal punishment due to mortal sins. An indulgence can produce its
effects in the soul only after sins are forgiven and, in the case of mortal
sins, only after their eternal punishment is taken away. Many who are not
Catholic wrongly understand an indulgence to be a permission to commit
sin, or a pardon for future sin, or a guarantee against temptation. By an
indulgence the Church merely wipes out or lessens the temporal
punishment due to sins already forgiven.
(b) The Church from the beginning has granted indulgences. Up to the
sixth century indulgences generally took the form of a lessening of the
public penances imposed for sins. In the early centuries it was customary
for those who were to be martyred to ask that indulgences be granted to
certain individuals.
SCRIPTURE:
“And I will give thee the keys of the kingdom of heaven; and whatever
thou shalt bind on earth shall be bound in heaven, and whatever thou shalt
loose on earth shall be loosed in heaven” (Matthew 16:19-20).
Also, read II Kings 24:1-25.
(d) The confession that may be required for gaining any particular
indulgences may be made within the eight days which immediately
precede the day to which the indulgences are appointed; the Communion
may take place on the previous day; or both conditions may be satisfied
on the day itself or within the following octave.
(e) The following are several examples of plenary indulgences that can
be gained by all the faithful:
(1) Those who piously recite a third part of the Rosary (five decades) in
the presence of the Blessed Sacrament, publicly exposed or even
reserved in the tabernacle, may gain a plenary indulgence, on condition
of confession and Communion (The Raccolta, No. 395, c).
(2) The faithful who, with at least a contrite heart, whether singly or in
company, perform the pious exercises of the Way of the Cross, when the
latter has been legitimately erected according to the prescriptions of the
Holy See, may gain a plenary indulgence as often as they perform the
same, and another plenary indulgence if they receive Holy Communion
on the same day, or even within a month after having made the Stations
ten times (The Raccolta, No. 194).
(3) The faithful who recite devoutly the prayer, “Behold, O good and
sweetest Jesus” before an image of Jesus Christ Crucified, may gain a
plenary indulgence under the usual conditions (The Raccolta, No. 201).
(c) God alone knows exactly how much of the temporal punishment is
actually taken away by an indulgence.
(d) The following are some ejaculations and invocations to which partial
indulgences are attached:
(1) An indulgence of 500 days for saying the ejaculation: “Holy, Holy,
Holy, Lord God of hosts: the heavens and the earth are full of Thy
glory!” (The Raccolta, No. 2).
(2) An indulgence of 300 days for saying the ejaculation: “My God and
my All!” (The Raccolta, No. 5).
(a) In granting indulgences the Church exercises the power of the keys
given to her by Christ.
“But not like the offense is the gift. For if by the offense of the one the
many died, much more has the grace of God, and the gift in the grace of
the one man Jesus Christ, abounded unto the many. Nor is the gift as it was
in the case of one man’s sin, for the judgment was from one man unto
condemnation, but grace is from many offenses unto justification. For if by
reason of the one man’s offense death reigned through the one man, much
more will they who receive the abundance of the grace and of the gift of
justice reign in life through the one Jesus Christ. Therefore as from the
offense of the one man the result was unto condemnation to all men, so
from the justice of the one the result is unto justification of life to all men.
For just as by the disobedience of the one man the many were constituted
sinners, so also by the obedience of the one the many will be constituted
just. Now the Law intervened that the offense might abound. But where
the offense has abounded, grace has abounded yet more; so that as sin has
reigned unto death, so also grace may reign by justice unto life everlasting
through Jesus Christ our Lord” (Romans 5:15-21).
“For there is one God, and one Mediator between God and men, himself
man, Christ Jesus, who gave himself a ransom for all, bearing witness in
his own time” (I Timothy 2:5-6).
“But if anyone sins, we have an advocate with the Father, Jesus Christ, the
just; and he is a propitiation for our sins, not for ours only but also for
those of the whole world” (I John 2:1-2).
See Scripture, question 435, Matthew 16:19-20.
(b) The state of grace is required for gaining an indulgence at least at the
moment when the prescribed work is finished. Even a person in mortal
sin, therefore, can begin to gain an indulgence, unless the prescribed
work demands the state of grace, for example, Holy Communion.
We cannot gain indulgences for other living persons, but we can gain
them for the souls in purgatory, since the Church makes most
indulgences applicable to them.
SCRIPTURE:
“Then they all blessed the just judgment of the Lord, who had discovered
the things that were hidden. And so betaking themselves to prayers they
besought him that the sin which had been committed might be forgotten.
But the most valiant Judas exhorted the people to keep themselves from
sin, forasmuch as they saw before their eyes what had happened because
of the sins of those that were slain.
“(For if he had not hoped that they that were slain should rise again, it
would have seemed superfluous and vain to pray for the dead.)
“And because he considered that they who had fallen asleep with godliness
had great grace laid up for them. “It is therefore a holy and wholesome
thought to pray for the dead, that they may be loosed from sins. (II
Machabees 12:41-46).
The enemies of the Catholic Church ridicule the idea of indulgences, and
claim that they induce people to sin more freely. They charge also that
indulgences have often been sold for money. To this we reply that
indulgences rather induce people to give up sin, because one must be free
from mortal sin before he can gain an indulgence. Moreover, although
there have been abuses in the past in the matter of indulgences, that is no
objection to the proper use of them. Any sacred thing can be abused by
wicked persons, but it does not on that account cease to be sacred and
beneficial.
Anyone who studies the Catholic doctrine of indulgences must admit that
it is most reasonable. It simply means that God in His mercy will accept
the satisfactory works of some members of the Church for the benefit of
others. Even in human affairs this is a common practice. If one member
of a family contracts a debt, and his brothers and sisters give him money
to pay it, the creditor accepts the money and regards the debt as paid.
God does the same when He accepts the satisfactions of His Divine Son
and of the Saints in payment for the debt of temporal punishment due to
other members of the Church.
When one of the conditions for gaining an indulgence is a prayer for the
intention of the Pope, it suffices to say once the Our Father, the Hail
Mary and the Glory be to the Father, or some other equivalent prayer. But
for a plenary indulgence that can be gained repeatedly on the same day
by visiting a church and praying for the Holy Father, one must recite for
each indulgence six times the Our Father, Hail Mary and Glory be to the
Father.
RESOLUTION: Resolve that on every All Souls’ Day you will gain
several indulgences for the souls in purgatory, at least one for each
deceased member of your immediate family.
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE. (Check each of the statements below as either true or false. The correct
answers can be found in the previous portions of this lesson).
(1) An indulgence of seven years means that a person will have seven
years less to suffer in purgatory.
(4) A person can gain a plenary indulgence every time he makes the way
of the cross, even several times the same day.
(5) We can transfer indulgences to other living persons if they are in the
state of grace.
(6) A plenary indulgence takes away the eternal punishment for mortal
sin.
(7) The Church uses the power of the keys in granting an indulgence.
(10) The Holy Communion which may be required for an indulgence can
be received within eight days after the day to which the indulgence is
assigned.
(1) Illustrate the first type of indulgence granted by the Church in the
early days of her history.
(3) Thomasine, a buyer in one of the big department stores, comes to the
rescue of her brother Reginald who is heavily in debt. She pays his bills
and thereby calls off his creditors. Explain why this example is a good
illustration of the doctrine of indulgences.
(4) What is remarkable about the indulgence that may be gained for the
Poor Souls around the beginning of November? Over what period of time
may this indulgence be gained on that annual occurrence? How often
may it be gained? How many Paters, Aves and Glorias must be said each
time?
(7) After Holy Communion, Natalia recites the crucifix prayer, “Behold,
O kind and most sweet Jesus, etc.” for the purpose of gaining a plenary
indulgence. She is sorry for all her mortal sins, and for most of her venial
sins. Does she gain the plenary indulgence? If not, does she gain any
indulgence?
(9) Myra, anxious to gain a certain plenary indulgence, performed all the
requirements on September the 8th, Our Blessed Lady’s birthday; but she
did not go to Communion, the reception of which is required, for the
gaining of the indulgence, until September 15th, the feast of Our Lady of
Sorrows, the feast of her Seven Dolors. Did that delay prevent Myra from
gaining the indulgence?
(10) Althea, her sister, performed all the requirements on September 8th,
but her Holy Communion was not received until September 24th, the
Feast of Our Lady of Mercy. Did she fulfill the conditions for the plenary
indulgence? Explain your answer.
(11) Leonore, on All Souls’ day, makes seven visits to the parish church
to gain plenary indulgences for her father and mother, her big brother
Gregory and his wife Amabel, her little brother Edgar, herself, and the
only deceased member of the family, her baby sister Nora who died two
weeks after she was baptized. What is your comment about Leonore’s
understanding of these indulgences and their application?
(12) Norbert served Mass for a visiting cardinal in the parish church one
morning, and afterward the cardinal said to him: “I am going to grant you
as large an indulgence as I can, because you served Mass so devoutly.”
How many days’ indulgence did the cardinal grant Norbert?
(13) Fr. Gregory asked the children of the Sunday school if they had ever
heard of the Heroic Act. Apparently nobody had ever heard of it, so Fr.
Gregory explained that a person makes the Heroic Act when he gives the
souls in purgatory all the indulgences he gains, and all the satisfactory
value of his good works, including whatever may be applied to him after
his death. Why is this act called heroic? Why do you think it is very
pleasing to God?
(a) In administering Extreme Unction the priest anoints the eyes, the ears,
the nostrils, the lips, the hands, and, if convenient, the feet of the sick
person. If the priest judges there is not sufficient time for multiple
anointings, he can administer this sacrament by a single anointing on the
forehead.
(b) While anointing the different senses the priest says the prayer:
“Through this holy anointing, and His most tender mercy, may the Lord
forgive you whatever sins you may have committed by sight” (by
hearing, etc.).
SCRIPTURE:
“And going forth, they preached that men should repent, and they cast out
many devils, and anointed with oil many sick people, and healed them”
(Mark 6:12-13).
“Is any one among you sick? Let him bring in the presbyters of the
Church, and let them pray over him, anointing him with oil in the name of
the Lord. And the prayer of faith will save the sick man, and the Lord will
raise him up, and if he be in sins, they shall be forgiven him” (James 5:14-
15).
All Catholics who have reached the use of reason and are in danger
of death from sickness, accident, or old age should receive Extreme
Unction.
(a) A person does not actually have to be dying in order to receive
Extreme Unction.
(c) Those who are in danger of death should welcome the sacrament of
Extreme Unction. It cannot harm them, and it often helps them
physically.
(a) The remains of sin cleansed by Extreme Unction are the spiritual
weakness and indifference caused by original or actual sin.
(b) Extreme Unction does not always restore or improve the health of the
body. Nor does Extreme Unction effect miraculous cures. But just as God
produces spiritual effects through the sacraments, so He often produces
the bodily effects of better health through Extreme Unction.
At the bottom, the dying sinner refuses the priest with contempt. His
guardian angel covers his face and departs in sorrow. Before leaving, the
priest shows him the crucifix one more time. His relatives are full of
dismay and dread. Jesus Christ appears to him and shows him the Cross
on which He died to save him and before which He will judge him. The
demons surround his bed and wait for the moment when he will breathe
his last breath so they can take possession of his soul.
Extreme Unction takes away mortal sin when the sick person is
unconscious or otherwise unaware that he is not properly disposed,
but has made an act of imperfect contrition.
“My son, in thy sickness, neglect not thyself: but pray to the Lord and he
shall heal thee. Turn away from sin and order thy hands aright: and cleanse
thy heart from all offense” (Ecclesiasticus 38:9-10).
Also, read Luke 22:41-42; and John 21:15-17.
It is advisable to call the priest to visit the sick in any serious illness,
even though there is no apparent danger of death, as it is the duty of
the priest to visit the sick and to administer to them the sacraments
they need.
(a) The following preparations should be made in the home when the
priest visits the sick to administer Holy Communion or the last
sacraments: first, in the room of the sick person there should be a small
table covered with a clean linen cloth. On the table there should be a
crucifix, two blessed candles lighted, holy water, and a spoon; second, if
the priest is bearing the Holy Eucharist, he should be met at the door with
a lighted candle. The candle-bearer should genuflect and precede the
priest to the sickroom, where all present should kneel. After the priest has
sprinkled the room with holy water, if the sick person’s confession is to
be heard, all should leave the room and return and kneel when the
confession is finished.
(a) We are not certain of the moment when the soul leaves the body; the
soul may remain united to the body for some time after apparent death.
The sacraments of Penance and Extreme Unction can be administered
conditionally for several hours after signs of life have ceased, because of
the possibility that the soul may still be united with the body.
Holy Orders is the sacrament through which men receive the power
and grace to perform the sacred duties of bishops, priests, and other
ministers of the Church.
(a) The distinction between clergy and laity is of divine origin, for first,
Christ chose the twelve apostles from among His disciples; and in a
special way deputed and consecrated them for the exercise of spiritual
ministrations; and second, the apostles, who could not mistake the will of
Christ, administered the sacrament of Holy Orders by consecrating
bishops and by ordaining priests and deacons.
(b) A bishop is a priest who has received the fullness of Holy Orders,
which gives him the power of administering the sacrament of Holy
Orders, and makes him the ordinary minister of the sacrament of
Confirmation.
(c) The other orders of ministers of the Church below those of priest are
the major orders of deacon and subdeacon, and the four minor orders of
acolyte, exorcist, lector or reader, and porter.
(e) A cardinal is a priest or bishop belonging to the group that has been
especially selected to advise and assist the Pope in the government of the
Church. Cardinals have the right of electing a new Pope after the death of
the reigning Pontiff. Formerly even laymen were elevated to the
cardinalate.
“And having taken bread, he gave thanks and broke, and gave it to them,
saying, ‘This is my body, which is being given for you; do this in
remembrance of me.’ In like manner he took also the cup after the supper,
saying, ‘This cup is the new covenant in my blood, which shall be shed for
you’ ” (Luke 22:19-20) .
“And the plan met the approval of the whole multitude, and they chose
Stephen, a man full of faith and of the Holy Spirit, and Philip and
Prochorus and Nicanor and Timon and Parmenas and Nicholas, a proselyte
from Antioch. These they set before the apostles, and after they had prayed
they laid their hands upon them” (Acts 6:5-6).
“Take heed to yourselves and to the whole flock in which the Holy Spirit
has placed you as bishops, to rule the Church of God, which he has
purchased with his own blood” (Acts 20:28).
“This saying is true: If anyone is eager for the office of bishops, he desires
a good work. A bishop then, must be blameless, married but once,
reserved, prudent, of good conduct, hospitable, a teacher, not a drinker or a
brawler, but moderate, not quarrelsome, not avaricious. He should rule
well his own household, keeping his children under control and perfectly
respectful. For if a man cannot rule his own household, how is he to take
care of the church of God? He must not be a new convert, lest he be puffed
up with pride and incur the condemnation passed on the devil. Besides this
he must have a good reputation with those who are outside, that he may
not fall into disgrace and into a snare of the devil “Deacons also must be
honorable, not double-tongued, not given to much wine, not greedy for
base gain, but holding the mystery of faith in a pure conscience. And let
them first be tried, and if found without reproach let them be allowed to
serve. In like manner let the women be honorable, not slanderers, but
reserved, faithful in all things. Deacons should be men who have been
married but once, ruling well their children and their own households. And
those who have fulfilled well this office will acquire a good position and
great confidence in the faith that is in Christ Jesus” (I Timothy 3:1-13).
“Do not neglect the grace that is in thee, granted to thee by reason of
prophecy with the laying on of hands of the presbyters. Meditate on these
things; give thyself entirely to them, that thy progress may be manifest to
all. Take heed to thyself and to thy teaching, be earnest in them. For in so
doing thou wilt save both thyself and those who hear thee” (I Timothy
4:14-16).
“Let the presbyters who rule well be held worthy of double honor,
especially those who labor in the word and in teaching” (I Timothy 5:17).
“Do not lay hands hastily upon anyone, and do not be a partner in other
men’s sins” (I Timothy 5:22).
“For this reason I admonished thee to stir up the grace of God which is in
thee by the laying on of my hands” (II Timothy 1:6).
“For this reason I left thee in Crete, that thou shouldst set right anything
that is defective and shouldst appoint presbyters in every city, as I myself
directed thee to do. They must be blameless, married but once, having
believing children who are not accused of impurity or disobedience. For a
bishop must be blameless as being the steward of God, not proud, or ill-
tempered, or a drinker, or a brawler, or greedy for base gain; but
hospitable, gentle, reserved, just, holy, continent; holding fast the faithful
word which is in accordance with the teaching, that he may be able both to
exhort in sound doctrine and to confute opponents” (Titus 1:5-9).
“For every high priest taken from among men is appointed for men in the
things pertaining to God, that he may offer gifts and sacrifices for sins. He
is able to have compassion on the ignorant and erring, because he himself
also is beset with weakness, and by reason thereof is obliged to offer for
sins, as on behalf of the people, so also for himself. And no man takes the
honor to himself; he takes it who is called by God, as Aaron was”
(Hebrews 5:1-4).
“For every high priest is appointed to offer gifts and sacrifices.” (Hebrews
8:3).
“Likewise, you who are younger, be subject to the presbyters. And all of
you practice humility towards one another; for, ‘God resists the proud, but
gives grace to the humble’ ” (I Peter 5:1-5).
452. What are some of the requirements that a man may receive Holy
Orders worthily?
(a) Some of the preliminary signs of a vocation to the priesthood are: first,
that the boy or young man be capable of living habitually in the state of
grace; second, that he be attracted to the priesthood and manifest this
attraction by frequent confession and Communion, by a virtuous life, and
by a love of serving Mass.
“And the Lord spoke to Moses, saying: This is the law of the Levites:
From twenty-five years old and upwards, they shall go in to minister in the
tabernacle of the covenant” (Numbers 8:23-24).
“For the lips of the priest shall keep knowledge, and they shall seek the
law at his mouth: because he is the angel of the Lord of hosts” (Malachias
2:7).
“Let women keep silence in the churches, for it is not permitted them to
speak, but let them be submissive, as the Law also says” (I Corinthians
14:34).
“Let a woman learn in silence with all submission. For I do not allow a
woman to teach, or to exercise authority over men; but she is to keep
quiet” (I Timothy 2:11-12).
See also Scripture, question 451, Hebrews 5:1-4.
There are seven different orders in the Church: four minor orders and
three major orders.
The four minor orders are those of porter, lector, exorcist, and acolyte.
The function of the porter is to open and to shut the doors of the church.
At the top far left, a bishop is conferring the order of porter. He has the
candidate touch the keys of the church while pronouncing the words
which give him the custody of the keys.
“The Lord hath sworn, and he will not repent: ‘Thou art a priest forever
according to the order of Melchisedech’ ” (Psalm 109:4).
The chief supernatural powers of the priest are: to change bread and
wine into the body and blood of Christ in the Holy Sacrifice of the
Mass, and to forgive sins in the sacrament of Penance.
SCRIPTURE:
“He therefore said to them again, ‘Peace be to you! As the Father has sent
me, I also send you.’ When he had said this, he breathed upon them, and
said to them, ‘Receive the Holy Spirit; whose sins you shall forgive, they
are forgiven them; and whose sins you shall retain, they are retained’ ”
(John 20:21-23).
See Scripture, question 451, Luke 22:19-20.
455. Why should Catholics show reverence and honor to the priest?
(a) In showing reverence and honor to the priest one shows reverence and
honor to Christ Himself, for the priest in a very true sense is “another
Christ.” In this country it is the custom to honor priests by addressing
them with the title “Father.” The custom of tipping the hat to the priest is
praiseworthy. The proper way to address a bishop and an archbishop is “
Your Excellency;” a cardinal, “ Your Eminence.” The Pope is addressed
as “Your Holiness.”
SCRIPTURE:
“With all thy soul fear the Lord, and reverence his priests” (Ecclesiasticus
7:31).
“Pray therefore the Lord of the harvest to send forth laborers into his
harvest” (Matthew 9:38).
“He who receives you, receives me; and he who receives me, receives him
who sent me” (Matthew 10:40).
“And Jesus drew near and spoke to them saying, ‘All power in heaven and
on earth has been given to me. Go, therefore, and make disciples of all
nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of
the Holy Spirit, teaching them to observe all that I have commanded you;
and behold, I am with you all days, even unto the consummation of the
world’ ” (Matthew 28:18-20).
“He who hears you, hears me; and he who rejects you, rejects me; and he
who rejects me, rejects him who sent me” (Luke 10:16).
“You have not chosen me, but I have chosen you, and have appointed you
that you should go and bear fruit, and that your fruit should remain” (John
15:16).
“Now I exhort you, brethren, through our Lord Jesus Christ, and through
the charity of the Spirit, that you help me by your prayers to God for me”
(Romans 15:30).
“Obey your superiors and be subject to them, for they keep watch as
having to render an account of your souls; so that they may do this with
joy, and not with grief, for that would not be expedient for you” (Hebrews
13:17).
(2) When the priest administers Extreme Unction with a single anointing
he generally anoints the sick person’s (lips . . . hands . . . forehead).
(4) Extreme Unction takes away mortal sin (when the sick person would
be sorry for it if he were conscious . . . when the sick person has made a
bad confession . . . when the sick person is unaware that he is not
properly disposed but has made an act of imperfect contrition) .
(6) A man becomes a member of the clerical state (by receiving ‘the
clerical tonsure . . . by becoming a subdeacon . . . by becoming a priest) .
(7) The priest in a diocese who shares the bishop’s jurisdiction is called
the (dean . . . vicar general . . . chancellor).
(6) In serious accidents, crowds quickly gather, and then stand by idly.
Should Catholics in the group concern themselves to find out if the
victim is a Catholic? Why? If there is reason to believe that the accident
victim is a Catholic, should they bother themselves to go for a priest,
even if the person is considered dead? Why?
(7) Vergil, a Catholic, in a fit of despondency takes his own life. Harold,
a Catholic neighbor, suggests that someone send for the priest right away;
his wife Cora says that there’s no use of sending for a priest when a
person commits suicide. What is your opinion? Explain.
(8) Can dead people receive any sacrament? Explain your reply.
(9) What is the ceremony of the first tonsure? How many of the sacred
orders have been received by the bishop of your diocese? By your
pastor? By a subdeacon?
(10) Where are the future priests of your diocese being trained? Where
do they receive their high schooling? Their college course? Their special
training in theology?
(11) Stanislaus, an altar-boy, was helping the pastor decorate the altar
when two clergymen entered the sacristy. The pastor addressed one of
them as “Your Excellency” and the other as “Your Eminence.” To what
ranks of the clergy did these two belong?
(12) Dolores had the great privilege of seeing her brother Francis
ordained to the holy priesthood. Among the ceremonies she witnessed
were the following: Francis prostrated himself on the ground while the
Litany of the Saints was chanted, the bishop imposed his hands on the
head of Francis and then recited some prayers, the bishop anointed the
young man’s hands with blessed oil, then the bishop placed in his hands a
chalice and a paten with bread and wine. During which of these
ceremonies did Francis become a priest?
(13) After the ordination, Francis said to his sister: “This morning I
received two great supernatural powers.” Which powers?
(14) During the Holy Year, Anna visited Rome with her parents and, with
a number of other Americans, had an audience with the Pope. When the
Pope passed along the line of kneeling people he spoke to Anna, asking
her from what part of the United States she came. What title should Anna
have given the Pope when she answered him?
(15) Kenneth was out walking with Cyril, a Protestant friend, when they
met the pastor coming out of the church, evidently going on a sick-call.
Kenneth tipped his hat; the priest bowed slightly but did not stop to talk.
Later, Cyril asked Kenneth why he had shown to the priest this sign of
respect. Kenneth replied: “First, because he represents Jesus Christ;
second, because he was carrying the Blessed Sacrament to a sick
person.” Can you give Cyril a further explanation?
– LESSON 35 –
Matrimony
(b) God instituted marriage when He made Eve as a helpmate for Adam
in the garden of Eden.
(c) We know from the constant tradition of the Church that marriage was
made a sacrament by Our Lord sometime during His life on earth.
“And God created man to his own image; to the image of God he created
him. Male and female he created them. And God blessed them, saying:
Increase and multiply, and fill the earth” (Genesis 1:27-28).
“And the Lord God said: It is not good for man to be alone; let us make
him a help like unto himself.
“And the Lord God having formed out of the ground all the beasts of the
earth, and all the fowls of the air, brought them to Adam to see what he
would call them: for whatsoever Adam called any living creature the same
is its name.
“And Adam called all the beasts by their names, and all the fowls of the
air, and all the cattle of the field: but for Adam there was not found a
helper like himself.
“Then the Lord God cast a deep sleep upon Adam: and when he was fast
asleep, he took one of his ribs, and filled up flesh for it. “And the Lord
God built the rib which he took from Adam into a woman: and brought her
to Adam.
“And Adam said: This now is bone of my bones, and flesh of my flesh; she
shall be called woman, because she was taken out of man.
“Wherefore a man shall leave father and mother, and shall cleave to his
wife: and they shall be two in one flesh” (Genesis 2:18-24).
“It was said, moreover, ‘Whoever puts away his wife, let him give her a
written notice of dismissal.’ But I say to you that everyone who puts away
his wife, save on account of immorality, causes her to commit adultery;
and he who marries a woman who has been put away commits adultery”
(Matthew 5:31-32).
“And there came to him some Pharisees, testing him, and saying, ‘Is it
lawful for a man to put away his wife for any cause?’ But he answered and
said to them, ‘Have you not read that the Creator, from the beginning,
made them male and female, and said, “For this cause a man shall leave
his father and mother, and cleave to his wife, and the two shall become one
flesh?” Therefore now they are no longer two, but one flesh. What
therefore God has joined together, let no man put asunder.’ They said to
him, ‘Why then did Moses command to give a written notice of dismissal,
and to put her away?’ He said to them, ‘Because Moses, by reason of the
hardness of your heart, permitted you to put away your wives; but it was
not so from the beginning. And I say to you, that whoever puts away his
wife, except for immorality, and marries another, commits adultery; and he
who marries a woman who has been put away commits adultery.’ ”
(Matthew 19:3-9).
“Now concerning the things whereof you wrote to me: It is good for man
not to touch woman. Yet, for fear of fornication, let each man have his own
wife, and let each woman have her own husband. Let the husband render
to the wife her due, and likewise the wife to the husband. The wife has not
authority over her body, but the husband; the husband likewise has not
authority over his body, but the wife. Do not deprive each other, except
perhaps by consent, for a time, that you may give yourselves to prayer; and
return together again lest Satan tempt you because you lack self-control.
But this I say by way of concession, not by way of commandment. For I
would that you all were as I am myself; but each one has his own gift from
God, one in this way, and another in that” (I Corinthians 7:1-7).
See also John 2:1-10. Our Lord, by attending the marriage feast at Cana
and working His first miracle for the benefit of the bride and groom,
thereby sanctified the married state.
458. What is the chief duty of husband and wife in the married state?
(a) The duty of being faithful to each other means that the privileges of
husband and wife may be shared by them alone.
(b) Parents by the will of God have the primary right and obligation to
feed, clothe, shelter, and educate their children. This God-given right
may not be unjustly interfered with by any power on earth. Any law that
takes away or lessens this right and obligation is unjust.
SCRIPTURE:
“Take heed to keep thyself, my son, from all fornication: and beside thy
wife never endure to know a crime” (Tobias 4:13).
“He that loveth his son frequently chastiseth him: that he may rejoice in
his latter end and not grope after the doors of his neighbors.
“He that instructeth his son shall be praised in him and shall glory in him
in the midst of them of his household.
“He that teacheth his son maketh his enemy jealous: and in the midst of his
friends he shall glory in him.
“His father is dead, and he is as if he were not dead: for he hath left one
behind that is like himself.
“While he lived, he saw and rejoiced in him: and when he died, he was not
sorrowful, neither was he confounded before his enemies.
“For he left behind him a defender of his house against his enemies, and
one that will requite kindness to his friends.
“For the souls of his sons he shall bind up his wounds: and at every cry his
bowels shall be troubled.
“A horse not broken becometh stubborn: and a child left to himself will
become headstrong.
“Give thy son his way, and he shall make thee afraid: play with him, and
he shall make thee sorrowful.
“Laugh not with him: lest thou have sorrow, and at the last thy teeth be set
on edge.
“Give him not liberty in his youth: and wink not at his devices.
“Bow down his neck while he is young, and beat his sides while he is a
child: lest he grow stubborn, and regard thee not, and so be a sorrow of
heart to thee.
“Instruct thy son, and labor about him: lest his lewd behavior be an offense
to thee” (Ecclesiasticus 30:1-13).
“You have heard that it was said to the ancients, ‘Thou shalt not commit
adultery.’ But I say to you that anyone who so much as looks with lust at a
woman has already committed adultery with her in his heart” (Matthew
5:27-28).
“Be subject to one another in the fear of Christ. Let wives be subject to
their husbands as to the Lord; because a husband is head of the wife, just
as Christ is head of the Church, being himself savior of the body. But just
as the Church is subject to Christ, so also let wives be to their husbands in
all things.
“Husbands, love your wives, just as Christ also loved the Church, and
delivered himself up for her, that he might sanctify her, cleansing her in the
bath of water by means of the word; in order that he might present to
himself the Church in all her glory, not having spot or wrinkle or any such
thing, but that she might be holy and without blemish. Even thus ought
husbands also to love their wives as their own bodies. He who loves his
own wife, loves himself. For no one ever hated his own flesh; on the
contrary he nourishes and cherishes it; as Christ also does the Church
(because we are members of his body, made from his flesh and from his
bones).
‘For this cause a man shall leave his father and mother, and cleave to his
wife; and the two shall become one flesh.’
“And you, fathers, do not provoke your children to anger, but rear them in
the discipline and admonition of the Lord” (Ephesians 6:4).
459. Why does the bond of the sacrament of Matrimony last until the
death of husband or wife?
(a) Once a man and woman are completely united in the sacrament of
Matrimony, they remain truly husband and wife until the death of either
of them. A separation, a divorce, or an attempted marriage with another
person does not destroy the marriage bond.
(b) It is for the good of husband and wife, for the bodily and spiritual
welfare of their children, and for the good of society that God has
decreed that the marriage bond can be broken only by death.
SCRIPTURE:
“Do you not know, brethren (for I speak to those who know law), that the
Law has dominion over a man as long as he lives? For the married woman
is bound by the Law while her husband is alive; but if her husband die, she
is set free from the law of her husband. Therefore while her husband is
alive, she will be called an adulteress if she be with another man; but if her
husband dies, she is set free from the law of the husband, so that she is not
an adulteress if she has been with another man” (Romans 7:1-3).
“But I say to the unmarried and to widows, it is good for them if they so
remain, even as I. But if they do not have self-control, let them marry, for
it is better to marry than to burn. But to those who are married, not I, but
the Lord commands that a wife is not to depart from her husband, and if
she departs, that she is to remain unmarried or be reconciled to her
husband. And let not a husband put away his wife.
“To the others I say, not the Lord: If any brother has an unbelieving wife
and she consents to live with him, let him not put her away. And if any
woman has an unbelieving husband and he consents to live with her, let
her not put away her husband. For the unbelieving husband is sanctified by
the believing wife, and the unbelieving wife is sanctified by the believing
husband; otherwise your children would be unclean, but, as it is, they are
holy. But if the unbeliever departs, let him depart. For a brother or sister is
not under bondage in such cases, but God has called us to peace” (I
Corinthians 7:8-15).
(a) Because of the unity of the sacrament of Matrimony, any other sexual
union during the life of either party is adultery.
(b) Laws that permit remarriage during the life of husband or wife are
contrary to God’s laws. Even though civil law may permit remarriage,
such a marriage is sinful and not really a marriage at all, but rather an
adulterous union.
462. Why has the Catholic Church alone the right to make laws
regulating the marriages of baptized persons?
The Catholic Church alone has the right to make laws regulating the
marriages of baptized persons because the Church alone has
authority over the sacraments and over sacred matters affecting
baptized persons.
(a) Although the Catholic Church has the right to make laws regarding
the marriages of all baptized persons, the Church does not in all cases
bind baptized non-Catholics by these laws. Non-Catholics are bound by
the laws when, for example, they marry Catholics.
SCRIPTURE:
“For what have I to do with judging those outside?. . .For those outside
God will judge” (I Corinthians 5:12-13).
See Scripture, question 137, Matthew 16:18; Matthew 28:18-20; also question 459, I Corinthians
7:8-15.
463. What authority has the State regarding the marriages of baptized
persons?
(a) By the civil effects of matrimony are meant the rights and obligations
of husband and wife as citizens: for example, the right to a share in the
property of the other.
SCRIPTURE:
“Then he said to them, ‘Render, therefore, to Caesar the things that are
Caesar’s, and to God the things that are God’s’ ” (Matthew 22:2l).
(b) Even though one is not in the state of grace, a true marriage
nevertheless is contracted.
(c) He who receives this sacrament in the state of mortal sin commits a
mortal sin of sacrilege.
(b) Catholics who live together after such a marriage are living in sin just
as much as if they had never gone through such a ceremony.
(c) Catholics who attempt marriage in this fashion commit a mortal sin
and incur other punishments of the Church.
Matrimony (picture)
In the center, St. Joseph is espousing the Holy Virgin in the presence of
the high priest in the temple of Jerusalem. The flowering lily that St.
Joseph is holding in his hand recalls the manner in which he was chosen
to be the spouse of the Holy Virgin. When the Blessed Virgin Mary was
old enough to be married, the high priest gathered the young men of the
house of David who wished to marry her and gave to each one of them a
blessed branch, ordering them to carve their names upon them. Then he
put all the branches on the altar and prayed to the Lord to manifest His
choice. When he took the branches from the altar, Joseph’s alone was
covered with leaves and a white flower similar to a lily. On the right is a
young man who, upset at not having been chosen, breaks the branch that
he received from the high priest.
At the top left, the young Tobias and Sara prepare themselves for
marriage by fervent prayers. The angel Raphael is driving away a demon
who had killed Sara’s first seven husbands because of the bad
dispositions with which they had entered marriage with her. The
resolution that Tobias and Sara made to serve God in marriage obtained
for them the protection of the angel.
Above, on the right, is Adam, with Eve, whom God formed from one of
Adam’s ribs. God is blessing them, saying, “Be fruitful and multiply.”
(Genesis 1:28)
(a) Sinful and unhappy marriages frequently result from the company
keeping of Catholics with non-Catholics.
(c) Catholics who are eligible and who intend to marry should keep
company only with Catholics.
(d) The advice of parents and confessors should be sought, for they, more
than anyone else, are interested in the welfare of those who intend to
marry.
(e) Close association with those of the other sex causes many
temptations. Those who are keeping company must be especially diligent
in the practice of the virtues, especially chastity, which will lessen the
danger of committing sin.
(f) Those who intend to marry will find in the sacraments of Penance and
Holy Eucharist the most fruitful source of grace necessary to prepare
themselves for a holy and happy marriage.
SCRIPTURE:
“O how beautiful is the chaste generation with glory, for the memory
thereof is immortal: because it is known both with God and with men”
(Wisdom 4:1).
“Or do you not know that your members are the temple of the Holy Spirit,
who is in you, whom you have from God, and that you are not your own?
For you have been bought at a great price. Glorify God and bear him in
your body” (I Corinthians 6:19-20).
468. How can Catholics best obtain God’s blessing for their marriage?
Catholics can best obtain God’s blessing for their marriage by being
married at a Nuptial Mass and by receiving Holy Communion
devoutly.
(a) In a Nuptial Mass special blessings are asked for the bride and groom.
(b) When Catholics are not married at a Nuptial Mass they should
arrange to receive the nuptial blessing at a later date.
(c) Catholics who for any reason cannot be married at Mass should
receive Holy Communion on the morning of the wedding day.
SCRIPTURE:
For we are the children of saints: and we must not be joined together like
heathens that know not God. “So they both arose, and prayed earnestly
both together that health might be given them.
“And Tobias said: Lord God of our fathers, may the heavens and the earth,
and the sea, and the fountains, and the rivers, and all thy creatures that are
in them, bless thee.
“Thou madest Adam of the slime of the earth: and gavest him Eve for his
helper.
“And now, Lord, thou knowest, that not for fleshly lust do I take my sister
to wife, but only for the love of posterity, in which thy name may be
blessed forever and ever.
“Sara also said: Have mercy on us, O Lord, have mercy on us: and let us
grow old both together in health” (Tobias 8:5-10).
Just when Our Lord made Christian marriage a sacrament is not clear
from Sacred Scripture; but from a text of St. Paul we can infer that Christ
did raise marriage to this dignity. Writing to the Ephesians, St. Paul says
that the union between a Christian husband and wife is a sign or symbol
of the union between Christ and the Church (Ephesians, 5, 21-33). From
this principle we argue that since the union between Christ and the
Church is a supernatural union that produces grace, the union between
husband and wife must also be a supernatural union giving grace to the
couple– in other words, a sacrament. This doctrine is not indeed clearly
stated by St. Paul, but our inference is fully confirmed by the tradition of
the Church, which has always regarded marriage as one of the divine
means of grace, especially blessed by Our Saviour, intended to aid
Christian husbands and wives to be faithful to God and to each other, and
to perform exactly all the duties of their state of life.
The fact that a person has taken a private vow of chastity is an impeding
impediment; the bond of an already existing marriage is a diriment
impediment by divine law; the blood relationship between first or second
cousins is a diriment impediment by ecclesiastical law.
Before the marriage of a Catholic couple the law of the Church calls for
the publication of the banns–announcements of the coming marriage–to
be made in the parish of each of the parties on three Sundays or
feastdays. Then, if anyone believes that they should not marry because of
some impediment or other grave reason he should at once inform the
authorities of the Church. Those intending to marry should make
arrangements with one of the priests in the parish of the intended bride
(where the ceremony should ordinarily take place) at least a month
before the date of the marriage.
In a Catholic home where the husband and wife live according to the
Christian ideals as proposed by the Catholic Church there is true
contentment and happiness, even though material comforts and luxuries
may be lacking. They bring up their children religiously, with the
realization that God has sent them these little ones to be trained in His
love and to become one day citizens of heaven. Such a Catholic home is
truly an image of the home of Nazareth, in which dwelt the three holiest
persons that ever lived on earth–the Holy Family, Jesus, Mary and
Joseph.
RESOLUTION: Pray every day for your parents. If they are alive, ask
God to help them to live up to their obligations of the holy state of
Matrimony; if they are dead, pray that they may soon be admitted to the
kingdom of heaven.
STUDY HELPS
A. COLUMN SELECTION. (Join correctly the parts of the sentences in Columns I and II, by
placing the right key letter in the proper parenthesis.)
Column I
(5) To keep company with one who is not free to marry a Catholic (. .).
(7) The marriage impediment of one who has taken a private vow of
chastity (. .).
Column II
(F) is a sacrament.
(2) What very happy and very holy family group furnishes the ideal or
the pattern of the truly Catholic home?
(3) In the commentary on this lesson, the following are linked together:
Christ and the Church, husband and wife, grace. What point is made in
the paragraph, quoting St. Paul and the foregoing notions?
(4) Fidelis, Guy, and Malachy are Catholic boys in the sixth grade. They
were asked to list five favorite movie actors and five favorite movie
actresses. Of their 18 heroes and heroines, ten are persons who have been
married, divorced, and remarried, some of them several times, and one of
them five times. What conclusion do you draw about the wisdom of
picking your ideals, your heroes and heroines from moviedom?
(5) Who were the first married couple? Where were they married? Who
witnessed their marriage? Did they receive the sacrament of Matrimony?
Supply the reason for your answer to this last question.
(6) Zachary and Ulrica, Catholic husband and wife and parents of two
small children, have been quarrelling constantly for the past year. Some
of Ulrica’s friends are suggesting that she get a divorce and marry her
first lover, Artemas, who still loves her; she gets a civil divorce. May she
now marry Artemas? Please give the reason for your answer.
(7) When the pastor, Father Cyrus, announces the banns of marriage, he
adds a remark to the effect that if anyone knows of any impediment to
the marriage he is bound in conscience to report that impediment to the
proper authorities before the marriage takes place. What does Father
Cyrus mean by ‘impediment’ in this announcement?
(8) Eustace and Melissa, Catholics, are second cousins. They arrange for
their marriage, but through ignorance, fail to mention the fact that they
are related. Their wedding takes place at a Nuptial Mass. Have they
received the sacrament of Matrimony? Explain your reply.
(9) Roy and Leah, Catholics, run away from home to be married. Late
Saturday night they appear at the priest’s rectory, to be married ‘right
away.’ They grow very angry at the priest who explains to them that he
will not marry them since they are without the necessary documents, etc.
Were Roy and Leah justifiably angered?
(a) These holy things and actions are called sacramentals because they
resemble the sacraments in some ways.
(b) Only Christ could institute the sacraments; the Church has instituted
most of the sacramentals.
(c) The sacraments are signs which contain the sanctifying and
sacramental grace they signify; the sacramentals are signs but do not
contain the graces they signify.
(d) The sacraments have within themselves the power to give grace to
those who receive them with the right dispositions; the sacramentals do
not have within themselves this power.
SCRIPTURE:
“And they marched from mount Hor, by the way that leadeth to the Red
Sea, to compass the land of Edom. And the people began to be weary of
their journey and labor:
“And speaking against God and Moses, they said: Why didst thou bring us
out of Egypt, to die in the wilderness? There is no bread, nor have we any
waters: our soul now loatheth this very light food.
“Wherefore the Lord sent among the people fiery serpents, which bit them
and killed many of them.
“Upon which they came to Moses, and said: We have sinned, because we
have spoken against the Lord and thee. Pray that he may take away these
serpents from us. And Moses prayed for the people.
And the Lord said to him: Make a brazen serpent, and set it up for a sign.
Whosoever being struck shall look on it shall live.
“Moses therefore made a brazen serpent, and set it up for a sign: which
when they that were bitten looked upon, they were healed” (Numbers
21:4-9). “
And as Moses lifted up the serpent in the desert, even so must the Son of
Man be lifted up, that those who believe in him may not perish, but may
have life everlasting” (John 3:14-15).
See Numbers 19:1-22. In this passage God directed the Israelites to use material objects, i.e., ashes,
and water of purification in the worship of the Old Law.
The sacramentals obtain favors from God through the prayers of the
Church offered for those who make use of them, and through the
devotion they inspire.
471. What are the chief benefits obtained by the use of the
sacramentals?
The chief benefits obtained by the use of the sacramentals are: first, actual
graces; second, the forgiveness of venial sins; third, the remission of
temporal punishment; fourth, health of body and material blessings; fifth,
protection from evil spirits.
(a) Some of the blessings given by priests and bishops are: the blessings
of churches, of the sacred vessels and vestments, of the sick, of houses,
of crops, of palms, of ashes, and of holy water.
(b) Christ Himself cast out many evil spirits. He also gave His apostles
power and authority over all the devils (Luke 9:1) and declared that “ . . .
in my name they shall cast out devils” (Mark 16:17).
SCRIPTURE:
“And they came to the other side of the sea, to the country of the
Gerasenes; and as soon as he stepped out of the boat, there met him from
the tombs a man with an unclean spirit. This man lived in the tombs and no
one could any longer bind him, even with chains; for often he had been
bound with fetters and chains, and he had rent the chains asunder and
broken the fetters into pieces. And no one was able to control him. And
constantly, night and day, he was in the tombs and on the mountains,
howling and gashing himself with stones.
“And when he saw Jesus from afar, he ran and worshipped him, and crying
out with a loud voice, he said, ‘What have I to do with thee, Jesus, Son of
the most high God? I adjure thee by God, do not torment me!’ For he was
saying to him, ‘Go out of the man, thou unclean spirit.’
“And he asked him, ‘What is thy name?’ And he said to him, ‘My name is
Legion, for we are many!’ And he entreated him earnestly not to drive
them out of the country.
“Now a great herd of swine was there on the mountainside, feeding. And
the spirits kept entreating him, saying, ‘Send us into the swine, that we
may enter into them!’ And Jesus immediately gave them leave. And the
unclean spirits came out and entered into the swine; and the herd, in
number about two thousand, rushed down with great violence into the sea,
and were drowned in the sea” (Mark 5:1-3).
“And they kept eight days with joy, after the manner of the feast of the
tabernacles, remembering that not long before they had kept the feast of
the tabernacles when they were in the mountains and in dens, like wild
beasts. Therefore they now carried boughs and green branches and palms
for Him that had given them good success in cleansing his place” (II
Machabees 10:6-7)
“Little children were brought to him then that he might lay his hands on
them and pray; but the disciples rebuked them. But Jesus said to them, ‘Let
the little children be, and do not hinder them from coming to me, for of
such is the kingdom of heaven.’ And when he had laid his hands on them,
he departed from that place” (Matthew 19:13-15).
“And the whole multitude of the people were praying outside at the hour
of incense” (Luke 1:10).
“Then having summoned the twelve apostles, he gave them power and
authority over all the devils, and to cure diseases” (Luke 9:1).
“Whatever house you enter, first say, ‘Peace to this house!’ And if a son of
peace be there, your peace will rest upon him” (Luke 10:5-6).
“Now the seventy-two returned with joy, saying, ‘Lord, even the devils are
subject to us in thy name’ ” (Luke 10:17).
“Now he led them out towards Bethany, and he lifted up his hands and
blessed them” (Luke 24:50).
“Now the next day, the great crowd which had come to the feast, when
they heard that Jesus was coming to Jerusalem, took the branches of palms
and went forth to meet him” (John 12:12-13).
Since the evil spirits sometimes obsess or possess a person, the Church
has formulated certain solemn exorcisms to be used on such occasions in
order to drive the devils away. The law of the Church commands that no
one shall perform the solemn ceremony of exorcism except a priest who
has been authorized to do so by the bishop. Moreover, the priest is not
allowed to use these exorcisms until he has made a diligent examination
of the case to discover if the person is really being tormented by the
devil. For sometimes people are afflicted with nervous troubles which
bear a resemblance to diabolical possession.
(3) Our Lord gave His apostles power over the devils.
(6) A priest may not exorcise a possessed person solemnly unless he has
received permission from the bishop.
(9) One who wears a scapular can be certain that he will not be drowned.
(1) In the earliest use of the word “sacramental,” what meaning did the
Church attach to the word?
(2) On the afternoon of her First Holy Communion, Loretta was enrolled
in the five scapulars. What benefit will she derive from them?
(3) Edwin has his throat blessed on February 3rd, the feast of St. Blaise.
A week later he is absent from school with a very sore throat. Did the
blessing fail to work?
(4) Domitilla wants to know will it be all right to bring her cousin Prisca,
a Protestant child, to the blessing of children ceremony at St. Cecilia’s?
Domitilla, of course, is a Catholic. St. Cecilia’s is her parish church. Let
her know if she may take Prisca to receive the blessing.
(7) Simon, and three of his companions, go to the lake for a swim. On
arriving at the lake, Simon discovers that he left his scapulars at home.
The other boys have theirs, and wear them in the water. Martin, one of
the boys, knows that Simon will not go into the water unless he has his
scapulars with him. The distance back to Simon’s house is several miles.
Martin calls to Simon: “C’mon in, ‘Si’ and don’t worry about your
scapulars! The water’s fine!” Should “Si” take Martin’s advice? Why?
(8) Have scapulars, medals, badges and other articles of devotion any
spiritual power in themselves? What gives them spiritual value?
Spiritually, is there any difference between a bronze medal of the
Immaculate Conception, a silver one, and a gold one? Explain your
answer.
(9) On what day of the year are candles solemnly blessed? May they be
blessed on other days of the year?
(10) Emma, the oldest lady in the parish, is about to be prepared for death
by the pastor. What sacramentals will he ordinarily need in the
administration of the last rites? Is it advisable to keep these articles in a
box or a drawer in your home in case they are needed at any time?
(11) Leonie, in the seventh grade, has never missed a First Friday
Communion. She is convalescing at home from a serious illness.
Arrangements have been made with Father Genesius who will take Holy
Communion to her. At the foot of her bed, where she can see everything
easily, is a table, covered with a clean linen cloth. On it are the following
articles: a crucifix, two blessed, lighted candles, a glass of fresh water, a
small bottle of holy water, two small statues, one of the Sacred Heart, the
other, the Immaculate Conception, two small vases of red roses, freshly
cut from Leonie’s garden, a spoon, rosary beads, and a clean napkin.
Which of these articles are not sacramentals?
(12) Enumerate the fifteen mysteries of the rosary, grouping them in the
order in which one follows the other. Name each group of mysteries.
(13) Strange incidents began to happen in the Preston home. There were
unusual noises, voices were heard, articles were thrown about the room,
without any visible cause. Apparently it is a case of diabolical obsession.
To whom should the family have recourse? What can the priest do about
the matter?
(14) Denis has not been to the sacraments for many years, and when the
priest urges him to receive them, he says: “I will receive the sacraments
when I am in danger of death. I know I’ll have the opportunity of doing
so, because I wear a scapular and carry a rosary.” Do you think that the
attitude of Denis is praiseworthy? What would you tell him about his
assurance of receiving the sacraments in the hour of death?
(15) The chain of Mr. Madigan’s rosary frequently breaks, some of the
beads are lost, and of the remaining beads some are badly cracked. Mrs.
Madigan wants to buy him a new rosary but he prefers his old one for
sentimental reasons. Would it be better if he got a new rosary with all the
beads intact? In that event, what should he do with the old rosary?
(16) Mary’s mother keeps two blessed candles in the house. Recently
Mary had a party; she wanted to have lighted candles on the dining-room
table, but her devout mother refused her the use of the blessed candles for
this purpose. Mary, wondering if the blessing had made the two candles
holy, talked to the pastor about her problem. He told her that the candles
had received a constitutive blessing. Explain this term to Mary. Was her
mother’s refusal right?
– LESSON 37 –
Prayer
(a) It is the high privilege of angels and men to speak with God in prayer,
(b) We lift up our minds to God by fixing the attention of our mind on
Him; we lift up our hearts to Him by love.
SCRIPTURE:
“Let us lift up our hearts with our hands to the Lord in the heavens”
(Lamentations 3:41).
“Watch and pray, that you may not enter into temptation” (Matthew
26:41).
“And he also told them a parable-that they must always pray and not lose
heart” (Luke 18:1).
“Jesus said to her, ‘Woman, believe me, the hour is coming when neither
on this mountain nor in Jerusalem will you worship the Father. You
worship what you do not know; we worship what we know, for salvation is
from the Jews. But the hour is coming, and is now here, when the true
worshippers will worship the Father in spirit and in truth. For the Father
also seeks such to worship him. God is spirit, and they who worship him
must worship in spirit and in truth’ ” (John 4:21-24).
“Ask, and you shall receive, that your joy may be full” (John 16:24).
“Rejoice always. Pray without ceasing. In all things give thanks; for this is
the will of God in Christ Jesus regarding you all” (I Thessalonians 5:16-
18).
“The prayer of the humble and the meek hath always pleased thee” (Judith
9:16).
“Again, when you pray, you shall not be like the hypocrites, who love to
pray standing in the synagogues and at the street corners, in order that they
may be seen by men. Amen I say to you, they have received their reward.
But when thou prayest, go into thy room, and closing thy door, pray to thy
Father in secret; and thy Father, who sees in secret, will reward thee”
(Matthew 6:5-6).
“Therefore I say to you, do not be anxious for your life, what you shall eat;
nor yet for your body, what you shall put on. Is not the life a greater thing
than the food, and the body than the clothing? Look at the birds of the air:
they do not sow, or reap, or gather into barns; yet your heavenly Father
feeds them. Are not you of much more value than they? But which of you
by being anxious about it can add to his stature a single cubit? (Matthew
6:25-27).
“Ask, and it shall be given you; seek, and you shall find; knock, and it
shall be opened to you. For everyone who asks, receives; and he who
seeks, finds; and to him who knocks, it shall be opened. Or what man is
there among you, who, if his son asks him for a loaf, will hand him a
stone; or if he asks for a fish, will hand him a serpent? Therefore, if you,
evil as you are, know how to give good gifts to your children, how much
more will your Father in heaven give good things to those who ask him!”
(Matthew 7:7-11).
“Hypocrites, well did Isaias prophesy of you, saying, ‘This people honors
me with their lips, but their heart is far from me.’ ” (Matthew 15:7-8).
“And all things whatever you ask for in prayer, believing, you shall
receive” (Matthew 21-22).
“But he spoke this parable also to some who trusted in themselves as being
just and despised others. ‘Two men went up to the temple to pray, the one a
Pharisee and the other a publican. The Pharisee stood and began to pray
thus within himself: “O God, I thank thee that I am not like the rest of
men, robbers, dishonest, adulterers, or even like this publican. I fast twice
a week; I pay tithes of all that I possess.” But the publican, standing afar
off, would not so much as lift up his eyes to heaven, but kept striking his
breast, saying, “O God, be merciful to me the sinner!” I tell you, this man
went back to his home justified rather than the other; for everyone who
exalts himself shall be humbled, and he who humbles himself shall be
exalted’ ” (Luke 18:9-14).
“And whatever you ask in my name, that I will do” (John 14:13).
“If you abide in me, and if my words abide in you, ask whatever you will
and it shall be done to you” (John 15:7).
“Amen, amen, I say to you, if you ask the Father anything in my name, he
will give it to you. Hitherto you have not asked anything in my name. Ask,
and you shall receive, that your joy may be full” (John 16:23-24).
“Let us therefore draw near with confidence to the throne of grace, that we
may obtain mercy and find grace to help in time of need” (Hebrews 4:16).
“For Jesus, in the days of his earthly life, with a loud cry and tears, offered
up prayers and supplications to him who was able to save him from death,
and was heard because of his reverent submission” (Hebrews 5:7).
“But if any of you is wanting in wisdom, let him ask it of God, who gives
abundantly to all men, and does not reproach; and it will be given to him.
But let him ask with faith, without hesitation. For he who hesitates is like a
wave of the sea, driven and carried about by the wind” (James 1:5-6).
“For the unceasing prayer of a just man is of great avail” (James 5:16).
“And the confidence that we have towards him is this, that if we ask
anything according to his will, he hears us. And we know that he hears us
whatever we ask; we know that the requests we make of him are granted”
(I John 5:14-15).
“It is therefore a holy and wholesome thought to pray for the dead, that
they may be loosed from sins” (II Machabees 12:46).
“But I say to you, love your enemies, do good to those who hate you, and
pray for those who persecute and calumniate you, so that you may be
children of your Father in heaven, who makes his sun to rise on the good
and the evil, and sends rain on the just and the unjust” (Matthew 5:44-45).
“Watch and pray, that you may not enter into temptation. The spirit indeed
is willing, but the flesh is weak” (Matthew 26:41).
“Now I exhort you, brethren, through our Lord Jesus Christ, and through
the charity of the Spirit, that you help me by your prayers to God for me,
that I may be delivered from the unbelievers in Judea . . .” (Romans 15:30-
31).
“Pray for one another, that you may be saved. For the unceasing prayer of
a just man is of great avail” (James 5:16).
See Scripture, question 476, Matthew 6:9-13; question 477, Matthew 7:7-
11; Matthew 21:22; John 16:23-24; and I John 5:14-15.
479. How do we know that God always hears our prayers if we pray
properly?
(a) God is ever ready to grant our salutary petitions, but He requires us to
ask Him by prayer to do so. Prayer, therefore, is the condition God has
laid down for us to obtain His graces and blessings. He always answers
our prayers in the way that is best for us.
SCRIPTURE:
“And whatever you ask in my name, that I will do, in order that the Father
may be glorified in the Son. If you ask me anything in my name, I will do
it” (John 14:13-14).
“If you abide in me, and if my words abide in you, ask whatever you will
and it shall be done to you” (John 15:7).
See Scripture, question 477, John 16:23-24.
480. Why do we not always obtain what we pray for?
(b) God always knows what is best for us. We do not. He knows that
often what seems good for us would harm us bodily or spiritually. No
prayer is ever unanswered by God, though it is not always answered
according to our petitions.
SCRIPTURE:
“Then shall they call upon me, and I will not hear: they shall rise in the
morning and shall not find me. Because they have hated instruction, and
received not the fear of the Lord, nor consented to my counsel, but
despised all my reproof” (Proverbs 1:28-30).
“He that turneth away his ears from hearing the law, his prayers shall be an
abomination” (Proverbs 28:9).
“You ask and do not receive, because you ask amiss, that you may spend it
upon your passions” (James 4:3).
(a) Many distractions arise from natural causes, such as worry, anxiety, or
bodily affliction.
There are two kinds of prayer: mental prayer and vocal prayer.
Mental prayer is that prayer by which we unite our hearts with God
while thinking of His holy truths.
SCRIPTURE:
“Let thy thoughts be upon the precepts of God, and meditate continually
on his commandments: and he will give thee a heart; and the desire of
wisdom shall be given to thee” (Ecclesiasticus 6:37).
“For the rest, brethren, whatever things are true, whatever honorable,
whatever just, whatever holy, whatever lovable, whatever of good repute,
if there be any virtue, if anything worthy of praise, think upon these
things” (Philippians 4:8).
See Psalm 118 for an example of mental prayer.
Vocal prayer is that prayer which comes from the mind and heart
and is spoken by the lips.
(a) Vocal prayer can also be taken to mean all bodily prayer, such as
genuflections, the bowing of the head, and the folding of hands.
(b) By vocal prayer man recognizes God’s sovereignty over the whole
man, body and soul.
(c) The use of the voice or the prayerful attitude of the body also excites
greater fervor of soul. For example, those who have difficulty in merely
meditating on the Passion often find it easy to make the Stations of the
Cross, or to say the Sorrowful Mysteries of the Rosary. For many, a
simple genuflection is the most expressive of their acts of faith in the
Real Presence of Christ in the Eucharist.
“With my voice I called upon the Lord, and he hearkened to me from his
holy mountain” (Psalm 3:5).
“O Lord, thou wilt open my lips, and my mouth shall declare thy praise”
(Psalms 50:17).
“For where two or three are gathered together for my sake, there am I in
the midst of them” (Matthew 18:20).
“At the name of Jesus every knee should bend of those in heaven, on earth
and under the earth, and every tongue should confess that the Lord Jesus
Christ is in the glory of God the Father” (Philippians 2:10-11).
486. What are the prayers that every Catholic should know by heart?
The prayers that every Catholic should know by heart are: the Our
Father, the Hail Mary, the Apostles’ Creed, the Confiteor, the Glory
be to the Father, and the acts of faith, hope, charity, and contrition.
SCRIPTURE:
“Now in the sixth month the angel Gabriel was sent from God to a town of
Galilee called Nazareth, to a virgin betrothed to a man named Joseph, of
the house of David, and the virgin’s name was Mary. And when the angel
had come to her, he said, ‘Hail, full of grace, the Lord is with thee. Blessed
art thou among women.’ When she had heard him she was troubled at his
word, and kept pondering what manner of greeting this might be” (Luke
1:26-29).
“Now in those days Mary arose and went with haste into the hill country,
to a town of Juda. And she entered the house of Zachary and saluted
Elizabeth. And it came to pass, when Elizabeth heard the greeting of Mary,
that the babe in her womb leapt. And Elizabeth was filled with the Holy
Spirit, and cried out with a loud voice, saying, ‘Blessed art thou among
women and blessed is the fruit of thy womb! And how have I deserved that
the mother of my Lord should come to me? For behold, the moment that
the sound of thy greeting came to my ears, the babe in my womb leapt for
joy. And blessed is she who has believed, because the things promised her
by the Lord shall be accomplished’ ” (Luke 1:39-45).
See Scripture, question 476, Matthew 6:9-13.
We usually begin and end our prayers with the sign of the cross.
SCRIPTURE:
“And Jesus drew near and spoke to them saying, ‘All power in heaven and
on earth has been given to me. Go, therefore, and make disciples of all
nations, baptizing them in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of
the Holy Spirit’ ” (Matthew 28:18-19).
“And the Word was made flesh, and dwelt among us” (John 1:14).
“And as Moses lifted up the serpent in the desert, even so must the Son of
Man be lifted up, that those who believe in him may not perish, but may
have life everlasting. For God so loved the world that he gave his only-
begotten Son, that those who believe in him may not perish, but may have
life everlasting” (John 3:14-16).
“And bearing the cross for himself, he went forth to the place called the
Skull, in Hebrew, Golgotha, where they crucified him” (John 19:17-18).
“Who himself bore our sins in his body upon the tree, that we, having died
to sin, might live to justice; and by his stripes you were healed” (I Peter
2:24).
See Scripture, Lesson 3; also question 487, Matthew 28:18-19).
489. How are these mysteries expressed by the sign of the cross?
When we say “In the name,” we express the truth that there is only
one God; when we say “of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy
Ghost,” we express the truth that there are three distinct Persons in
God; and when we make the form of the cross on ourselves, we
express the truth that the Son of God, made man, redeemed us by
His death on the cross.
Although prayer is intended not only to ask God for favors but also to
praise and to thank Him and to make reparation for sin, we often use the
word in the restricted sense of asking benefits, whether spiritual or
temporal. This is the prayer of petition. To this prayer Christ has attached
unfailing efficacy, provided it is offered with the necessary qualities, for
He said: “Amen, amen, I say to you if you ask the Father anything in my
name, He will give it to you” (John, 16:23). Of course, for the fulfillment
of this promise we must pray humbly and perseveringly, and confidingly.
Sometimes God does not grant us a favor the first time we ask; He
wishes us to continue to implore His mercy. Moreover, we cannot expect
Him to grant us a temporal favor, such as health and riches, if he foresees
that it would be harmful to our soul, anymore than we could expect a
mother to give her child a knife, for which he is crying, since she knows
he would injure himself. Finally, we must remember that Our Lord spoke
of prayer offered for ourselves. We can and should pray for others, and
we can often obtain for them precious favors; but infallible efficacy is
attached to prayer only when a person prays for himself.
Vocal prayers are also recommended by the Church, and many of them,
such as the rosary and the litanies, are richly indulgenced. However, it
would be a mistake to imagine that the more vocal prayers a person
recites, the holier he is. It is better to say a few vocal prayers slowly and
attentively than to recite a large number hurriedly and with little
attention.
The sign of the cross, with which we Catholics begin and end our
prayers, is not merely our profession of faith in the Holy Trinity and the
Redemption, but is also our petition for the blessing of the three divine
Persons on our lives and actions. Hence, we should always make the sign
of the cross reverently. It is disedifying to see this holy sign made so
carelessly and so rapidly that one can hardly recognize what it is intended
to be. The Church grants an indulgence of 100 days to the faithful as
often as they make the sign of the cross with the prescribed words, and
300 days whenever they make it with holy water.
STUDY HELPS
A. WORD SELECTION. (Select the word or phrase in the parentheses which most exactly and
most completely fills out the sentence.)
(2) A prayer endowed with the proper qualities (always obtains what we
ask . . . may be entirely rejected by God . . . is always answered though
not necessarily according to our petition).
(3) On the cross Our Lord prayed (that His enemies might be pardoned . .
. that the chalice might pass from Him . . . that His pains might be
lessened).
(4) Distractions are not displeasing to God (when they are not willful . .
.when they arise from bodily affliction . . . when they are temptations of
the devil).
(6) The promise of infallible efficacy for prayer was made by (God the
Father . . . Jesus Christ . . . the Blessed Virgin).
(7) In making the sign of the cross we express two truths - the Holy
Trinity and (the Redemption . . . the Incarnation . . . the Resurrection).
(9) St. Paul tells us that every knee should bend at the name of (the Holy
Ghost . . . Jesus Christ . . . the Blessed Virgin).
(10) The book of the Bible that tells us it is a holy and wholesome
thought to pray for the dead is (Genesis . . . the First Book of Machabees
. . . the Second Book of Machabees).
(2) From memory, write the words of Our Lord’s promise concerning
prayer.
(3) Zoe finds it hard to pay attention to her prayers at Holy Mass. Advise
her what to do during the time of the Holy Sacrifice that will fasten her
attention to what is going on at the holy altar of God.
(4) Collette’s oldest sister is a nun in the convent. Collette says her sister
makes meditation twice every day. What is meditation?
(5) Helen is trying to persuade the members of her family to recite the
rosary in common every evening. What arguments can you suggest that
will help her to obtain her request?
(6) Rocco bets Dunstan that he knows more ejaculatory prayers by heart
than Dunstan. Dunstan accepts the wager. Fiorello, the judge who is to
decide the winner, suggests that they both write out from memory the
ejaculations they know. Each writes out his list and hands it to Fiorello.
Neither wins, because each of them wrote out nine ejaculations. Can you
write ten? Try it!
(7) George is riding in a bus. His mother is very sick. George is inspired
to pray for her as he rides along to his destination. But he stops after the
first Hail Mary, as he is ashamed of having people see him move his lips
in prayer. He noticed a man looking at him, and he felt embarrassed.
Could George have prayed without moving his lips? Why?
(9) Dympna says she finds it hardest to say her meal prayers every day.
Eulalia says the morning prayers are the hardest for her to say. Lucy says
that for her the hardest of all her daily prayers are the night prayers.
Which do you find the hardest to say? Why?
(11) Why is the church the most appropriate place in which to pray?
(14) What great Neapolitan saint of the 18th century is called the Doctor
of Prayer? What is his well-known saying about the necessity of prayer
for the salvation of our souls?
– LESSON 38 –
The Our Father
The Our Father is the best of all prayers because it is the Lord’s
Prayer, taught us by Jesus Christ Himself, and because it is a prayer
of perfect and unselfish love.
491. Why is the Our Father a prayer of perfect and unselfish love?
“Jesus said to them, ‘My food is to do the will of him who sent me, to
accomplish his work’ ” (John 4:34).
See Scripture, question 189, Matthew 22:35-40.
“And God created man to his own image; to the image of God he created
him. Male and female he created them” (Genesis 1:27).
“But I say to you, love your enemies, do good to those who hate you, and
pray for those who persecute and calumniate you, so that you may be
children of your Father in heaven” (Matthew 5:44-45).
“In my Father’s house there are many mansions. Were it not so, I should
have told you, because I go to prepare a place for you” (John 14:2).
“In that day you shall ask in my name; and I do not say to you that I will
ask the Father for you, for the Father himself loves you because you have
loved me, and have believed that I came forth from God” (John 16:26-27).
“For whoever are led by the Spirit of God, they are the sons of God. Now
you have not received a spirit of bondage so as to be again in fear, but you
have received a spirit of adoption as sons, by virtue of which we cry,
‘Abba! Father!’ The Spirit himself gives testimony to our spirit that we are
sons of God. But if we are sons, we are heirs also: heirs indeed of God and
joint heirs with Christ, provided, however, we suffer with him that we may
also be glorified with him” (Romans 8:14-17).
“Behold what manner of love the Father has bestowed upon us, that we
should be called children of God; and such we are. This is why the world
does not know us, because it did not know him. Beloved, now we are the
children of God, and it has not yet appeared what we shall be. We know
that, when he appears, we shall be like to him, for we shall see him just as
he is. And everyone who has this hope in him makes himself holy, just as
he also is holy” (1 John 3:1-3).
See Scripture, question 477, Matthew 6:25-27.
“Let us sing a hymn to the Lord: let us sing a new hymn to our God.
“O Adonai, Lord, greatest art thou, and glorious in thy power: and no one
can overcome thee. Let all thy creatures serve thee: because thou hast
spoken, and they were made: thou didst send forth thy spirit, and they were
created. And there is no one that can resist thy voice.
“The mountains shall be moved from the foundations with the waters: the
rocks shall melt as wax before thy face. But they that fear thee, shall be
great with thee in all things.
“Woe be to the nation that riseth up against my people: for the Lord
almighty will take revenge on them. In the day of judgment he will visit
them. For he will give fire, and worms into their flesh, that they may burn,
and may feel forever” (Judith 16:15-21).
“From the rising of the sun unto its going down, may the name of the Lord
be praised” (Psalm 112:1-3).
“Even so let your light shine before men, in order that they may see your
good works and give glory to your Father in heaven” (Matthew 5:16).
“For the kingdom of God does not consist in food and drink, but in justice
and peace and joy in the Holy Spirit” (Romans 14:17).
“Now this I say, brethren, that flesh and blood can obtain no part in the
kingdom of God, neither shall corruption have any part in incorruption” (I
Corinthians 15:50).
“Now the works of the flesh are manifest, which are immorality,
uncleanness, licentiousness, idolatry, witchcrafts, enmities, contentions,
jealousies, anger, quarrels, factions, parties, envies, murders, drunkenness,
carousings, and suchlike. And concerning these I warn you, as I have
warned you, that they who do such things will not attain the kingdom of
God” (Galatians 5:19-21).
495. For what do we pray when we say “Thy will be done on earth as
it is in heaven?”
“Not everyone who says to me, ‘Lord, Lord,’ shall enter the kingdom of
heaven; but he who does the will of my Father in heaven shall enter the
kingdom of heaven” (Matthew 7:21).
“And he himself withdrew from them about a stone’s thrown, and kneeling
down, he began to pray, saying, ‘Father, if thou art willing, remove this
cup from me; yet not my will but thine be done’ ” (Luke 22:41-42).
See Scripture, question 491, John 4:34.
496. For what do we pray when we say “Give us this day our daily
bread?”
When we say “Give us this day our daily bread” we pray that God
will give us each day all that is necessary to support the material life
of our bodies and the spiritual life of our souls.
SCRIPTURE:
“Therefore I say to you, do not be anxious for your life, what you shall eat;
nor yet for your body, what you shall put on. Is not the life a greater thing
than the food, and the body than the clothing? Look at the birds of the air:
they do not sow, or reap, or gather into barns; yet your heavenly Father
feeds them. Are not you of much more value than they? But which of you
by being anxious about it can add to his stature a single cubit?
“And as for clothing, why are you anxious? Consider how the lilies of the
field grow; they neither toil nor spin, yet I say to you that not even
Solomon in all his glory was arrayed like one of these. But if God so
clothes the grass of the field, which flourishes today but tomorrow is
thrown into the oven, how much more you, O you of little faith!’ Therefore
do not be anxious, saying, ‘What shall we eat?’ or, ‘What shall we drink?’
or, ‘What are we to put on?’ (for after all these things the Gentiles seek);
for your Father knows that you need all these things. But seek first the
kingdom of God and his justice, and all these things shall be given you
besides” (Matthew 6:25-33).
“Jesus therefore said to them, ‘Amen, amen, I say to you, unless you eat
the flesh of the Son of Man, and drink his blood, you shall not have life in
you’ ”(John 6:54).
“For my flesh is food indeed, and my blood is drink indeed” (John 6:56).
“This is why we too have been praying for you unceasingly, since the day
we heard this, and asking that you may be filled with knowledge of his
will, in all spiritual wisdom and understanding. May you walk worthily of
God and please him in all things, bearing fruit in every good work and
growing in the knowledge of God” (Colossians 1:9-10).
See Scripture, question 476, Matthew 6:9-13.
497. For what do we pray when we say “and forgive us our trespasses
as we forgive those who trespass against us?”
“For if you forgive men their offenses, your heavenly Father will also
forgive you your offenses. But if you do not forgive men, neither will your
Father forgive you your offenses” (Matthew 6:14-15).
“Then his master called him, and said to him, ‘Wicked servant! I forgave
thee all the debt, because thou didst entreat me. Shouldst not thou also
have had pity on thy fellow-servant, even as I had pity on thee?’ And his
master, being angry, handed him over to the torturers until he should pay
all that was due to him. So also my heavenly Father will do to you, if you
do not each forgive your brothers from your hearts” (Matthew 18:32-35).
“And when you stand up to pray, forgive whatever you have against
anyone, that your Father in heaven may also forgive you your offenses.
But if you do not forgive, neither will your Father in heaven forgive you
your offenses” (Mark 11:25-26).
498. For what do we pray when we say “and lead us not into
temptation?”
When we say “and lead us not into temptation,” we pray that God
will always give us the grace to overcome the temptations to sin
which come to us from the world, the flesh, and the devil.
SCRIPTURE:
“The imagination and thought of man’s heart are prone to evil from his
youth” (Genesis 8:21).
“Therefore let him who thinks he stands take heed lest he fall. May no
temptation take hold of you but such as man is equal to. God is faithful and
will not permit you to be tempted beyond your strength, but with the
temptation will also give you a way out that you may be able to bear it” (I
Corinthians 10:12-13).
“Let no man say when he is tempted, that he is tempted by God; for God is
no tempter to evil, and he himself tempts no one. But everyone is tempted
by being drawn away and enticed by his own passion. Then when passion
has conceived, it brings forth sin” (James 1:13-15).
“Be sober, be watchful! For your adversary the devil, as a roaring lion,
goes about seeking someone to devour. Resist him, steadfast in the faith,
knowing that the same suffering befalls your brethren all over the world.
But the God of all grace, who has called us unto his eternal glory in Christ
Jesus, will himself, after we have suffered a little while, perfect, strengthen
and establish us” (I Peter 5:8-10).
499. For what do we pray when we say “but deliver us from evil?”
When we say “but deliver us from evil,” we pray that God will
always protect us from harm, and especially from harm to our souls.
SCRIPTURE:
“And call upon me in the day of trouble: I will deliver thee, and thou shalt
glorify me” (Psalm 49:15).
“I do not pray that thou take them out of the world, but that thou keep
them from evil” (John 17:15).
The Catholic Church has always honored the Blessed Virgin Mary.
However, the use of the “Hail Mary” developed only gradually in the
course of the centuries. At first this prayer contained only the portions
given in the New Testament in the words of the Archangel Gabriel and
St. Elizabeth. Later, around the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries, the
custom arose of adding the words: “Holy Mary, Mother of God, pray for
us.” The form of this prayer as we have it today was officially approved
by the Church in the year 1570.
There are many other vocal prayers to Our Lord, Our Lady and the Saints
approved by the Church. These can be found in authorized prayerbooks.
Among the best known of these prayers to the Blessed Virgin are the
“Hail, Holy Queen,” the “Angelus,” and the Litany of the Blessed Virgin.
There are also other Litanies in use in the Church, especially the Litany
of the Holy Name of Jesus, the Litany of the Sacred Heart, the Litany of
St. Joseph, the Litany of the Saints, and the Litany of the Dying. Every
Catholic should have a prayerbook and use the prayers according to his
particular needs and devotion. Catholics should be on their guard against
unauthorized prayers, especially those known as “chain-prayers,” which
people pass from one to another, and which are supposed to confer
wonderful favors if recited a certain number of times. Such prayers are
superstitious, and often even opposed to the Church’s doctrines. A
Catholic should destroy any copy of such a prayer that is given to him,
and should refuse to pass copies to others.
In regard to the use of vocal prayers, two points are to be noted. First, we
should recite these prayers carefully, and without too great haste. Some
Catholics are very diligent in reciting many vocal prayers, but they
mumble them hastily, mispronouncing and cutting off syllables. It would
be better if they said fewer prayers, but said them reverently. Second, we
must remember that prayers said with the lips are of no value unless they
come from the heart. Hence, while reciting our vocal prayers we should
try to avoid distractions and to be attentive to the great act we are
performing.
STUDY HELPS
A. COLUMN SELECTION. (Join correctly the parts of the sentences in Columns I and II, by
placing the right key letter in the proper parenthesis.)
Column I
(3) We pray that all men may know and enter the true Church when we
say (. .).
Column II
(H) to indicate that all human beings are one great family.
(1) Every now and then after Holy Communion, Willibrord, instead of
reading the Acts of Thanksgiving from his prayerbook, recites slowly
and thoughtfully the Our Father from five to ten times. Do you think that
he is making a good thanksgiving on such occasions? Why?
(2) Earl, Columba, Rene, and Isaac are having a discussion. Earl claims
that the Lord’s Prayer is addressed to God the Father; Columba says it is
to God the Son; Rene holds that it is directed to God the Holy Ghost,
while Isaac maintains that the Our Father is said to the Most Blessed
Trinity. Who is right?
(5) How many kingdoms of God are discussed in this lesson? Where are
they?
(6) Elgius would like to know if the Hail Mary is a prayer of praise. If so,
tell him who are praised in the Hail Mary.
(7) Who were the first creatures to utter the terms of praise now
enshrined in the Hail Mary?
(10) Jack and Tom get into a discussion about the meaning of the word
“hallowed” in the Our Father. Jack contends that it means “shouted”
while Tom says that it means “repeated.” Can you settle the argument by
telling in your own words the true meaning of “hallowed?”
(11) Erasmus, Claud, and Crispin know the Litany of the Blessed Virgin
by heart. Can you name four other litanies in general use-litanies
approved by the church? Which are they?
(13) Walter finds a chain prayer in the back of the church. He reads it,
and becomes frightened because it threatens that bad luck will fall on the
one who refuses to write the prayer out nine times and distribute it to
nine others. Advise him what to do.
(14) Eligius asked Fr. Honorius why it is that in the Our Father we ask
God not to lead us into temptation. Since God is all-good and wishes us
to avoid sin, it seems strange that He should ever lead us into temptation.
What answer do you think Fr. Honorius gave to Eligius?
Our reason points out the truth of the Catholic religion by these
principles:
fourth,
the religion God has revealed through Christ is worthy of
belief;
We can prove that there is a God because this vast universe could not
have come into existence, nor be so beautiful and orderly, except by
the almighty power and the wisdom of an eternal and intelligent
Being.
We can prove that the soul of man is immortal because man’s acts of
intelligence are spiritual; therefore, his soul must be a spiritual
being, not dependent on matter, and hence not subject to decay or
death.
4. How can we prove that all men are obliged to practice religion?
We can prove that all men are obliged to practice religion because all
men are entirely dependent on God and must recognize that
dependence by honoring Him and praying to Him.
5. How can we prove that the religion God has revealed through
Christ is worthy of belief?
We can prove that the religion God has revealed through Christ is
worthy of belief, because:
second, Christ worked wonderful miracles, which show that the God of
truth approved His teachings.
6. How can we prove that Christ established a Church which all are
obliged to join?
We can prove that Christ established a Church which all are obliged
to join, because:
second, He promised that this Church would last until the end of time;
third, He declared that all men must believe and be baptized, that is,
join His Church, in order to be saved.
7. How can we prove that the only true Church of Christ is the
Catholic Church?
We can prove that the only true Church of Christ is the Catholic
Church, because:
first, only the Catholic Church possesses the marks of the Church
established by Christ, that is, unity, holiness, catholicity, and
apostolicity;
second,
the history of the Catholic Church gives evidence of
miraculous strength, permanence, and unchangeableness, thus
showing the world that it is under the special protection of God.
8. Whence do we chiefly derive our historical knowledge of Jesus
Christ, His life and teachings, and of the Church He established?
9. What else are the books of the Bible besides being reliable historical
records?
Besides being reliable historical records, the books of the Bible are
the inspired word of God, that is, written by men with such direct
assistance of the Holy Ghost as to make God their true Author.
The Bible is divided into the Old Testament and the New Testament;
the Old Testament being the inspired books written before the time
of Jesus Christ, and the New Testament the inspired books written
after His coming.
11. Are all the truths revealed for us by God found in the Bible?
Not all the truths revealed for us by God are found in the Bible; some
are found only in Divine Tradition.
14. How can we know the true meaning of the doctrines contained in
the Bible and in Divine Tradition?
We can know the true meaning of the doctrines contained in the
Bible and in Divine Tradition from the Catholic Church, which has
been authorized by Jesus Christ to explain His doctrines, and which
is preserved from error in its teachings by the special assistance of
the Holy Ghost.
15. How can we best show our gratitude to God for making us
members of the only true Church of Jesus Christ?
first,
by praying for the missions, home and foreign, and for
missionaries that they may fulfill the command of Christ: “Go,
therefore, and make disciples of all nations”;
third,
by making sacrifices for the missions, that is, by helping to
support them and by personal service;
Bearing this in mind, the question naturally arises: Why are there so
many persons outside the Catholic Church? There are many reasons for
this. Many of those persons have never had the opportunity of studying
the Catholic religion; many are so absorbed in the interests of the present
life that they have no care for the welfare of their immortal soul; many
have prejudices and false ideas concerning the Catholic Church. It must
be admitted that sometimes Catholics themselves are to blame, by their
wicked lives, which lead people to the erroneous conclusion that the
Catholic religion cannot be true. For it is quite usual to judge the merits
of a religion by the conduct of some of those who profess it.
Often the statement is made that Catholics are intolerant. This is partially
true and partially false. Catholics are not intolerant toward persons
belonging to other religions; for the Catholic religion commands that we
be charitable toward all men and regard those who differ from us in
religious matters as being sincere in their belief. But Catholics are
intolerant toward doctrines opposed to the teachings of the Catholic
Church in the sense that they logically regard such doctrines as false
since they are contrary to the teachings of the true Church which is
protected from error by the Holy Ghost.
The Catholic Church has been authorized by Christ to teach the truths of
divine revelation, found in the Bible and in divine Tradition. The Bible
contains 72 books–45 in the Old Testament and 27 in the New Testament.
Most of the books of the Old Testament were originally written in
Hebrew and most of the books of the New Testament in Greek. The
Church can teach and explain authoritatively and infallibly not only the
doctrines that are contained in the Bible and in divine Tradition, but also
doctrines which have not been revealed but are connected with divine
revelation; and Catholics are bound in conscience to accept these
teachings of the Church.
There is need of Catholics who understand their religion and perceive
how reasonable it is to accept its teachings, and who will bring to their
non-Catholic friends, when the opportunity is offered, the arguments for
their faith. Often a Catholic lay person can be the means of leading a soul
to the knowledge of the truth. But only Catholics who know their religion
thoroughly can hope to perform such a deed of charity, for objections and
difficulties in great numbers are brought up, and if a non-Catholic sees
that the Catholic cannot give a satisfactory answer, he will wrongly
conclude that the Catholic religion offers a very unsatisfactory solution
of the problems of the modern world. Of course, the Catholic himself
must lead a good, honest life, if he wishes to persuade his non-Catholic
acquaintances that his religion is the only true one.
RESOLUTION: Resolve every day to thank God for the gift of the
Catholic faith.
STUDY HELPS
A. TRUE OR FALSE? (Check each of the statements given below as either true or false. The
correct answers will be found in the preceding portions of the lesson.)
(2) Christ promised that His Church would last until the end of time.
(3) The immortality of the soul follows from the fact that it is a spiritual
substance.
(9) Catholics are intolerant toward those who profess false doctrines.
(10) The Church has the authority to teach infallibly doctrines not
contained in divine revelation but connected with it.
(2) Emiliana, a child in the third grade, has been taught by her pious
mother to share her pennies with the Child Jesus. She does this by putting
five of them in her penny back each week during the school year. During
the Ember seasons, Emiliana, and her classmates, give the pennies to
Sister Rosalia, in charge of the Holy Childhood Association. Is little
Emiliana helping the Missions? How?
(3) From early youth, Macarius, a non-Catholic, was taught to look down
upon Catholics in general, and to despise priests and religious, in
particular. If he sees a priest, or a brother, or a sister, approaching him on
the same side of the street, he will cross over to the other side to avoid
them. Is Macarius tolerant of Catholics? Comment charitably on the case
in from 30 to 50 words. Presume that God is going to use you as the
instrument of Macarius’ conversion.
(4) A Jewish widow, Basilissa, owns a delicatessen store. Every now and
then, Christian boys and girls of the neighborhood, torment her,
ridiculing her Jewish religious practices, and committing petty thefts of
her wares. Can these children be called intolerant? Within 75 words,
what would you say to them, if they would listen to you?
(5) In a rain shelter on the golf course, three golfers while away the time
discussing the doctrinal intolerance of the Catholic Church. Gerson, a
Protestant, is a professor of mathematics in a Baptist College. Laban, a
Jew, teaches chemistry in the local high school. Mel, a Catholic, is a
structural engineer. Claver, Mel’s colored caddy, is an honor pupil in the
High School of St. Protus. He is shocked to hear Mel agree with his
golfing companions that it doesn’t make much difference what a person
believes so long as he lives rightly. About to resume the game, Mel asks
Claver for his point of view. He is humbly edified and corrected by
Claver’s answer, which is aptly illustrated by examples from
mathematics, chemistry, and engineering. What is doctrinal intolerance?
Try to duplicate Claver’s achievement in three short letters to Gerson,
Laban, and Mel. Confine your letters to about 250 words each.
(6) Lambert, a friend of yours, has no formal religion; but he holds fast to
two reasonable principles, namely, that there is a God, and that his own
soul will live on forever. Drop him a short note, adding four more
principles that will indicate to him as a reasonable friend, the truth of
your own Catholic religion.
(7) In the Solomon Islands, Sister Seraphia is teaching the little natives
the truth that there is a God. These youngsters are not so familiar as you
are with modern inventions; but they are perhaps more familiar with the
powers and the grandeur of nature. Write a brief letter to the missionary
nun, telling her how you would go about proving God’s existence to
these simple native children. Confine your letter to 200 words.
(8) Alicia asked the religion teacher whether human beings would be
bound to practice religion if God had not made any revelation. What
answer do you think should be given? In that supposition, would men be
bound to believe in God’s existence, the immortality of the human soul,
the Holy Trinity, the eternal happiness of heaven?
Days of Fast and Abstinence
Beginning with Lent, 1952,1 many of the bishops of the United States,
using the provisions of Canon Law as modified through the special
faculties granted by the Holy See, published the following regulations on
fast and abstinence:
ABSTINENCE: All persons over seven years of age must abstain. This
means that they may not take meat or meat gravy or meat soup at all on
days of complete abstinence, which are all Fridays, Ash Wednesday, and
the vigils of the Assumption and of Christmas. They may take meat, but
only at the principal meal, on days of partial abstinence, which are Ember
Wednesdays and Saturdays, and the vigils of Pentecost and of All Saints’
Day. On Holy Saturday meat may not be taken until noon, when both
abstinence and fast cease.
FASTS: All persons over twenty-one and under fifty-nine years of age
must fast. This means that on a fast day they may have only one
principal, or full, meal and two smaller meals. They may eat meat at this
principal meal, except on days of complete abstinence. At the two
smaller meals they may not have meat, but they may take sufficient food
to maintain their strength. However, these two smaller meals together
should be less than a full meal. Eating between meals is not permitted,
but liquids, including milk and fruit juices, may be taken at any time on a
fast day. The days of fast are the weekdays of Lent up to Holy Saturday
noon, the Ember Days, and the vigils of Pentecost, the Assumption, All
Saints and Christmas.
Those not bound to fast may eat meat as often as they wish, except on
days of complete abstinence (when it may not be eaten at all), and on
days of partial abstinence (when it may be eaten only at the principal
meal). When a person’s health or ability to work would be seriously
affected by fasting or abstaining, the law does not oblige. Where doubt
arises concerning fast or abstinence, a parish priest or confessor should
be consulted.
to perform acts of kindness toward the sick, the aged and the poor;
to pray more fervently, particularly for the intentions of the Holy Father.
1 (Since these regulations were issued, Holy Saturday has been made a day of fast and complete abstinence up to midnight by
the general law of the Church. However, some Bishops dispense from the abstinence, either wholly or partially, or from the
fast, or from both. The fast and abstinence for the vigil of the Assumption (August 14) have been transferred to the vigil of
the Immaculate Conception (December 7). In regard to the observation of fast and abstinence on the day before All Saints,
Catholics should follow the instructions of their respective Bishops.)
APPENDIX II - GLOSSARY
abbot.
A priest exercising over a religious community of men a jurisdiction
somewhat similar to that exercised by a bishop over his diocese.
acolyte. One who has received the fourth of the minor orders; also, one who
serves Mass.
actual grace. A supernatural help from God, enabling man to perform a good act.
actual sin. Any willful thought, desire, word, action or omission forbidden by the
law of God.
Adam. The first man, the father of the entire human race.
adult. One who has attained maturity: One who has attained the use of reason.
Advent. The penitential season set aside by the Church as a preparation for
Christmas.
Agnus Dei. A waxen disk bearing the image of Our Lord as a lamb, blessed by the
Pope; also a small portion of this disk, covered with cloth or silk.
All Saints’ Day. A holyday of obligation to honor all the saints in heaven, November
1
All Souls’ Day. November 2, a day of special prayer for all the faithful departed.
amice. A vestment of white linen, worn by sacred ministers about the neck and
shoulders.
angel. A created spirit, without body, having understanding and free will.
anti-Christ. A wicked man who is to appear on earth before the end of the world
and oppose Christ and His Church.
apostle. One sent by another, particularly one of the twelve chosen disciples of
Christ, whom He sent to preach the Gospel to all men.
apostolicity.
One of the notes of the true Church, consisting of its unbroken
connection with the Church founded by Christ on the apostles.
archbishop. A bishop enjoying a special dignity; usually the bishop presiding over
a principal See, with several suffragan bishops affiliated with him.
atone. To make satisfaction to God’s justice for sin and its punishment.
atonement. The act by which God’s justice is satisfied, particularly that which
Christ performed by His sufferings and death.
attrition. Imperfect contrition, sorrow for sin based on a motive of faith inferior to
love for God, particularly that which is based on the fear of punishment
balm. A sweet-smelling liquid, derived from a terebinth tree, used to make chrism
for Confirmation.
Baptism. The sacrament which gives our soul the new life of sanctifying grace,
through the washing of the body with water in the name of the three Divine
Persons.
baptism of desire. An act of love for God made by an unbaptized person with the
desire to do all that is necessary for his salvation.
beatific vision. The privilege of the blessed in heaven, to see God face to face.
Bethlehem. A small town near Jerusalem, where Christ was born in a stable.
Bible. The collection of inspired writings of the Old and the New Testaments.
Blessed Sacrament. The Holy Eucharist, the sacrament containing Our Lord’s body
and blood under the appearances of bread and wine.
brilliancy.
One of the qualities of a glorified body, by which it shines with
heavenly light.
Canon. The part of the Mass between the Sanctus and the Communion; also a law
of the Church.
Canon Law. The body of Church laws found in the Code of Canon Law.
cardinal. A priest or bishop belonging to the group which advises the Pope and
chooses a new Pope when the Pontiff dies.
Catholic Action. The cooperation of the laity with their bishops in promoting the
spiritual welfare of the Church.
chalice. The cup used at Mass to contain the wine which is consecrated into the
precious Blood of Christ.
character.
A spiritual mark imprinted indelibly on the soul by Baptism,
Confirmation and Holy Orders.
Charity. The greatest of the theological virtues, by which we love God above all
things for His own sake, and our neighbor as ourselves for the love of God.
chastity. The virtue which disposes us to be pure in soul and in body; one of the
vows taken by religious.
Chrism. A mixture of olive oil and balm, blessed by the bishop on Holy Thursday,
and used for Confirmation and certain other functions.
Church. The congregation of all baptized persons, united in the same faith, the
same sacrifice and sacraments, and obedience to the same spiritual authority;
also, the building in which divine services are held.
ciborium. The vessel in which the Blessed Sacrament is contained when reserved
in the tabernacle for Holy Communion.
cincture. The cord worn by the priest about his waist to bind the alb.
cleric. One engaged in the ministry of the Church, who has received at least the
first tonsure.
commandment. A law.
Communion of Saints. The union of the faithful on earth, the blessed in heaven and
the souls in purgatory with Christ as their Head.
confession. The telling of our sins to an authorized priest in order to obtain their
forgiveness.
confessor. A priest who hears confessions; also, a male saint who was not a martyr.
Confirmation. The sacrament by which we are made perfect Christians and soldiers
of Jesus Christ.
consecration. A solemn blessing; in particular the change of bread and wine into
the body and blood of Christ; also the ceremony by which a priest becomes a
bishop.
consummation. A completion.
contrition. Sorrow for our sins from a supernatural motive, with a purpose of not
sinning again.
cope. A vestment, like a long cape, worn by the priest at certain functions,
particularly at Benediction of the Blessed Sacrament.
corporal. The piece of blessed linen on which the Host and the chalice are placed
at Mass.
Corpus Christi. A feast celebrated on the Thursday after Trinity Sunday in honor of
the Blessed Sacrament.
covetousness. An excessive desire of worldly possessions, one of the capital sins.
Creed. A list of some of the more important Christian doctrines, drawn up and
officially proclaimed by the Church.
Cross. The instrument of death to which Christ was nailed; also, its
representation.
deacon. A man who has received the Holy Order next below the priesthood, and is
thereby appointed to assist the priest at Mass and at other sacred functions.
despair. The refusal to trust that God will give us the necessary help for the
salvation of our soul.
detraction. The sin of making known the hidden faults of another without a good
reason.
devil. A bad angel; particularly, the leader of the wicked angels, Lucifer.
diriment impediment. A circumstance, arising from the law of God or of the Church,
that renders a marriage null and void.
disciple. One who is a follower and pupil of another; particularly, one who is a
follower of Christ.
dispensation. The act by which a superior frees a person from the obligation of
obeying a law.
Divine Office. The official prayer of the Church, recited daily by priests and
religious.
divine tradition. Revealed truths given to the Church by word of mouth only, not
through the Bible.
divorce. The breaking of the bond of marriage in such a way that the parties are
regarded as free to contract another marriage.
doxology. The prayer “Glory be to the Father, etc.”; also applied to the Gloria in
the Mass.
Easter.
The day of Our Lord’s resurrection from the dead, or its annual
commemoration.
Easter Time.
The period during which Catholics are bound to receive Holy
Communion; in the United States it lasts from the first Sunday in Lent to
Trinity Sunday.
elevation. A solemn ceremony in the Mass, consisting of the raising aloft by the
priest of the consecrated Host and Chalice, immediately after the
Consecration.
Ember Days. Three days of fast and abstinence, Wednesday, Friday and Saturday,
in each of the four seasons of the year.
encyclical letter. A letter on some important matter sent by the Pope to the faithful
through the bishops.
Epiphany. The feast celebrating the visit of the Wise Men to the Infant Jesus,
January 6.
Epistle. An inspired letter written by one of the apostles and contained in the New
Testament.
eternity. Duration without beginning, end or change, possessed by God alone; also
duration without end, such as is possessed by angels and human souls.
Eucharist. The sacrament of Christ’s body and blood under the appearances of
bread and wine.
Evangelist. One who brings good tidings, a term applied to the four writers of the
Gospel in the New Testament.
exorcism. A formula employed by the Church against the attacks of the devil.
exorcist. One who has received the third of the minor orders, giving him the power
to pronounce exorcisms.
Extreme Unction. The sacrament for those in danger of death, from sickness or
accident or old age, conferred through the anointing with oil and the prayer of
the priest.
Faith. The first of the theological virtues, disposing one to believe all that God
has revealed because of the authority of God revealing, who can neither
deceive nor be deceived!
faithful departed. Members of the Church who have passed away and are in
purgatory.
Fathers of the Church. Saintly writers who lived in the early centuries and gave
testimony to the Church’s belief and tradition.
first tonsure. The ceremony by which a man becomes a cleric; consisting in the
cutting of his hair by the bishop and in certain words pronounced by the
recipient.
fortitude. One of the cardinal virtues, disposing one to do what is good in spite of
difficulty.
foster father. One who takes the place of a real father in the bringing up of a child.
free will. The power to choose, according to our own wish, either to perform an
action or not to perform it.
Fruits of the Holy Ghost. Good works, bringing sweetness and joy, performed under
the inspiration of the Holy Ghost.
General Confession. A confession that includes the sins told in previous confessions,
either of one’s whole life or of a portion of it.
General Judgment. The judgment that Our Lord will pass on all men at the end of
the world.
Ghost (gost). Spirit; generally applied to the Third Person of the Blessed Trinity,
the Holy Ghost.
Gifts of the Holy Ghost. Habits infused together with sanctifying grace, helping one
with the assistance of the Holy Ghost to know and to do the will of God.
God. The Supreme Being, self-existing and infinitely perfect, who created all
things.
godchild. One for whom a person has acted as sponsor, or godparent, at Baptism or
Confirmation.
godparent. A sponsor, who accepts the responsibility of caring for the spiritual
welfare of one baptized or confirmed if the parents die or neglect this duty.
Golgotha. Mount Calvary, the place near Jerusalem where Christ died.
Good Friday. The day on which Christ died, and also its annual commemoration.
Gospel. The account of the life and teachings of Jesus Christ contained in the New
Testament, written by Ss. Matthew, Mark, Luke and John.
grace. A supernatural gift of God, given us through the merits of Christ, for our
salvation.
Guardian Angel. The angel appointed by God to watch over us in a special manner.
Habitual Grace. A name for sanctifying grace, since it remains as a habit in the
soul.
Hail Mary. The Angelical Salutation, the Church’s chief prayer to the Blessed
Virgin Mary, so called because its first words are the Archangel Gabriel’s
greeting to Our Lady.
heaven. The place and state of everlasting happiness in the next life; our eternal
home with God, our Father.
hell. The place and state of everlasting punishment in the next life.
heresy. The obstinate denial of one or more of the truths of divine revelation by
one professing to be a Christian.
High Mass. A Mass in which certain portions are chanted by the celebrant.
Holy Communion. The receiving of Jesus Christ in the sacrament of the Holy
Eucharist, as spiritual nourishment for the soul.
Holy Eucharist. The sacrament which really contains the body and blood of Jesus
Christ under the appearances of bread and wine.
Holy Ghost. The third Person of the Blessed Trinity, who proceeds from the Father
and the Son; the Soul of the Catholic Church.
Holy Orders. The sacrament by which men receive the grace and the power to
perform the sacred duties of bishops, priests and other ministers of the
Church.
holyday of obligation. A feast day on which the Church obliges us to hear Mass and
to abstain from servile work.
Hope. The second of the theological virtues, disposing us to trust that God,
because of His power, mercy and fidelity, will give us eternal happiness and
the means to obtain it.
humeral veil. The veil which drapes the priest’s shoulders, arms, and hands at
Benediction and at certain other functions.
Immaculate Conception.
The unique privilege conferred on the Blessed Virgin,
whereby she was preserved from original sin from the first moment of her
existence in view of the merit, of her Divine Son.
immodesty.
A sin against the sixth commandment, which is liable to lead to
impurity.
imperfect contrition. Sorrow for sin out of a supernatural motive inferior to love of
God; also called attrition.
incarnation. The union of the second Person of the Blessed Trinity with a human
nature.
indefectibility. The attribute of the Church whereby it will last, as Christ founded it,
until the end of time.
Index of Forbidden Books. The catalogue prepared by the Holy Office in Rome,
listing the books which Catholics are explicitly forbidden to read.
indifferentism. The theory that all religions are good, so that it makes no difference
which religion a person practices.
indwelling. Abiding within a person or thing, such as the constant presence of the
Holy Ghost in the Church.
infallibility. The attribute of the Church whereby it is preserved from error in faith
or morals by the special assistance of the Holy Ghost.
inspiration. Enlightenment from God: particularly that given to the persons who
wrote the Bible.
Jesus. A name meaning “Saviour” the name of the Son of God as Man.
Joseph, Saint. The husband of the Blessed Virgin Mary and foster father of Jesus
Christ.
jubilee indulgence.
An indulgence granted every 25 years, and on other special
occasions, by the Pope.
judgment. The appearance of the soul before God to be rewarded or punished for
its good or evil deeds, which will take place twice–immediately after death
(particular judgment) and at the end of the world (general judgment).
justice. One of the cardinal virtues, disposing us to render to every one what is
due to him.
Kingdom of Heaven. The place and state of happiness in the life to come; also
(especially in the parables of Christ) the Church, which brings men to eternal
happiness.
Kingship of Christ. Our Lord’s authority, even as Man over the entire universe,
which is commemorated by the feast of Christ the King on the last Sunday of
October.
laity. Those members of the Church who do not belong to the clergy or to the
religious state.
Latin Church. That portion of the Catholic Church which uses Latin in its liturgy.
laxity. Carelessness and lack of fervor in the practice of religion.
Lent. The penitential season lasting from Ash Wednesday to Holy Saturday, as a
remembrance of Christ’s fast in the desert and a preparation for Easter.
liberality. A moral virtue which disposes us to use worldly goods rightly and
generously.
Limbo. The place or state of rest where under the Old Testament the souls of the
just who had died before the time of Christ, awaited the Redemption; also, the
state or place where infants who die without Baptism enjoy for all eternity a
natural happiness.
litany. A form of prayer to Our Lord, the Blessed Virgin or the saints, consisting
of a series of invocations and petitions.
liturgy.
The official ceremonies of the Church; in the Oriental churches, the
Sacrifice of Our Lord’s body and blood under the appearances of bread and
wine.
Magnificat. The prayer of praise uttered by the Blessed Virgin on the occasion of
her visit to St. Elizabeth.
maniple. The vestment worn by sacred ministers on the left arm at certain
functions, such as the Mass.
marks of the church. Certain clear signs by which all men can recognize the true
Church of Christ.
marriage. The permanent union of a man and woman as husband and wife; also,
the contract by which they enter this union.
marriage impediment.
A circumstance determined by the law of God or of the
Church which, if present, renders a marriage unlawful or even null and void.
Mass. The unbloody sacrifice of the body and blood of Christ, renewing the
sacrifice of Calvary.
mediator. One who reconciles two parties that have been in disagreement; usually
applied to Our Lord, who reconciled men with God.
mediatrix. A female mediator; usually applied to the Blessed Virgin because she
cooperated with Jesus Christ, the Mediator, in reconciling men with God.
Melchisedech. A priest of ancient times who offered sacrifice of bread and wine;
hence, Christ is called a priest according to the order of Melchisedech,
because He offered a sacrifice of His body and blood under the appearances of
bread and wine.
merit. The claim to a reward arising from good deeds; also, a good deed
deserving of reward.
ministry. The performance of a sacred office by one specially chosen for it.
missal. The book used by the priest for the celebration of Mass; also, a smaller
edition or a translation for the use of the laity.
monsignor. A title conferred on a priest by the Pope, usually at the request of the
bishop, giving the right to wear purple, like a bishop.
moral virtue. A virtue disposing us to lead moral lives by treating persons and
things according to the will of God.
mortal sin. A grave offense against God’s law, which brings spiritual death to the
soul by depriving it of its supernatural life, sanctifying grace.
mortification. Self-denial.
Mystical Body.
A term for the Church with Christ as its Head, because of its
resemblance to the living human body.
Nuptial Blessing. The special blessing given the bride at the conclusion of the Pater
Noster in the Mass for a bridal couple.
Nuptial Mass. The special Mass celebrated for a bridal couple immediately after
their marriage.
oath. The calling on God to witness to the truth of what we say or to the sincerity
of a promise.
obedience. The virtue which disposes us to do the will of our superiors.
occasion of sin. A person, place or thing that is liable to lead one into sin.
Offertory. That part of the Mass in which the bread and wine are offered up to
God in anticipation of their change into the body and blood of Christ.
Oriental Rites. The liturgical ceremonies carried out among Oriental Christians in a
manner somewhat different from that employed in the Latin Church and in
some of the languages of the East, such as Armenian, Greek or Syrian.
Our Father. The prayer taught us by our Lord, beginning with the words: “Our
Father.”
original sin. The privation of sanctifying grace with which we come into the world
as a result of Adam’s sin.
Palm Sunday.
The Sunday immediately preceding Easter, when the Church
commemorates the triumphant entrance of Christ into Jerusalem, just before
His Passion, on which occasion the people strewed palms before Him as a
mark of reverence.
partial indulgence. The remission of a part of the temporal punishment due to one’s
forgiven sins, effected by the Church through the application of her spiritual
treasury.
Particular Judgment. The judgment that each soul undergoes before God
immediately after death.
paschal. Connected with Easter–for example, the paschal candle, lighted for the
first time on the vigil of Easter.
Passion of Christ. The sufferings of Our Blessed Saviour, ending with His death on
the cross.
pastor. Literally, a shepherd; applied to a parish priest with reference to his parish,
also to a bishop with reference to his diocese and to the Pope with reference to
the universal Church.
paten. The golden plate on which the sacred Host is placed at Mass.
patience. A moral virtue which disposes us to bear up under difficulties and trials.
patriotism. A moral virtue which disposes us to honor, love, respect and help our
country.
Paul, Saint. One of the apostles, chosen by Our Lord through a vision after His
Ascension.
Penance.
The virtue disposing us to be sorry for our sins. Also, one of the
sacraments, whereby sins committed after Baptism are forgiven by the
absolution of the priest to sinners who confess them with true contrition.
Pentecost. The seventh Sunday after Easter, commemorating the descent of the
Holy Ghost on the apostles.
perfect contrition. The contrition based on love of God which restores a sinner to
the state of grace even before he goes to confession.
perjury. The grave sin committed by one who takes an oath to what he believes to
be false.
Peter, Saint. The apostle chosen by Christ to be the chief of the apostles and the
first Pope.
Peter’s Pence. The annual offering made by the faithful to the Pope, the successor
of St. Peter.
piety. One of the gifts of the Holy Ghost; (2) a virtue disposing one to honor his
parents; (3) in a general sense, the combination of religious virtues.
plenary indulgence. The remission of all the debt of one’s temporal punishment,
granted by the Church through the application of her spiritual treasury.
porter. One who has received the first of the minor orders.
positive laws. Laws added to the natural law, either by God or by human superiors.
Preface. The portion of the Mass immediately preceding the Canon, in which
thanks are given to God for His blessings.
presumption. A sin against hope, whereby a person trusts that he can be saved by
his own efforts without God’s help, or by God’s help without his own efforts.
privileged altar. An altar to which the Church has attached a privilege, whereby a
plenary indulgence is granted to any soul in purgatory for whom Mass is
celebrated on that altar.
Promised Land. The land of Canaan, or Palestine, which God promised to the
Jewish people when they were led by Moses out of Egypt.
prophet. A person chosen by God to announce His message to man, particularly
things that are to come.
prudence. One of the cardinal virtues, disposing us to form right judgments in all
circumstances about what we must do or not do.
purgatory. The state in the life to come where souls are punished for a time who
have died in venial sin or with a debt of temporal punishment unpaid.
purificator. A linen cloth used by the priest at Mass to wipe the chalice and his
mouth and fingers after communion.
purpose of amendment. The firm resolution not to sin again, which is included in true
contrition.
rash judgment. A sin against the eighth commandment, whereby a person without
sufficient reason believes something harmful to another’s character.
Real Presence. The presence of Jesus Christ, truly, really and substantially in the
sacrament of the Holy Eucharist under the appearances of bread and wine.
Redeemer. One who releases a captive by paying the price of his ransom;
particularly Our Lord, Jesus Christ, who released us from the captivity of sin
by offering His sufferings and death to His heavenly Father, as the price of our
ransom.
relic. Something belonging to, or connected with Our Lord or the Saints, such as
a portion of their bodies or a garment they wore.
religion. The beliefs, laws and ceremonies by which men honor and serve God;
also, the virtue disposing us to honor and serve God properly.
Requiem Mass. A special Mass celebrated for the repose of the souls of the faithful
departed at which black vestments are worn.
revelation. The direct manifestation of truth by God to man; also, the body of
truths thus manifested.
Rosary. A prayer to the Blessed Virgin Mary, composed of decades of one Our
Father and ten Hail Marys each, arranged in three series–the joyful, the
sorrowful and the glorious mysteries–each series being composed of five
decades; also, the string of beads on which these prayers are counted.
sabbath. The seventh day of the week, the Lord’s Day in the Old Testament.
Sacrament. An outward sign instituted by Christ, with the power to give grace.
sacramental grace. A special grace given by each sacrament helping the recipient to
carry out the particular purpose of that sacrament.
sacramentals. Holy things or actions of which the Church makes use to obtain for
us from God through her intercession spiritual and temporal favors.
Sacred Scripture. The inspired writings of the Old and New Testaments, also called
the Bible.
sacrifice. The offering of a victim to God by a priest and its destruction in some
way, to acknowledge that God is the Creator and Lord of all things.
sacrilege.
A sin against the first commandment, committed when a person
mistreats sacred persons, places or things.
saint. In a general sense, anyone in the state of grace; in a more limited sense, one
who is in heaven.
sanctifying grace. The grace that confers on our souls a new life that is a sharing in
the life of God himself.
sanctuary. That portion of the church, cut off from the body of the church, in
which the altar is situated and the sacred functions performed.
satisfaction. What is given to God to pay for the debt of sin or of its punishment,
particularly the sufferings of Christ.
Saviour. One who saves others, particularly Jesus Christ, who saved us from the
effects of sin.
scandal.
A sin against the virtue of charity, whereby a person furnishes the
occasion of sin to another.
scapular. A garment worn by some religious, in front and back over the shoulders;
also, a miniature form of this garment, blessed and indulgenced, to be worn by
the faithful.
Scripture. The inspired writings of the Old and the New Testament.
scruple. An unreasonable fear of sin, based on false ideas of the moral law or on a
false application of that law.
see. The place in which a bishop resides and rules his diocese.
self-existing. Not owing existence to any other being, a perfection of God alone.
sin. The transgression of God’s law; also, as applied to original sin, the privation
of sanctifying grace consequent on Adam’s transgression.
slander. A sin against the eighth commandment, whereby a person injures the
good name of another by false statements.
sloth. One of the capital sins, laziness of mind or of body which causes a person
to neglect his duties.
soul. The principle of life; in man an immortal spirit, endowed with intelligence
and free will.
Solemn Baptism. The administration of the sacrament of Baptism with the various
ceremonies prescribed by the Church and with specially consecrated water.
Solemn Mass. A Mass, portions of which are chanted, and in which the celebrating
priest is assisted by a deacon and a subdeacon.
spirit. An immortal being having understanding and free will, but no body, such
as God or an angel.
spiritism. The practice of trying to get into communication with the souls of the
dead.
spiritist. A person who claims to communicate with the souls of the dead.
spiritual. Having to do with the spirit or the soul, particularly the soul of man, as
in the expression “spiritual welfare.”
stole. A vestment worn about the neck by a bishop, priest or deacon at sacred
functions, either crossed over the breast or hanging down.
subdeacon. A man who has received the first of the major orders.
Sunday. The first day of the week, celebrated as the Lord’s day in the New
Testament.
superabundant satisfactions.
Good works performed with the power to make
satisfaction for the temporal punishment due to sin, which are not needed by
the person who performs them, and which accordingly go into the treasury of
the Church to be dispensed in the form of indulgences.
supernatural. Related to God in those aspects of His divine nature which can be
known only from revelation, chiefly the Divine Trinity.
superstition.
A sin against the first commandment, committed when a person
attributes to a creature a power which belongs to God alone.
Tabernacle. The compartment, usually placed in the middle of the altar, in which
the Blessed Sacrament is kept.
temperance. One of the cardinal virtues, disposing a person to control his desires
and to use rightly the things that please his senses.
temporal punishment. The punishment which one is obliged to endure for a time,
either in this life or in purgatory, for sins that have been forgiven.
temptation. An urge to commit sin, coming either from our own nature or from the
world or from the devil.
tithes.
A tenth of one’s income, the offering which Catholics formerly were
obliged to contribute to the Church.
tonsure. The cutting of the hair, constituting the ceremony by which a man enters
the clerical state, known specifically as the first tonsure; by the law of the
Church the clergy in Catholic countries are afterward supposed to keep a
portion of the head shaved.
tradition. Doctrines handed down without being put in writing; particularly divine
tradition, which was given to the Church by Christ and His apostles only by
word of mouth, not through the Bible, though later it was put in writing by the
Fathers of the Church.
transubstantiation. The change of the entire substance of bread into the body of
Christ and of the entire substance of wine into His blood, while the
appearances of bread and wine remain–the change effected by Christ through
the ministry of His priest at the sacrifice of the Mass.
Trinity Sunday. The first Sunday after Pentecost, the last day for the fulfillment of
the Easter duty in the United States.
Unction. An anointing, especially that which is given with holy oil in certain
sacraments, such as Extreme Unction.
unity. The quality by which a being is one, such as the unity of God; or made one,
such as the unity of the Church.
universality. The quality of the Church by which it is destined for all times and for
all nations, and actually fulfills this destiny.
veil. A cloth covering, particularly the humeral veil used by the priest to cover his
shoulders, arms and hands when he gives Benediction of the Blessed
Sacrament; also, the chalice veil and the tabernacle veil.
venial sin. A transgression of God’s law in some slight matter, or even in a serious
matter when the sinner believes it is only slightly wrong or does not give full
consent.
vestments.
Special garments worn by the ministers of the Church in sacred
functions.
vicar. One who represents another; particularly the Pope, who represents Christ in
the government of the Church and is called the Vicar of Jesus Christ.
vicar general. A priest appointed by a bishop to help him in the government of his
diocese, and for this purpose sharing in the bishop’s jurisdiction.
victim. The thing which is offered and in some way destroyed in a sacrifice.
vigil. The day immediately preceding a great feast; sometimes a day of fast and
abstinence.
vocation. A special call from God to a higher form of life, to the priesthood or to
the religious life.
vow. A deliberate promise made to God by which a person binds himself under
pain of sin to do something especially pleasing to God.
winding-sheet. The cloth in which a dead body is wrapped; particularly the shroud
in which Our Lord’s body was wrapped.
witness. One who sees an occurrence and is able to give testimony about it.
works of mercy.
Certain specially good deeds, performed from a supernatural
motive, for the benefit of our fellowmen, such as visiting the sick.
worship.
Testimony of reverence and submission to another, particularly the
homage we give to God.
APPENDIX III - A CATECHISM OF THE MASS
By
Rev. David J. Sharrock, C. SS. R.
collaborating with
Rev. Francis J. Connell, C. SS. R.
Introductory Questions
Before you start to study this part of the Catechism, go back to Lesson 27 and review what you
learned about the Sacrifice of the Mass. This part of the Catechism is going to take for granted
that you know that Lesson perfectly.
1. Where do Catholics receive their power to offer the Mass with the
priest?
Catholics receive their power to offer the Mass with the priest from
their Baptism. By Baptism, each Catholic is united to Christ, the
Priest. Confirmation unites a Catholic even more closely with Christ
the Priest. Because of these two Sacraments, a Catholic shares in the
very Priesthood of Christ and receives from Him the power to offer
the Sacrifice of the Mass with the priest, or to participate in this
offering.
(a) Only the priest who has received the Sacrament of Holy Orders can
take the place of Christ at the altar, sacrifice Him in an unbloody manner,
and offer Him to God. The priest makes the Offering. All other Catholics
share or participate in this Offering.
Christ gave the Sacrifice of the Mass to His Church. He knew that
men would need a Sacrifice to honor God and to beg God to grant
them the graces Christ won for them on the Cross. Just the memory
of Christ’s Sacrifice would not be enough. So He left His Church the
perfect Sacrifice, the Sacrifice of Himself, by which God is infinitely
honored, and the graces Christ won for men on Calvary are poured
into their souls.
(a) We use the term “Mystical Body” to describe the union between
Christ and His members. We are united to Christ by Baptism, by the open
profession of our Faith, by obedience to the Pope, who takes the place of
Christ on earth, and, finally, by sanctifying grace, which gives us a share
in the Divine Life of God Himself. This sanctifying grace makes us one
with Jesus, because He won this grace for us on the Cross, and as Man
has the fullness of this grace in His own Soul.
This union between Christ and His member is so close that we call
ourselves one Body, with Christ as the Head of this Body.
But this Body is not a physical Body, nor is it a moral Body, e.g., like
a men’s club, or a young people’s club. It is a Body with a
Supernatural Head Who is Christ which we enter by the
supernatural means of Baptism, live a Supernatural life by
sanctifying grace, and profess a Supernatural Faith. So it is a Body
that is different from any other bodies we know. It is above nature,
or super-natural. So we call the Body a Supernatural or “Mystical
Body.” It is the Mystical Body of Christ, because Christ is the Head
of this Body.
(b) On Calvary, Christ alone offered the Sacrifice of His Life. In the
Mass, we, the members of His Mystical Body, offer the Sacrifice of His
life in union with Him.
(c) Thus at each Mass, Christ is still the Priest offering His Life for us.
But He offers that life for us by means of the priest who takes His place
at the altar, and in union with us who are members of His Mystical Body.
(d) The Mass is therefore the Sacrifice of the Mystical Body of Christ,
which is the Catholic Church.
(e) Since the Mass is the Sacrifice of Christ and His members, both
Christ and His members will contribute something to the make-up of the
Mass. Christ contributes the essential part which is the Consecration of
His Body and Blood and the giving of that Body and Blood to us in Holy
Communion. His members, besides offering the Sacrifice with Christ,
contribute the prayers and ceremonies which surround the essential part.
The main part of the Mass (the Canon) has never changed and never will
change. But the prayers and ceremonies have both changed and
developed through the centuries, as the members of Christ’s Mystical
Body have lived here on earth. Thus each prayer and ceremony is an
expression of the Life of the Church as she has lived on earth. In order to
understand many of the prayers at Mass, we must go back to the time
they were written, and see why they were composed, and what they
meant to the members of Christ’s Mystical Body then. Once we
understand these things, it will be easy to see what they are to mean to us
who are members of this same Mystical Body living in the 20th Century.
So we shall study the prayers and ceremonies of the Mass and see first,
how they are an expression of the Life of the Church through the
centuries as she has tried to surround the Mass with prayers and
ceremonies her children know and understand. Then we shall be able to
apply these prayers to our own lives and see the wonderful religion
teaching behind each prayer.
From what we have just studied, we can answer that the Mass, as far
as Christ’s part in it is concerned, is the same throughout the world.
Christ is offered in Sacrifice and given to His people as Food. And
His members’ part as co-offerers with Him is the same throughout
the world. But the prayers and ceremonies which surround this
offering may be different. Since different peoples have different ways
of expressing themselves to God, they will have different prayers and
ceremonies.
(a) Because the prayers and ceremonies which surround the Sacrifice of
the Mass are different, we can truly say that the Sacrifice of Christ
belongs to the members who offer it with Him. It is part of their lives,
because the prayers and ceremonies flow from their own thoughts and
actions, as members of the Mystical Body.
(a) Thus the prayers and ceremonies of our Mass are an expression of the
Life of the Church as she has lived in the Western part of the world. If we
were to study the Mass of the Eastern Catholics, we would find that its
prayers are an expression of the Life of the Church in the Eastern part of
the world.
Because the altar is a symbol or sign of Christ Himself, and the altar
cloths are the Church’s way of honoring this symbol.
(b ) Many material objects which are signs are used to represent Christ.
These material things are called “symbols.” For example, the most
common symbol of Christ today is the Cross. Each time we see the
Cross, we think of Christ and the Redemption He gained for us by His
death on a Cross. So we call the Cross a symbol or a representation of
Christ dying for our salvation.
Because linen cloth has been a sign of purity among people for over
3000 years. It is only right that the Church clothe the symbol of the
pure and holy Christ with the cloth that symbolizes purity.
(a) It is because linen cloth is a sign of purity that the finger towels,
purificators, and corporals must all be made of linen. Both the purificator
and the corporal sometimes touch the Host, and the finger towel is used
by the priest who will hold this most pure Host in his fingers.
Candles must be lighted during the Mass, because they are a symbol
of Christ Who is the Light of the world; and in the Mass, we offer up
this very Light of the world.
They are: the amice, the alb, the cincture, the maniple, the stole, and
the chasuble.
These vestments are used to draw and keep the attention of both the
priest and the people to the wonderful sacrifice being offered.
Many years ago, the priestly vestments were the same kind of clothes
which most of the Roman men wore, but because of the great dignity
of the Mass, they were, even then, more expensive and precious than
ordinary clothes. When styles began to change, the Church decided
to keep her priests vested as they had always been to make people
realize even more deeply how extraordinary the Sacrifice of the Mass
really is.
The alb, held together by the cincture, used to be the tunic the
regular “good clothes” of most Roman men. Joined to the tunic was a
shawl which covered the shoulders, neck, and head. This is the
modern amice. The maniple was the “dress” handkerchief men used
to carry. Instead of carrying it in their pockets, they used to pin it to
the sleeves of their tunics.
It is hard to find a history for the stole. But very early it was the
symbol of priestly power. Finally, the chasuble was the travelling
cloak of a man. As a cloak, it used to cover one almost entirely.
APPENDIX IV - THE ORDINARY OF THE MASS
TABLE OF CONTENTS
“I. MASS OF THE CATECHUMENS”
“A. PREPARATION”
“B. INSTRUCTION”
“2. Sanctus”
“Prayers of Oblation”
“C. COMMUNION”
IN THE NAME of the Father, and of the Son , and of the Holy Ghost. Amen.
Psalm 42 was originally said on the way to the altar from the sacristy, thus the significance of the
verse, “I will go in to the altar of God.” Since, however, the distance from sacristy to altar was
very short, it became the custom to start the Psalm at the altar steps.
God wants each one of us to offer the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass with the Church and the
celebrant. One of the reasons He gave us the Sacrament of Baptism was that we might have the
power to offer the Mass with His celebrant. But He also wants us to be sinless. So right at the
very beginning of Mass, even before we walk up to the altar in spirit with the celebrant, we should
stop and see if there are any serious sins on our soul.
P. Give judgment for me, O God, and decide my cause against an unholy people, from
unjust and deceitful men deliver me.
R. For Thou, O God, art my strength, why hast Thou forsaken me? And why do I go about
in sadness, while the enemy afflicts me?
P. Send forth Thy light and Thy truth; for they have led me and brought me to Thy holy hill
and Thy dwelling place.
P. I shall yet praise Thee upon the harp, O God, my God. Why art thou sad, my soul, and
why dost thou trouble me?
R. Trust in God, for I shall yet praise Him, the salvation of my countenance and my God.
P. Glory be to the Father, and to the Son, and to the Holy Ghost.
R. As it was in the beginning, is now, and ever shall be, world without end. Amen.
3. The Confiteor
The Church is holy because her Head is Christ Himself. Yet her priests who offer the Mass and
her children who offer the Mass with the priest are not perfect. So before the priest ascends the
altar, or before the people ascend in spirit with him, the Church has the priest and then the people
humbly confess their sins.
In the very first book ever written about the Mass, the “Teaching of the Twelve Apostles,” we find
that the first thing the people did when they came together to offer the Mass with the priest was to
confess their sins to God. They did not use the same words that we use today, but the same ideas
were there.
When the celebrant says: “May the Lord forgive us our sins, etc.,” he is not absolving the people
from their sins. He is simply asking God to pardon him and all the people with him for having
offended Him. This history of the Confiteor teaches us how deeply the early Catholics realized
that they were offering the Mass with the priest. They were not just onlookers. The Mass was truly
their Sacrifice. So their hearts and souls had to be as pure and as holy as the soul of the priest,
himself. For who would dare to offer this most pure Sacrifice with the priest with mortal sin upon
his soul?
Bowing low, the Celebrant says the Confiteor. The server answers:
R. May Almighty God have mercy on you, forgive you your sins, and bring you to life
everlasting.
P. Amen.
I CONFESS to Almighty God, to blessed Mary ever virgin, to blessed Michael the
archangel, to blessed John the Baptist, to the holy apostles Peter and Paul, and all the
Saints, and to you, Father, that I have sinned exceedingly in thought, word and deed, (strike
breast three times) through my fault, through my fault, through my most grievous fault.
Therefore I beseech blessed Mary, ever virgin, blessed Michael the archangel, blessed John
the Baptist, the holy apostles Peter and Paul, all the Saints, and you, Father, to pray to the
Lord our God for me.
P. May Almighty God have mercy on you, forgive you your sins, and bring you to life
everlasting.
R. Amen.
P. May the almighty and merciful Lord grant us pardon, absolution and remission of our
sins.
R. Amen.
Reference to the Holy of Holies in the prayer of the celebrant as he ascends the altar refers to the
place in the Jewish Temple where God dwelt among His people. Today, the new Holy of Holies is
the altar, where God dwells among His people under the appearances of bread and wine. We have
the great privilege of having God dwell with us not just in one place in the world, but in every
Catholic church throughout the world!
P. Let us pray.
P. TAKE away from us our sins, O Lord, we beseech Thee, that we may enter with pure
minds into the Holy of Holies. Through Christ our Lord. Amen.
In the next prayer, as the celebrant says “whose relics are here,” he kisses the altar. He does this
because 1) the altar is the table on which the Holy Sacrifice of the Mass is going to be offered, 2)
the altar is a symbol of Christ Himself, and 3) every altar contains the relics of some Saints and
Martyrs. So when the celebrant kisses the altar, he pays homage to the Table of Sacrifice, to
Christ Himself, and to the Saints and Martyrs of Christ.
The celebrant then goes up to the altar and kisses it, saluting the place where the Sacrifice will be
offered.
P. WE BESEECH Thee, O Lord, by the merits of Thy saints (the Celebrant kisses the center
of the altar) whose relics lie here and all of the saints: deign in Thy mercy to pardon me all
my sins. Amen.
5. The Introit
(See Mass of the day.)
The Introit is the prayer at the beginning of Mass that sets the keynote of the Mass. Every Mass is
offered to God alone, but every Mass honors some special attribute of God Himself, some part of
Christ’s life on earth, a special attribute of the Blessed Virgin, or one of God’s Saints. The Introit
helps us think about the wonders of the honoree of each specific mass and helps us beg Christ to
give us the grace to imitate Him, His Mother, or the saint of the day.
For many hundreds of years before, the Jews used incense to honor God in His Temple. It was
fitting that the Church should adopt this custom and incense the altar, which is a symbol of Christ.
Then because the priests were the special representatives of God, they too were incensed.
7. The Gloria
The “Gloria” is the Church’s hymn or song of praise to Almighty God. The Gloria is used in all
joyful and all feast-day Masses of the Church.
The first words of the “Gloria” are those the angels sang the night Our Lord was born. The
“peace” they announced to men of good will (men, that is, who had received God’s grace) was
the peace Our Lord would eventually buy for us by His Death on the Cross; the peace of salvation
from our sins, and the promise of Heaven forever.
If the coming of Christ gave glory to God and peace to men who were friends of God, how much
more does each Mass! For each time the Mass is offered, infinite glory is given to God, and men
whom God loves are flooded with the grace that brings peace to their lives and salvation to their
souls.
NOTE: Each time the celebrant wants to gain the attention of the people for some very important
part of the Mass, he addresses them by saying, “The Lord be with you.” The servers then respond
for the people by saying, “And with thy spirit.”
Each one of us has a great deal to thank God for. He created us. He recreated us in grace by
sending His Son to die for us. He gives us the Mass to keep us in this life of grace. It should not be
difficult for any of us to join fully in this hymn of praise. The celebrant now moves to the center of
the altar and recites the Gloria. The Gloria is omitted in Lent and Advent and in Masses for the
dead.
P. GLORY to God in the highest. And on earth peace to men of good will.
We give Thee thanks for Thy great glory, O Lord God, heavenly King, God the Father
Almighty.
Who takest away the sins of the world, have mercy on us.
Who takest away the sins of the world, receive our prayer.
Who sittest at the right hand of the Father, have mercy on us.
For Thou alone art holy, Thou alone art the Lord. Thou alone, O Jesus Christ, art most
high. Together with the Holy Ghost, in the glory of God the Father. Amen.
P. Let us pray.
B. INSTRUCTION
1. The Collect
(See Mass of the day.)
The Collect is a prayer for the needs of the Mystical Body prayed by the Church as she is about to
offer the Sacrifice by which these graces will be given. The Collect sums up or “collects” all the
prayers of the whole Mystical Body and begs God to grant her and her children all their needs.
As members of Christ’s Mystical Body, we should certainly make the prayer of the Church our
own prayer. This is a good time to mention our own particular needs as individual members of
Christ’s Body. It is very important to notice that no Collect is ever ended without some mention of
Jesus Christ because it is only through Him and His Death on the Cross that all graces are given.
R. Amen.
NOTE:
If the Collect is addressed to God the Father, it ends, “Through Jesus Christ, Thy Son our
Lord”, Who liveth and reigneth with Thee in the unity of the Holy Ghost, God, world without end.
If Our Lord is mentioned in the beginning of the prayer, the form is, “through the same Jesus
Christ,” Thy Son our Lord, Who liveth and reigneth with Thee in the unity of the Holy Ghost,
God, world without end.
If Our Lord is mentioned at the end of the prayer, the form is, “Who liveth and reigneth with
Thee,” in the unity of the Holy Ghost, God, world without end.
If the Holy Ghost is mentioned, the prayer form ends with, “in the unity of the same Holy
Ghost,” Thy Son our Lord, Who liveth and reigneth with Thee in the unity of the Holy Ghost,
God, world without end.
If the prayer is directed to God the Son, the ending is, “Who livest and reignest with God the
Father,” in the unity of the Holy Ghost, God, world without end.
2. The Epistle
(See Mass of the day.)
The Epistle or Lesson is a reading taken from Sacred Scripture (either from the teachings of the
Prophets in the Old Testament or the teachings of the Apostles in the New Testament. In the
readings, God Himself teaches us how to imitate the life of His Son, the Virgin Mary, or one of His
Saints. The reading of the Epistle (Lesson) from Sacred Scripture is a reminder of a service in a
Jewish Synagogue. Since the first Catholics were Jews, it is only natural that Jewish customs
would appear in the Great Prayer of the Mass.
P. Lesson from the Epistle of the Blessed Apostle Paul (Peter, John, . . .) (or the Acts of the
Apostles . . . the Book of Wisdom … other Prophet (Isaias, Daniel . . . ) to the (Romans,
Corinthians, . . .)
P. (The Celebrant reads the Gradual, Tract, or Alleluia with Verse or Sequence following,
depending on the season.)
CLEANSE my heart and my lips, O Almighty God, Who didst cleanse the lips of the
prophet Isaias with a burning coal; in Thy gracious mercy deign so to purify me that I may
worthily proclaim Thy holy Gospel. Through Christ our Lord. Amen.
Pray, Lord, Thy blessing. The Lord be in my heart and on my lips, that I may worthily and
fittingly proclaim His holy Gospel. Amen.
P. The continuation (or beginning) of the holy Gospel according to Saint (N).
5. The Gospel
(See Mass of the day.)
Gospel means “good news.” Certainly the story of Jesus Christ sacrificing himself for our
salvation by is the greatest news the world has ever heard! It should be our great privilege to try
to bring the good news of man’s salvation to all of our friends and neighbors. The Gospels tell us
how to do this. When we hear the Gospel, we should try to apply the lesson it teaches to our daily
lives. Thus, through the Gospels, we can live our lives as Christ urges us to live them.
The reading of the Gospel is greater than all the other readings from Sacred Scripture because
this is the story of the words and deeds of Our Lord Himself. Because this is such a sacred
reading, the book is changed to the left hand side of the altar, the same side from which the sacred
words of Consecration are read.
Before reading the Gospel, the celebrant announces where it is taken from in Sacred Scripture for
this particular Mass. The Gospel, too, has a special connection with the feast of the day, and thus
changes from day to day. While the celebrant makes this announcement, he signs himself with the
Sign of the Cross on his forehead, lips, and breast. This very ancient sign of the Cross fits very
well with the Gospel, for by this sign of the Cross, we beg that the Gospel, the Story of our
Salvation, be ever in our minds, on our lips, and in our hearts.
By the words of the Holy Gospel may our sins be blotted out.
6. The Sermon
The Celebrant gives a sermon.
On all its more solemn days, like Sundays, feasts of Our Lord and our Lady, and of Doctors of the
Church, the Church pauses for a few moments and professes through her priest the one belief of
all the members of the Mystical Body of Christ. It should be a great honor for us to join the
celebrant in professing our Faith.
As members of Christ’s Mystical Body, we profess not only our own Faith, but also the Faith of all
those Catholics throughout the world, who, because of persecution, must whisper their Creed
behind closed doors. Ever since its earliest days, the Church has always had a creed. In the
beginning, however, it was not part of the Mass. But as men came to deny the truth of the Catholic
Faith, the Church put her profession of Faith into the Mass itself, so that in her most sacred
function, her children might have the chance to profess their Faith again and again. This
profession of Faith is known as the Apostles’ Creed. When men denied that Jesus is true God, the
Church, in the Council of Nicaea, solemnly taught that Jesus is true God and left no doubt in
men’s minds that she believed in the Divinity of Christ. This teaching of the Council of Nicaea
was added to the Apostles’ Creed which then became known as the Nicene Creed.
I BELIEVE in one God, the Father Almighty, Maker of heaven and earth, and of all things
visible and invisible. And in one Lord Jesus Christ, the only-begotten Son of God, born of
the Father before all ages. God of God, Light of light, true God of true God. Begotten, not
made; of one being with the Father; by Whom all things were made. Who for us men, and
for our salvation came down from Heaven (kneel) and was made flesh, by the Holy Ghost of
the Virgin Mary: AND WAS MADE MAN (rise). He was also crucified for us, suffered
under Pontius Pilate and was buried. And on the third day He rose again according to the
Scriptures. And ascending into Heaven, He sitteth at the right hand of the Father. And He
shall come again in glory to judge the living and the dead; and of His kingdom there shall be
no end. And I believe in the Holy Ghost, Lord and Giver of Life, Who proceeds from the
Father and the Son. Who together with the Father and the Son is no less adored and
glorified; Who spoke by the prophets. And I believe in one holy, catholic and apostolic
Church. I confess one Baptism for the remission of sins. And I look for the resurrection of
the dead, and the life of the world to come. Amen.
In order to teach her children to participate in the Sacrifice, the Church has always urged them to
make some offering of material goods as a sign that they wished to offer themselves to God. We
should remember that our offering of money stands as a sign of ourselves. By it, we show God
that we want to offer ourselves, too, in union with the offering of His Son. While these offerings
are being made, a part of a psalm is said in tune with the feast of the day. Also when the celebrant
mingles a few drops of water with the wine, he does this as a symbol that he and all the people
offering the Mass with him wish to be united to Christ.
P. Let us pray.
The five Offertory Prayers teach us to center our whole life on the Consecration of the Mass, so
our daily lives may be offered as a constant sacrifice to Almighty God. Each Mass is an offering
for the whole of the Mystical Body of Christ. Each Mass also helps thousands of non-Catholics
come closer to Christ and to His True Church. For God is so pleased with every Mass that He
floods the souls of many non-Catholics with graces that will move them to come into the Catholic
Church. Each time, therefore, that we offer the Mass with the celebrant, we are helping all of the
members of Christ’s Mystical Body and many, many others outside His Body.
After the offering of the wine, the Church looks forward to what these gifts of bread and wine will
become, and begs God to bless these gifts that they might become the Body and Blood of His own
Son. As the celebrant blesses these gifts, he also blesses each one of us who have united ourselves
by our personal offerings to the gifts of bread and wine. He begs that we, too, may be made: fit to
be offered with Christ to His Father.
1. ACCEPT, O holy Father, Almighty and eternal God, this spotless host, which I, Thy
unworthy servant, offer unto Thee, my living and true God, to atone for my numberless
sins, offenses and negligences; on behalf of all here present and likewise for all faithful
Christians, living and dead, that it may profit me and them as a means of salvation unto life
everlasting. Amen.
Making the Sign of the Cross with the paten, he places the host upon the corporal. He pours wine
and water into the chalice (blessing the water before it is poured) and recites the prayer:
2. O GOD, Who hast established the nature of man in wondrous dignity, and still more
admirably restored it, grant that through the mystery of this water and wine we may be
made partakers of His Divinity Who has condescended to become partaker of our humanity,
Jesus Christ, Thy Son, Our Lord, Who liveth and reigneth with Thee, in the unity of the
Holy Ghost, God, world without end. Amen.
3. WE OFFER Thee, O Lord, the chalice of salvation, humbly begging of Thy mercy that it
may arise before Thy Divine Majesty with a pleasing fragrance, for our salvation and for
that of the whole world. Amen.
4. IN A HUMBLE spirit and with a contrite heart, may we be accepted by Thee, O Lord,
and may our sacrifice so be offered in Thy sight this day as to please Thee, O Lord God.
5. COME, Thou Sanctifier, almighty and eternal God, and bless this sacrifice prepared
for the glory of Thy holy Name.
The Church has kept this ceremony in the Mass because it is a beautiful symbol. So, during the
washing of hands, the celebrant says some verses from Psalm 25 where the psalmist tells God
how much he wants to keep from sin. The verses of this Psalm express clearly the meaning of the
hand washing. By saying these words the celebrant openly confesses his purpose of celebrating
the spotless Sacrifice with the greatest possible purity. What a beautiful way to prepare our souls
for the Sacrifice of Christ which will wash our souls in the very Blood of Christ!
The celebrant goes to the Epistle side of the altar, where he washes his fingers, saying part of
Psalm 25:
I WILL wash my hands among the innocent, and will walk ‘round Thy altar, O God. To
hear the voice of Thy praise and to tell all Thy wondrous deeds.
Lord, I love the beauty of Thy house, and the place where Thy glory dwells.
Destroy not my soul with the impious, O God, nor my life with men of blood. In whose
hands there is iniquity, whose right hand is full of bribes.
But as for me, I walk in my innocence, rescue me and be gracious to me. My foot is on the
straight way, in assemblies will I bless Thee, O Lord.
Glory be to the Father, and to the Son, and to the Holy Ghost. As it was in the beginning, is
now, and ever shall be, world without end. Amen.
NOTE: The Glory Be is omitted in Masses for the dead and in Passiontide.
In this prayer, the Church calls upon the Three Persons of the Blessed Trinity to overlook our
unworthiness and to accept this Sacrifice. As Now, as the celebrant sums up the thoughts of the
Offertory, we should renew the offering we made of our own lives at beginning of the Offertory.
ACCEPT, Most Holy Trinity, this offering which we are making to Thee in remembrance of
the passion, resurrection, and ascension of Jesus Christ, our Lord; and in honor of blessed
Mary, ever virgin, blessed John the Baptist, the holy Apostles, Peter and Paul, and of these,
and of all the saints; that it may add to their honor and aid our salvation; and may they
deign to intercede in heaven for us who honor their memory here on earth. Through the
same Christ our Lord. Amen.
The last prayers the Church says before she begins the Sacrifice part of the Mass are prayers
which beg God to accept the Sacrifice from the hands of her celebrant and people, and to bless
the gifts of bread and wine which are soon to become the Sacred Body and Blood of His Son. In
the prayer “Pray Brethren” (Orate Fratres) we see real proof it is not just the celebrant who
offers the Mass. The Mass is the celebrant’s Sacrifice, and it is our Sacrifice. It is the Sacrifice of
the whole Mystical Body of Christ. We are members of that Body by Baptism, and, thus, we have
the power from Jesus Christ to offer that Mass with the celebrant.
P. Pray, brethren, that my sacrifice and yours may become acceptable to God the Father
almighty.
R. May the Lord accept the sacrifice from thy hands to the praise and glory of His Name,
for our advantage and that of all His holy Church.
P. Amen.
6. The Secret
(See Mass of the day.)
The Secret Prayer is the last Offertory Prayer. In ancient times it used to be called “The Prayer
over the Offerings,” because it was a prayer the celebrant read over the offerings of bread and
wine and other gifts which the faithful brought for the Holy Sacrifice. These gifts were a sign that
they wished to offer themselves to God.
The word “secret” is from the Latin word “to set aside.” This prayer is called the “secret,” not
because it is said silently, but because it is the prayer that “sets aside” the gifts of bread and wine
that will become the Body and Blood of Christ. In this Secret Prayer the celebrant asks God to
accept the Sacrifice of Christ that we may be blessed by it; for the time of Consecration is now
drawing near when the celebrant is to offer the Sacrifice of our Lord. “World without end” are
the last words of the Secret Prayer. They are sung or recited aloud by the celebrant in order that
we may know that the Secret Prayer of the celebrant is now ended and in order to invite us to
unite our prayers with his by saying “Amen.” When we say “Amen” we show that we consent to
everything the celebrant said in the Secret Prayer.
R. Amen.
B. THE CONSECRATION
1. The Preface
Now the most solemn part of the Mass begins. The gifts are ready. The offerers are ready. Jesus
Christ is about to be sacrificed. The Church begins this act of Sacrifice with what we call the
Preface. We might call it the “Invitation to the Sacrifice.” Before the celebrant starts the Preface,
he asks each one of us to lift up our hearts and to take them away from worldly things.
When the altar boy has assured the celebrant that the people have lifted their hearts and minds to
God, the celebrant begins the Preface.
NOTE: The English words, “Let us give thanks to the Lord, our God,” do not give the complete
meaning of this prayer. The Preface was once said in Greek, and the Greek meaning goes much
deeper than the English words suggest. The Greek words actually mean, “Let us give thanks to
God by celebrating the Sacrifice of the Mass.” We know, of course, that the Mass is the most
perfect way of giving thanks to God. It is so perfect that, to ancient Catholics, there was no other
way of giving thanks to God. The Mass was THE Thanksgiving. This is why the Greeks called the
Mass the “Eucharist” which is the Greek word for “Thanksgiving.” So, in the Preface, when the
celebrant invites the people to give thanks to God, he is inviting them to offer the Sacrifice of the
Mass with him, the most perfect way of giving thanks to God.
The following Preface is appointed for Trinity Sunday and all Sundays to which no special
Preface is assigned. (Other standard Prefaces include Prefaces of the Nativity, Epiphany, Lent,
The Holy Cross, Eastertide, Ascension, Pentecost, The Most Holy Trinity, Feast of the Sacred
Heart, Feast of the Kingship of Our Lord, The Blessed Virgin, Saint Joseph, The Apostles, and
For the Dead.)
IT IS FITTING indeed and just, right and helpful unto salvation, for us always and
everywhere to give thanks to Thee, O holy Lord, Father almighty, eternal God, Who with
Thine only-begotten Son and the Holy Ghost art one God, one Lord; not in the unity of a
single person, but in the trinity of a single nature. For that which we believe on Thy
revelation concerning Thy glory, that same we believe of Thy Son, that same of the Holy
Ghost, without difference or discrimination. So that in confessing the true and everlasting
Godhead, we shall adore distinction in Persons, oneness in being, and equality in majesty.
This the angels and archangels, the cherubim, too, and the seraphim do praise; day by day
they cease not to cry out as with one voice, saying:
2. Sanctus
HOLY, holy, holy, Lord God of hosts. Heaven and earth are filled with Thy glory. Hosanna
in the highest.
Blessed is He Who comes in the Name of the Lord. Hosanna in the highest.
During the Canon, the Church shows her full membership: The Church Triumphant in Heaven,
the Church Militant on earth, and the Church Suffering in Purgatory. The Sacrifice that Christ
has put into her hands is so infinitely pleasing to God, that it can show honor to every Saint in
Heaven, help every member of the Mystical Body on earth, ease the pains of every soul in
Purgatory, and still give infinite glory and praise to God.
The first three prayers of the Canon (said before the Consecration) teach us once again that the
Mass is our Sacrifice and that we are offering it with the celebrant for the good of the whole
Church, for our own loved ones, and for the honor of the Saints.
We specifically pray for the Bishop of our diocese in every Mass, because the Bishop is the head
of the Church in the diocese, and it is his duty to ensure all the Catholics in his diocese live up to
their Catholic Faith.
Once we understand that, by this Mass, we are helping to make holy all the members of Christ’s
Mystical Body, the Mass will mean so much more to us.
THEREFORE, most gracious Father, we humbly beg of Thee and entreat Thee through
Jesus Christ, Thy Son, our Lord, to deem acceptable and bless these gifts, these
offerings, these holy and unspotted oblations, which, in the first place, we offer Thee for
Thy holy Catholic Church, that Thou wouldst deign to give her peace and protection, to
unite and guard her the whole world over, together with Thy servant, N., our Pope, and N.,
our Bishop, and all true believers who cherish the Catholic and Apostolic faith.
NOTE: Each time there is mention of the gifts of bread and wine that are soon to become the
Body and Blood of Christ, the Church has her celebrant bless these offerings with the Sign of the
Cross. All graces, all blessings come to us because Christ died on the Cross. Is it any wonder,
then, that the celebrant reverently makes the Sign of the Cross over these gifts that will soon bring
the blessings of the Cross to men today?
The Church has prayed for the whole Mystical Body. Now she gives the celebrant and us an
opportunity to pray for our own loved ones and friends. To show Our Lord that we really wish to
imitate His great love, we should also pray for those who have hurt us in any way. Once we pray
for these people, any feelings of hatred we might have had will disappear.
REMEMBER, O Lord, Thy servants and handmaids, N. and N., and all here present, whose
faith and devotion are known to Thee, on whose behalf we offer to Thee, or who themselves
offer to Thee, this sacrifice of praise, for themselves, families and friends, for the good of
their souls, for their hope of salvation and deliverance from all harm, and who offer their
homage to Thee, O God, eternal, living and true.
IN THE UNITY of holy fellowship, we observe the memory, first of all, of the glorious and
ever virgin Mary, Mother of our Lord and God, Jesus Christ; next that of Thy blessed
Apostles and Martyrs, Peter and Paul, Andrew, James, John, Thomas, James, Philip,
Bartholomew, Matthew, Simon and Thaddeus; of Linus, Cletus, Clement, Sixtus, Cornelius,
Cyprian, Lawrence Chrysogonus, John and Paul, Cosmos and Damian, and of all Thy
Saints, by whose merits and prayers grant that we may be always fortified by the help of
Thy protection. Through the same Christ our Lord. Amen.
The celebrant places his hands over the Bread and Wine as a symbol that he is laying all our sins
on Christ, Who will take them away by the Sacrifice the celebrant is about to make in His Name.
Do Thou, O God, deign to bless what we offer, and make it approved, right, and wholly
pleasing in every way, that it may become, for our good, the Body and Blood of Thy
dearly beloved Son, Jesus Christ, our Lord. Amen.
Christ died on the Cross by the real separation of His Blood from his Body. Therefore, every Mass
must in some way present again this separation, and the separate Consecration does just this. A
double Consecration is necessary because only where there is a separate Consecration of Christ’s
Body and Blood is Jesus sacrificed again. Since every Mass is the same sacrifice that Christ made
on the Cross, every Mass must show forth the death of Christ.
Prayers of Oblation
In these Prayers of Oblation, the Church goes back to the theme of the unworthiness of the
offerers of this Sacrifice. She reminds herself that God accepted sacrifices from other unworthy
creatures, and begs again that He might accept this “Spotless Victim” from the spotted hands of
her children. At each Mass, the passion and death of Jesus should live again for us. We thank
Christ over and over again for what His death on the Cross did for us. Because He died, we live
in His grace today and we can rise and live with Him forever in Heaven. In recognizing our own
unworthiness, we should learn humility from every Mass.
Our Lord said: “Do this in memory of Me.” That is, “Offer Me to My Father as a memorial of My
passion, resurrection, and ascension.” So the Church does just this in her first prayer of offering.
Mindful, therefore, O Lord, not only of the blessed passion of the same Christ, Thy Son, our
Lord, but also of His resurrection from the dead, and finally His glorious ascension into
heaven, we, Thy ministers, as also Thy holy people, offer unto Thy Supreme Majesty, the
gifts bestowed upon us, the pure Victim, the holy Victim, the all-perfect Victim; the
holy Bread of life eternal and the Chalice of unending salvation.
And this do Thou deign to regard with gracious and kindly attention and hold acceptable, as
Thou didst deign to accept the offerings of Abel, Thy just servant, and the sacrifice of
Abraham our patriarch, and that which Thy chief priest Melchisedech offered unto Thee, a
holy sacrifice and a spotless victim.
NOTE: Abel sacrificed a pure lamb; Abraham was willing to sacrifice his only son;
Melchisedech sacrificed bread and wine. All are types or figures of the perfect sacrifice, the
Sacrifice of the Lamb of God–Who is the Son of God–under the appearances of bread and wine.
Imploring God to Accept the Oblation and Fill Us with Grace
The Mass was Christ’s last will and testament to us whom He loved–a priceless treasure to
remember Him by! In the second of these two prayers, the Church is already looking forward to
that great moment when her children will share in this Sacrifice of Christ by actually eating His
Flesh and drinking His Blood.
Most humbly we implore Thee, Almighty God, bid these offerings to be brought by the
hands of Thy holy Angel unto Thy altar above; before the face of Thy Divine Majesty; that
those of us who, by sharing in the Sacrifice of this altar, shall receive the most sacred Body
and Blood of Thy Son , may be filled with every grace and heavenly blessing. Through
the same Christ our Lord. Amen.
REMEMBER also, O Lord, Thy servants and handmaids N. and N. who have gone before
us with the sign of faith, and rest in the sleep of peace. To these, O Lord, and to all who rest
in Christ, we beseech thee, to grant, of Thy goodness, a place of comfort, light and peace.
Through the same Christ our Lord. Amen.
Through Whom, O Lord, Thou dost always create, sanctify , fill with life , bless , and
bestow upon us all good things.
Through Him, and with Him, and in Him, is to Thee, God the Father Almighty, in
the unity of the Holy Ghost, all honor and glory. World without end.
R. Amen.
C. COMMUNION
The Church has sacrificed and offered Christ to His Father. Now God gives Christ back to her as
food for her children. The preparation for Holy Communion begins at the Our Father, which
begins the Sacrificial Banquet part of the Mass. To prepare for this Banquet, the Church prays the
Our Father, the prayer in which we beg God, Who is Our Father, to give us, His children, the
Food of our souls.
Because the evil of sin is such a terrible thing in our lives, the celebrant goes on in the prayer
“Deliver us, O Lord” to beg God again to deliver us from evils, whether past, as our past sins, or
present, as our temptations, or future, as mortal sins we are in danger of committing. As the
celebrant says this prayer, we should ask ourselves if we are using the grace God gives us to
avoid persons, places, or things that may lead us into the greatest evil on earth--the evil of mortal
sin.
Let us pray: Directed by saving precepts and taught by Thy divine teaching, we dare to say:
OUR FATHER, Who art in heaven, hallowed be Thy Name; Thy kingdom come; Thy will
be done on earth as it is in heaven. Give us this day our daily bread; and forgive us our
trespasses as we forgive those who trespass against us. And lead us not into temptation.
P. Amen.
Deliver us, we beseech Thee, O Lord, from all evils, past, present, and to come; and by the
intercession of the blessed and glorious Mary, ever virgin, Mother of God, together with Thy
blessed Apostles Peter and Paul, and Andrew, and all the Saints.
Grant, of Thy goodness, peace in our days, that, aided by the riches of Thy mercy, we may
be always free from sin and safe from all disturbance.
Breaking bread with a person has always meant that one was at peace with that person. Thus, we
“break bread” to show Our Lord that we wish to be at peace with Him.
Through the same Jesus Christ, Thy Son, our Lord, Who liveth and reigneth with Thee, in
the unity of the Holy Ghost, God.
R. Amen.
May this mingling and consecration of the Body and Blood of our Lord
Jesus Christ help us who receive it unto life everlasting. Amen.
LAMB OF GOD, Who takest away the sins of the world, have mercy on us.
LAMB OF GOD, Who takest away the sins of the world, have mercy on us.
LAMB OF GOD, Who takest away the sins of the world, grant us peace.
As Our Lord after His Resurrection brought to the Apostles the message of peace and forgiveness
of sins, so we now hope to obtain these blessings from the Risen Lord Whom we are about to
receive, the Lord who promised lasting peace to all of us who receive Him and to each of us who
believe in Him. “My peace I give to you,” He said, “My peace I leave you. Not as the world gives
do I give to you . . . For My peace no man shall take from you.” It is the peace of knowing that
Jesus Christ is living within us, and of knowing that if we keep faithful to Him, no matter what
sorrow we have here on earth, He will never leave us and will one day bring us to His Home in
Heaven. It is also the peace that exists among the members of the Mystical Body through their
love for one another.
The second and third Communion prayers used to be private prayers of the celebrant to prepare
himself to receive Holy Communion. After a time, they became part of the Mass itself. They are
beautiful prayers for us as well. In them we beg Christ for forgiveness of our sins, fidelity to His
commands, and the dispositions we need to receive Him worthily.
R. Amen.
R. Amen.
R. Amen.
Lord, I am not worthy that Thou shouldst come under my roof; but only say the word and
my soul will be healed.
Lord, I am not worthy that Thou shouldst come under my roof; but only say the word and
my soul will be healed.
May the Body of Our Lord Jesus Christ keep my soul unto life everlasting. Amen.
What return shall I make to the Lord for all He hath given me? I will take the Chalice of
salvation, and I will call upon the Name of the Lord. Praising will I call upon the Lord, and
I shall be saved from my enemies.
May the Blood of Our Lord Jesus Christ keep my soul unto life everlasting. Amen.
While the celebrant is receiving the Precious Blood, the server says the Confiteor in the name of
all the people. We should say it with him and beg God for the last time to purify our souls which
are about to receive the pure Body and Blood of His Son.
P. May Almighty God have mercy on you, forgive you your sins, and bring you to life
everlasting.
R. Amen.
P. May the almighty and merciful Lord grant us pardon, absolution and remission of our
sins.
R. Amen.
Behold the Lamb of God, behold Him Who takes away the sins of the world. Lord, I am not
worthy that Thou shouldst come under my roof; but only say the word and my soul will be
healed.
Behold the Lamb of God, behold Him Who takes away the sins of the world. Lord, I am not
worthy that Thou shouldst come under my roof; but only say the word and my soul will be
healed.
Behold the Lamb of God, behold Him Who takes away the sins of the world. Lord, I am not
worthy that Thou shouldst come under my roof; but only say the word and my soul will be
healed.
May the Body of Our Lord Jesus Christ preserve your soul unto life everlasting. Amen.
D. THANKSGIVING
1. Prayers During Ablutions
What has passed our lips as food, O Lord, may we possess in purity of heart, that what is
given to us in time, be our healing for eternity.
May Thy Body, O Lord, which I have eaten, and Thy Blood which I have drunk, cleave unto
my very soul, and grant that no trace of sin be found in me, whom these pure and holy
mysteries have renewed. Who livest and reignest world without end. Amen.
P. Let us pray.
In this prayer, we can once again think of all the intentions we had when we began to offer the
Mass with the celebrant. Even while we are thanking God for His Gifts, we can be begging Him
once again to hear all our prayers.
R. Amen.
R. Thanks be to God.
MAY the tribute of my worship be pleasing to Thee, Most Holy Trinity, and grant that the
sacrifice which I, all unworthy, have offered in the presence of Thy Majesty, may be
acceptable to Thee, and through Thy mercy obtain forgiveness for me and all for whom I
have offered it. Through Christ our Lord. Amen.
May Almighty God bless you, the Father, and the Son , and the Holy Ghost.
R. Amen.
IN THE beginning was the Word, and the Word was with God; and the Word was God. He
was in the beginning with God. All things were made through Him, and without Him was
made nothing that has been made. In Him was life, and the life was the light of men. And
the light shines in the darkness; and the darkness grasped it not. There was a man, one sent
from God, whose name was John. This man came as a witness, to bear witness concerning
the Light, that all might believe through Him. He was not himself the Light, but was to bear
witness to the Light. It was the true Light that enlightens every man who comes into the
world. He was in the world, and the world was made by Him, and the world knew Him not.
He came unto His own, and His own received Him not. But to as many as received Him He
gave the power of becoming sons of God; to those who believe in His Name: who were born,
not of blood, nor of the will of the flesh, nor of the will of man, but of God. (Here genuflect)
And THE WORD WAS MADE FLESH, and dwelt among us. And we saw His glory, the
glory as of the Only-begotten of the Father, full of grace and of truth.
R. Thanks be to God.
Psalm 42 is said at the beginning of Mass to beg God to keep His Church
holy and to remind us that we should lead holy lives in order to offer the
Mass worthily with the priest.
The Confiteor is the prayer said by the priest and people to beg God to
pardon their sins that they may be worthy to offer the Holy Sacrifice.
The sentiments in these prayers are a plea to God for purity, so that both
the priest and the people may be worthy to offer the Sacrifice of His Son.
The “Kyrie” is that part of the Mass in which we tell God how much we
need His mercy and salvation, which we hope to obtain through the
Mass.
The “Gloria” is the Church’s hymn of praise to Almighty God which she
uses in all her joyful and all her feast-day Masses.
The Collect is a prayer for the needs of the Mystical Body which the
Church prays for as she is about to offer the Sacrifice by which these
graces will be given.
Their purpose is to beg God to make a mere man worthy to tell the sacred
story of our Salvation by Jesus Christ.
The Creed is the profession of our Catholic Faith which is included in the
more solemn Masses of the Church.
The Offertory Verse opens the first principal part of the Mass. During this
prayer, on Sundays at least, people make their material offerings and the
offering of themselves.
These five prayers teach us to center our whole life on the Consecration
of the Mass, so that our daily lives may be offered as a constant sacrifice
to Almighty God.
At one time there was a practical purpose to this ceremony, for the priest
had to wash his hands after handling all the offerings of the faithful. Now
it is a symbol of our prayer, asking God to wash our souls from all sin
before we begin the most sacred part of the Mass.
14. What does the prayer “Accept, Most Holy Trinity” teach us?
This prayer teaches us that every Mass is offered to the Most Blessed
Trinity, for God’s glory, for the honor of the Saints, and for our salvation.
It is the Prayer that the priest says silently, in which he asks God to
accept the Sacrifice that is to be offered in the name of the Church and to
bless us with its fruits.
The Preface is the prayer that begins the Sacrifice part of the Mass. It is
the “invitation to Sacrifice” in which the priest invites the people to offer
the Sacrifice of Jesus with him as a perfect act of Thanksgiving to God.
The Canon of the Mass is that part of the Mass in which the Action or act
of sacrificing and offering Jesus Christ takes place.
19. Why do we pray for the Bishop of our diocese in every Mass?
We pray for the Bishop of our diocese in every Mass, because the Bishop
is the head of the Church in the diocese, and it is his duty to see that all
the Catholics in his diocese live up to their Catholic Faith.
20. What does the prayer for the Remembrance of the Faithful teach
us?
This prayer teaches us that in the Sacrament of Baptism, God has given
great power to ordinary people of the world. For to every Baptized
person, He has given the power to offer the Sacrifice of His Son with His
priests.
21. What do the first three prayers of the Canon teach us?
These three prayers teach us once again that the Mass is our Sacrifice,
and that we are offering it with the priest for the good of the whole
Church, for our own loved ones, and for the honor of the Saints.
22. Why does the priest place his hands over the gifts of Bread and
Wine?
The priest places his hands over the Bread and Wine as a symbol that he
is laying all our sins on Christ, Who will take them away by the Sacrifice
the priest is about to make in His Name.
The Word of God is the Son of God, the Second Person of the Most
Blessed Trinity, Jesus Christ, Our Lord.
24. How does the priest sacrifice Jesus by the words of Consecration?
The first prayer of offering teaches us that every Mass is offered to God
both as a Sacrifice to Him and as a memorial of Christ’s passion,
resurrection and ascension.
Abel sacrificed a pure lamb; Abraham was willing to sacrifice his only
son; Melchisedech sacrificed bread and wine. All these are types or
figures of the perfect sacrifice, the Sacrifice of the Lamb of God–Who is
the Son of God–under the appearances of bread and wine.
The first prayer teaches that we are united in Christ not only to the Saints
in Heaven and to the members of Christ’s Body here on earth, but also to
the Souls in Purgatory.
The purpose of this prayer is to end the Canon or Sacrifice part of the
Mass with a prayer of praise and honor to God through His Son and
through us too, who have been united with His Son.
The Our Father is said at Mass, to prepare us who have offered Christ in
Sacrifice to His Father to receive Him as our Food from our Heavenly
Father.
30. What does the breaking of the Host and the mingling of the Host
and Precious Blood symbolize?
The breaking of the Host symbolizes the peace we wish to have with
Christ. The mingling of the Host with the Precious Blood symbolizes the
unity which should exist between all the members of Christ’s Mystical
Body who are fed with the very same Body and Blood of Christ.
Prayers for peace are fitting at Communion time, because we are about to
receive Him Who promised lasting peace to all of us who receive Him.
33. Where does the preparation for Holy Communion begin in the
Mass?
The preparation for Holy Communion begins at the Our Father in the
Mass, which starts the Sacrificial Banquet part of the Mass.
36. How can the prayer “May the tribute, etc.” be our prayer, too?
This prayer can be our prayer, too, because we have offered the Sacrifice
of the Mass with the priest.
APPENDIX V - PRAYERS AFTER LOW MASS
Hail Mary (3 times)
SALVE REGINA
HAIL, Holy Queen, Mother of mercy, hail, our life, our sweetness, and
our hope! To thee do we cry, poor banished children of Eve! To thee do
we send up our sighs, mourning and weeping in this valley of tears! Turn
then, most gracious advocate, thine eyes of mercy towards us; and after
this, our exile, show unto us the blessed fruit of thy womb, Jesus! O
clement, O loving, O sweet Virgin Mary!
Let us pray
GOD, our refuge and our strength, look down with favor upon thy people
who cry to Thee; and through the intercession of the glorious and
immaculate Virgin Mary, Mother of God, of Blessed Joseph, her spouse,
of Thy holy apostles Peter and Paul, and all the saints, in thy mercy and
kindness hear the prayers which we pour forth to Thee for the conversion
of sinners and for the liberty and exaltation of Holy Mother the Church.
Through the same Christ Our Lord. Amen.
Acolyte,451 (c)
Advent, 302
Ambition, 75 (a)
Amen, 187
Angelus, 87 (a)
Annunciation, 42 (a), 47
Archangels, 37 (c)
Atheists, 1 (a)
Atonement for sin, see also Satisfaction, 420; see also Satisfaction
Baptism, 144 (b), 117 (a), 122 (e), 136 (a), 175 (a), 305, 308 (a), 310,
313-329, 379 (b), 380 (b), 422 (a)
Bethlehem, 89
Bishops, 45 (e), 136, 145, 146, 148(b), 149, 151, 156 (f), 173 (d), 331-
334, 336, 451, 456, 472
Blessings, 472
Boasting, 75 (a)
Bribes, 261
Calvary, 93 (a)
Catholic Church, 5, 6, 136, 169, 190 (b), 462 (a), VII, XIV; is one, 156
(b); is necessary, 167 (a)
Catholic Religion, I, V
Causality, 20 (b)
Christ, 78-104, 137, 138,144-148, 330, 343-356, 359, 360, 362, 365, V-
VIII
Circumcision, 283
Circumincession, 107 (a)
Citizens, 245-248
Concupiscence, 60 (d)
Conscience, 50 (c)
Converts, 6 (a)
Counsels, 197
Country, 245-248
Crucifixion, 91
Cursing, 232
Deacons, 451(c)
Deceit, 75 (b)
Devil, 44 (a)
Distress, 75 (f)
Divine Providence, 19
Drunkenness, 253
Eve, 51-56
Evil, 35 (e-g)
Evolution, 51 (a)
Faith, 121, 122, 156 (d), 200, 201, 204-206, 373, 447, 486
Fighting, 253
Fraud, 75 (b)
Freedom, 15 (b)-(c)
Gabriel, 42 (a), 87
God: the Creator, 1-3, 35, 36, 48; Supreme Being, 8-23; the Father, 25-
26; the Son, 27, 78-104; the Holy Ghost, 25, 28, 105-128
Golgotha, 93
Grace, 4 (a), 38 (a), 52, 56, 57, 108-119, 304, 311, 315, 337-341, 368,
369, 375, 382, 464, 471
Hardheartedness, 75 (b)
Hatred, 75 (f), 253; of God, 75 (c), 210 (b); of neighbor, 210 (c)
Heaven, 34 (b), 38 (b), 68, 77, 90, 95 (a), 101., 171, 172, 178, 183, 186
Holy Eucharist, 305, 308 (a), 311, 343-356, 366, 378, 467 (f)
Holy Ghost, 25, 28, 86, 105-128, 139-143, 163, 330, 332, IX, XIV
Holy Orders, 305, 308 (a). 311, 313, 314, 353 (a). 451-456
Hyperdulia, 87 (f)
Ignorance, 60 (b)
Inspiration, 23 (f)-(g)
Instability, 75 (c)
Jerusalem, 93
Jesus Christ, 78-104, 137,138, 144-148, 330, 343-356, 359, 360, 362,
365, 377, 380, V-VIII
Justice, 134
Knowledge in God, 15
Liberality, 135
Lies, 266
Limbo, 95-97
Mass, 145 (a), 156 (e), 173 (a)-(c), (e), 284 (a), 302, 303, 343, 357-365,
415(a), 454, 468
Mercy, 191-194
Missions, XVI
Mother of God, 87
Nativity, 89
Necessity of religion, IV
Neglect, 75 (g)
Oath, 226, 227; of allegiance, 227 (e); obligation of, 227 (b)
Overhastiness, 75 (c)
Psalms, 473
Passion of Christ, 91
Patience, 135
Patriotism, 135
Penance, 117 (a), 175 (a), 305, 308 (a), 310, 379-434, 467 (f)
Peter, 137 (b), 147, 148, 159 (a) , 162 (a) , 280
Pictures, 220-223
Piety, 125, 135
Pope, 136, 137 (b), 147, 148, 156 (c), (f), 159 (a), 162 (d), 163 (a), 164,
280
Poverty, 197
Priests, 45 (e), 149, 318, 353-355, 357-360, 379-381, 408-410, 419, 420,
448-455, 465
Privation, 58
Prophets, V
Providence, 19
Quarrels, 75 (d)
Reason, 1 (a), 5 (b), 22, 24 (a), 25 (a), 34 (a), 37 (a), 188 (c)
Remarriage, 460
Reparation, 263
Restoration, 263
Revenge, 253
Sacramentals, 469-474
Safeguards, 76 (b)
Sanctifying grace, 110-112, 115, 119, 307, 375, 382, 445, 453, 466
Saviour, 77, 78
Scandal, 210
Scapular, 473
Science, 51 (b)
Self-love, 75 (c)
Sin: original, 55-62; actual, 63-76; mortal, 65-69; venial, 70-72; capital
74-75
Slander, 269
Soul, 9 (a), 12 (b), 48-50, 111, 149, 151, 209, 314, 317, III
Spiritists, 212
Spiritual relationship, 299 (a), 328 (a), 340 (f)
Stealing, 261
Suicide, 253
Supernatural, 23, 33, 34, 67, 109, 113, 115, 119, 169, 174, 310, 390, 392,
454
Talkativeness, 75 (e)
Thoughtlessness, 75 (c)
Tobias, 42 (a)
Transubstantiation, 347-350
True religion, I, V
Understanding, 50 (b)
Vainglory, 75 (a)
Valid sacraments, 309 (a)
Vulgarity, 75 (e)
Worldliness, 75 (c)
New York, March 15, 1958. Nihil Obstat: JOHN A. GOODWINE, Censor Librorum. Imprimatur:
FRANCIS CARDINAL SPELLMAN, Archbishop of New York.
This comprehensive catechism contains the constant, authentic doctrine and moral teaching of the
Catholic Faith. It is not only excellent for adults and children, but is also perfect for religious
programs and anyone desiring information about the Church.
More than 500 clear and concise questions and answers are included. Developed explanations and
Sacred Scripture are used extensively to amplify the answers. Each chapter concludes with study
helps, exercises and a summary essay for teachers and students.
The twenty-two extraordinary engravings help to make this edition among the finest Catholic
catechisms ever printed.
Reprinted by
The Seraphim Company, Inc.
8025 Maverick Road
Colorado Springs, CO 80906